summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/62774-0.txt7924
-rw-r--r--old/62774-0.zipbin164737 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62774-h.zipbin493910 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62774-h/62774-h.htm10759
-rw-r--r--old/62774-h/images/cover.jpgbin317774 -> 0 bytes
8 files changed, 17 insertions, 18683 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..a6f7f73
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #62774 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/62774)
diff --git a/old/62774-0.txt b/old/62774-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 5a6be15..0000000
--- a/old/62774-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,7924 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Renaissance of Girls' Education in
-England, by Alice Zimmern
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: The Renaissance of Girls' Education in England
- A Record of Fifty Years' Progress
-
-Author: Alice Zimmern
-
-Release Date: July 27, 2020 [EBook #62774]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK GIRLS' EDUCATION IN ENGLAND ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Richard Tonsing, MFR, and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
- RENAISSANCE OF GIRLS’ EDUCATION
-
-
-
-
- THE
- RENAISSANCE OF GIRLS’ EDUCATION IN ENGLAND
- A Record of Fifty Years’ Progress
-
-
- BY ALICE ZIMMERN
-
- (GIRTON COLLEGE, CAMBRIDGE)
-
- AUTHOR OF ‘METHODS OF EDUCATION IN AMERICA,’ ‘OLD TALES PROM GREECE,’
- ETC.
-
-
- London
-
- A. D. Innes & Company
-
- Limited
-
- 1898
-
-
-
-
- Edinburgh: T. and A. CONSTABLE, Printers to Her Majesty
-
-
-
-
- PREFACE
-
-
-To all whom it may interest I dedicate this brief summary of the events
-which have wrought a peaceful revolution among us during the last fifty
-years. Among the many changes of the half-century, the great
-transformation in the education of women surely deserves a record. The
-workers have been many, the help given of various kinds, yet no event is
-isolated, for all are links in one chain of progress. Fifty years ago a
-few far-sighted men and women gave the impetus; we who harvest where
-they sowed may like to be reminded, in this season of retrospects, of
-the great debt we owe them. What has touched the lives of so many women
-is the concern of all, and though I shall be proud indeed if my book
-prove welcome to teachers, I should wish most of all to address myself
-to that old and long-tried friend of literature, the general reader. If
-he, or she, can be persuaded, to spend an hour or two, learning the past
-and present of the education of our girls, my purpose will have been
-accomplished.
-
-To thank for favours received is a pleasant task, but the list of those
-who have helped me with this book would prove too long for enumeration.
-I desire to offer my heartiest thanks to all who have assisted me with
-information, criticism, or in any other way; especially to Miss Beale
-for valuable materials and kind hospitality, to Mrs. Bryant and Miss A.
-A. M. Rogers for much useful information, to Miss Mary Gurney, Miss Ella
-Pycroft, Miss Mary Kennedy, and Mr. W. Edwards for reading portions of
-the book, and to Mrs. Edwards for her sympathy and kindness during my
-stay in Wales. To the many headmistresses who have allowed me to visit
-their schools I offer most cordial thanks, and last, but not least, to
-the officials of the Education Library, in particular Mr. Sadler and
-Miss Beard, for their courtesy and helpfulness.
-
- ALICE ZIMMERN.
-
- _September 1898._
-
-
-
-
- CONTENTS
-
-
- CHAP. PAGE
- I. BEFORE 1848 1
-
- II. THE FIRST COLLEGES 20
-
- III. LIGHT IN DARK PLACES 38
-
- IV. THE HIGH SCHOOLS 52
-
- V. ENDOWMENTS FOR GIRLS 78
-
- VI. THE WOMEN’S COLLEGES 103
-
- VII. ADMISSION TO THE UNIVERSITIES 126
-
- VIII. BOARDING AND PRIVATE SCHOOLS 149
-
- IX. THE TECHNICAL INSTRUCTION ACTS 169
-
- X. STATE AID FOR GIRLS 195
-
- XI. THE INTERMEDIATE SCHOOLS OF WALES 215
-
- XII. 1898 234
-
-
-
-
- THE
-
- RENAISSANCE OF GIRLS’ EDUCATION
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I
- BEFORE 1848
-
-
-Yes, strange though it may sound, it was in truth a Renaissance—a
-revival of the past, and no new experiment. Or perhaps we should more
-fitly describe it as the realisation of an old dream, one that has been
-dreamed many times in the course of the ages, but has waited till the
-nineteenth century for its complete fulfilment. Two thousand years ago
-it was seen by Plato, that most practical of idealists, who maintained
-that it was for the best interests of the state that its men and women
-should be as good as possible. Therefore the education of both was a
-matter of public concern. In these latter days this doctrine has won
-acceptance, with an even wider significance, due to our democratic
-development. The treasures of learning are no longer the property of an
-exclusive few, and the privileges of class and sex are breaking down
-simultaneously. Education for all, boys and girls, rich and poor, is the
-modern demand, which no party dare now refuse to consider. We must cater
-not only for the ‘wives of the governors,’ but also for the children of
-the slums. All the daughters of all the households of all civilised
-countries are to enter into their heritage. The much-discussed ‘ladder’
-from the elementary school to the University is becoming a fact; and its
-rungs are being widened, that the girls may ascend it side by side with
-their brothers. _La carrière ouverte aux talents_, with no distinction
-of class, sex, or creed, is the demand of the nineteenth century.
-
-From Plato’s Utopian ‘Republic’ to London of the County Council is a far
-cry. Between the two, this question of girls’ education has many times
-been raised and temporarily solved. Socrates’ half-jesting dictum, that
-women are capable of learning anything which men are willing they should
-know, might stand as the motto for nearly every attempt to improve
-female education. The instruction given to women at different epochs has
-varied directly with the estimation in which they were held. When they
-were regarded as slaves or toys it was expedient to keep them in
-ignorance; when they were treated honourably as equals, the best gifts
-of learning were not thought too good for them.
-
-It is not our place here to dwell on the bright examples of antiquity,
-the Neo-Platonist women and Hypatia, the beautiful mathematician of
-Alexandria, but rather, turning to our own country, to see how
-Christianity has touched the lives of women. Here, as elsewhere, it was
-the Church alone that kept alive the flame of knowledge during the
-Middle Ages. In the seventh and eighth centuries, that ‘nadir of
-learning,’ monks and nuns alike were occupied with literary studies.
-They read theology and classics, copied manuscripts, and corresponded in
-Latin. Their activity was in accordance with their social position. ‘The
-heads of the great religious houses were necessarily persons of
-importance, with privileges and great responsibilities. They had
-considerable wealth at their disposal, and in authority and influence
-they ranked among the nobles of the land, to whom they were often allied
-by birth.’[1] The name that naturally occurs first to our minds is that
-of the Abbess Hilda, ‘whose counsel was sought even by kings,’ and who
-ruled over a double monastery, which became a seminary of bishops and
-priests. Hers is no solitary instance. ‘In Anglo-Saxon England,’ writes
-Miss Eckenstein, ‘men who attained to distinction received their
-training in settlements governed by women. Histories and a chronicle of
-unique value were inspired by and drafted under the auspices of Saxon
-abbesses.’ And ‘the curriculum of study in the nunnery was as liberal as
-that accepted by the monks, and embraced all available writings, whether
-by Christian or profane authors.’ The convents were the colleges of
-Anglo-Saxon times. The nuns, who lived a life of seclusion and study,
-might be compared with the fellows; the students were the successive
-groups of girls who came there for education.
-
-Among the many social changes brought about by the Norman Conquest, the
-most far-reaching, the introduction of feudalism, established a new
-centre of education, which henceforth flourished side by side with the
-cloister. The monks still taught the Trivium and Quadrivium—Grammar,
-Dialectic, Rhetoric, Music, Arithmetic, Geometry, Astronomy—though the
-instruction given deserved these high-sounding names little better than
-the so-called sciences taught in girls’ schools at the beginning of our
-own century. The castle could offer boys a more attractive programme.
-The seven knightly accomplishments were to ride, sing, shoot with the
-bow, box, hawk, play chess, and write verses. It had something for girls
-as well. While the young squires gained their training by service done
-to their lord, the _châtelaine_ would gather about her a troop of gentle
-maidens, who learned to weave, spin, brew, and distil, and do various
-kinds of needlework. They learned a little reading and writing, and in
-these arts were somewhat in advance of their brothers, who were trained
-to look on books as monkish and womanish, and not quite suited to a
-knight and gentleman. The _châtelaine_ herself held an honourable
-position. In her lord’s absence she must even take command of the
-castle, and the _damoiselles_ must be prepared for their own coming
-responsibilities.
-
-The thirteenth century brought a change. The political influence of the
-Church, which had been lessened by the Conquest, was revived by the
-preaching friars. They introduced a new ideal of monastic life; the
-spirit of devotion and asceticism drove out the old love of learning.
-New priories sprang up throughout England, but their aims were
-different. As the monasteries were more and more becoming centres of
-devotion, learning was being driven into the new universities, where the
-philosophy of the schoolmen now reigned supreme. Already some colleges
-with endowments for poor scholars had been founded at Oxford and
-Cambridge, and it was becoming the custom for the monasteries to send
-their most promising pupils there. Why did the nuns not follow this
-example? Probably the metaphysical disputations then in vogue had few
-attractions for them; and the presence of large numbers of men would be
-a sufficient reason for keeping aloof, for though the studies of both
-sexes might be the same, they were not pursued side by side. Whatever
-the cause, it is certain that while masculine learning showed an
-ever-growing tendency to leave the cloister, female scholarship was
-still closely confined to the convent. But it was degenerating for want
-of new life; the nunneries were a survival, not a living growth; their
-learning had become ‘poor in substance, cramped in method, and
-insufficient in application.’[2] The old order was changing, but somehow
-the nuns failed to perceive it. In Erasmus’ day, we are told, the really
-learned woman was to be found outside the convent walls, and he adds the
-significant remark that her husband approved of her studies. The wrong
-done to women by the dissolution was not so much the closing of the
-convents as the transference to men of their endowments. The most
-flagrant instance is the transformation of St. Radegund’s nunnery at
-Cambridge into Jesus College. That this and other instances of
-spoliation were possible shows how low the status of women had sunk, and
-it is not strange, therefore, that a period of neglected education
-should have ensued.
-
-Whatever the cause, the Reformation does not seem to have assisted the
-development of women. Perhaps this was partly due to the removal of the
-one career that had been open to them, thus forcing all, married and
-unmarried, into a dependent position in the household. Luther’s views on
-women were not very elevated, and probably a good many of the Reformers
-shared them. It may be due to this Protestant influence that in England
-women profited less intellectually by the Renaissance than men, or at
-any rate in far smaller numbers. Thanks to the new grammar schools,
-learning was being made accessible to boys of all classes. When Sir
-Thomas More’s dream was realised, and the middle classes, from the
-squire to the petty tradesman, were brought into contact with ancient
-literature, the daughters were not as well provided as the sons. Some
-authorities are of opinion that the original foundations were meant for
-both sexes alike, but if so, very few girls of the middle class profited
-by their advantages, though some sort of education evidently came to
-all. Among the upper classes large numbers of women were carried away by
-the enthusiasm of the Renaissance, and learned to read Latin and Greek.
-The sixteenth century has always been celebrated for its learned ladies,
-as witness Wotton’s oft quoted remark thereon and his comment: ‘One
-would think by the effects that it was a proper way of educating them,
-since there are no accounts in history of so many great women in any age
-as are to be found between the years 1500 and 1600.’ Queen Elizabeth and
-Lady Jane Grey are sometimes called exceptions, but this is clearly an
-error. Learning was an expensive luxury for women, since it involved the
-services of a private tutor, but it had fashion and opinion on its side.
-To be learned was accounted a privilege, which called for neither
-arrogant boasting nor blushing concealment. Those who did study, would
-naturally turn to the best their age could offer them, _i.e._ the new
-editions of the classics and the fashionable modern literature. They set
-the fashion too as well as followed it. The success of _Euphues_ was
-established by its lady readers, and in the domain of polite literature
-it was generally acknowledged that they created the standard. When Lyly
-wrote ‘Euphues had rather lie shut in a lady’s casket than open in a
-scholar’s study,’ he knew well enough that it was not the ladies who
-would neglect his book. He confessed as much in its dedication to the
-‘Ladies and Gentlewomen of England.’ Nor was there anything new in this.
-The lady sat in her bower to read Sidney’s _Arcadia_ as in olden times
-she had listened in the hall to the lay of the minstrel. It was still
-her part to assign the prize of romance as of valour. The leisure which
-made the enjoyment of tale and song possible was essentially the lot of
-the rich and noble lady, who neither toiled nor span, but did a more
-useful work as guardian of art and literature. The amazing discovery
-that ‘Books are a part of man’s prerogative’[3] had not yet been made;
-there is certainly not a hint of it in Shakespeare. Nor could such a
-doctrine possibly originate under a queen, who, whatever her faults,
-cultivated learning herself and honoured it in others. Our thoughts
-linger lovingly over that noblest age of English story, when romanticism
-and classicism joined their glories for a brief space; when the courtier
-was both knight and scholar, and the noble dame’s epitaph praised her as
-‘wise and fair and good.’ Seen through the haze of the past, its
-splendours stand out in even greater dimension, while all that was small
-and weak is obscured to dimness. The very age that followed served as a
-foil to throw into yet brighter relief ‘the spacious days of great
-Elizabeth.’
-
-It is significant of the rapid degeneration that ensued, that though
-between the accession of Henry VIII. and the death of James I., 353
-grammar schools were founded in England, not one was added to the number
-after 1625. The seventeenth century was a gloomy period for England. If
-Elizabeth had given her country peace and glory, the Stuarts were not
-long in reversing the position. Disastrous civil wars, political and
-theological quarrels, absorbed the best energies of the nation. The
-Cavaliers were too frivolous, the Roundheads too grimly earnest to spare
-much leisure for learning. In times of war and national peril woman’s
-influence is apt to wane, and such power as they had at the Stuart court
-was not of the kind to encourage intellectual pursuits. When a scholar
-was hardly accounted a gentleman, a lady might be pardoned for
-neglecting her intellectual charms. It became the fashion among men to
-decry female students, to bid them put away their books and learn to
-wash and cook instead. ‘I like not a female poetess at any hand,’ says
-one of these self-appointed critics. This attitude was characteristic of
-the decline of chivalry and the degradation of woman’s position. ‘There
-is not so much as a Don Quixote of the quill left,’ writes Mary Astell
-in 1694, ‘to succour the distressed damsels.’ The age of courtesy being
-over, women must help themselves, and she takes up the cudgels for her
-sex. ‘A man ought no more to value himself on being wiser than a woman,’
-she remarks pertinently, ‘if he owes his advantage to a better education
-and greater means of information, than he ought to boast of courage for
-beating a man when his hands were bound.’[4] Hers is the old thesis,
-that women are quite capable of learning if only men will not put
-hindrances in their way. Even so the girls’ curriculum of her day does
-not seem to have been as meagre as is often assumed. She tells us that
-when the boys go to grammar schools the girls are sent ‘to
-boarding-schools or other places to learn needlework, dancing, singing,
-music, drawing, painting, and other accomplishments ... and French,
-which is now very fashionable.’ This description which would almost have
-served at the beginning of our own century, is not as gloomy as Defoe’s,
-written at about the same time. Girls, he tells us, learned ‘to stitch
-and sew and make baubles. They are taught to read indeed, and perhaps to
-write their names or so, and this is the height of a woman’s
-education.’[5] Both agree in condemning its narrowness. Defoe cannot
-believe that ‘God Almighty ever made them such glorious creatures, and
-furnished them with such charms, so agreeable and delightful to mankind,
-with souls capable of the same accomplishment with men, and all to be
-only stewards of our houses, cooks, and slaves.’ Mary Astell maintains
-that ‘according to the rate that young women are educated, according to
-the way their time is spent, they are destined to folly and
-impertinence, to say no worse.’ She protests, as Mrs. Makins had done
-before her,[6] against the new fashion of ignorant women, and implores
-her sisters to help bring back the good old times, and take a lesson
-from the ladies of the previous century. Both Defoe and Mary Astell
-recommend the same project, the establishment of women’s colleges, thus
-anticipating our own times by more than a century and a half. Defoe’s
-colleges would have been superior boarding-schools, one in every county
-and about ten for the city of London; Mary Astell’s plan was to combine
-religious and intellectual aims. She contemplated ‘a seminary to stock
-the kingdom with pious and prudent ladies, whose good example, it is to
-be hoped, will so influence the rest of their sex, that women may no
-longer pass for those little, useless, and impertinent animals which the
-ill conduct of too many has caused them to be mistaken for.’[7] But it
-must also try to ‘expel that cloud of ignorance which custom has
-involved us in, to furnish our minds with a stock of solid and useful
-knowledge, that the souls of women may no longer be the only unadorned
-and neglected things.’ Nothing came of either project; they belong to
-the domain of unfulfilled dreams.
-
-The new century brought little improvement. Anne was not of a
-sufficiently independent character to influence greatly the lives and
-pursuits of her subjects. As was natural in the reign of a Queen, the
-position and dignity of women were somewhat raised; and in that
-‘Augustan age’ there was one class of literature specially addressed to
-the ladies, the newly invented essay. Addison really wanted to elevate
-their position and social influence, but his success was literary rather
-than moral. If we may trust the novelists of the last century, public
-morality was never at a lower ebb. The men of that day worshipped
-idleness, and it was not surprising that they did not care to see their
-wives and mistresses at work. Show was the aim throughout, and the
-‘accomplishment’ reigned supreme. The second half of the century
-witnessed a great increase in the boarding-school system. Hitherto it
-had been confined to the fashionable world; now tradesmen and farmers
-who had made some money began to emulate their ‘betters.’ Imitations of
-the fashionable schools sprang up everywhere. ‘We have,’ says the
-heroine of General Burgoyne’s play, _The Heiress_, “Young ladies boarded
-and educated” upon blue boards in gold letters in every village; with a
-strolling player for a dancing-master, and a deserter from Dunkirk to
-teach the French language.’
-
-The eighteenth century, too, had its distinguished women; indeed, the
-Blue-Stocking Club, so called, it seems, from the dress of one of its
-masculine _habitués_, is regarded as the representative group of learned
-ladies. But Mrs. Montagu, Mrs. Chapone, and Hannah More were exceptions,
-and themselves only too conscious of their opposition to the rest of
-their sex. There was a touch of the _précieuse_ about some of them which
-exposed them to a good deal of cheap satire, and they were keenly alive
-to the antagonism with which the other sex regarded them. Mrs. Chapone
-even advises her niece to avoid the study of classics and science, for
-fear of ‘exciting envy in one sex and jealousy in the other.’ Lady Mary
-Wortley Montagu complains bitterly that ‘there is hardly a creature in
-the world more despicable and more liable to universal ridicule than
-that of a learned woman,’ while ‘folly is reckoned so much our proper
-sphere, we are sooner pardoned any excesses of that than the least
-pretensions to reading and good sense.’
-
-Some of these last century women were practical reformers, who realised
-the pernicious results of this false opinion about their sex. Among
-these was Hannah More, who entered a most earnest protest against the
-excessive accomplishment craze. The lower middle class were emulating
-the upper in their endeavour to make their daughters ‘accomplished young
-ladies,’ while they quite forgot that ‘the profession of ladies to which
-the best of their education should be turned is that of daughters,
-wives, mothers, and mistresses of families.’[8] She even ventured to fly
-in the face of public opinion by asserting that ‘a young lady may excel
-in speaking French and Italian, may repeat a few passages from a volume
-of extracts, play like a professor, and sing like a siren,’ and yet be
-very badly educated, if her mind remains untrained. ‘The kind of
-knowledge that they commonly do acquire is easily attained,’ they learn
-everything in a superficial question-and-answer way, or through
-abridgments, beauties, and compendiums, instead of reading books that
-require thought and attention. As we read her _Strictures on Female
-Education_ we rub our eyes and look at the date once more. Is this,
-indeed, Hannah More writing a hundred years ago, or have we stumbled
-upon a stray extract from Mr. Bryce’s report to the Schools’ Inquiry
-Commission in 1867? ‘She should pursue every kind of study which will
-teach her to elicit truth, which will lead her to be intent upon
-realities; will give precision to her ideas; will make an exact mind.’
-She quotes Dr. Johnson’s opinion that ‘a woman cannot have too much
-arithmetic.’ Had the worthy doctor a prevision of a High School
-time-table?
-
-Hannah More’s influence does not seem to have been very lasting. Her
-contemptuous remark, that we might as well talk about the rights of
-children as the rights of women, shows that she had not much real grasp
-of the educational problem. Both should, in her opinion, be relegated to
-their proper subordinate places. She was right in despising the
-frivolity of her day, and condemning the constant round of pleasure in
-which fashionable women spent their lives, but she was almost too severe
-to be helpful. Far more valuable was Miss Edgeworth’s work, which was
-constructive as well as critical. Her educational romances, in which she
-contrasts the good and bad governess, the sensible and frivolous girl,
-are thoroughly readable even at the present day, and must have proved
-useful to many readers who lighted unawares on the powder in the jam.
-_Practical Education_, written in conjunction with her father, throws
-valuable light on contemporary conditions, and advances theories that
-are still worthy of our notice. The ‘practical toy shop,’ provided with
-all manner of carpenter’s tools, with wood properly prepared for the
-young workman, and with screws, nails, glue, emery-paper, etc., is still
-to seek; her remarks on the two schools, the one teaching ‘by dint of
-reiterated pain and terror,’ the other ‘with the help of counters and
-coaxing and gingerbread,’ are not altogether out of date. Nor have we
-yet learned to pay a good governess £300 a year, on the ground that her
-working days are few, and she ought to lay by for a comfortable old age.
-Her severest strictures, like Hannah More’s, are reserved for ‘female
-accomplishments.’ Their chief use is that ‘they are supposed to increase
-a young lady’s chance of a prize in the matrimonial lottery.’ Hence,
-when the end is achieved, they are thrown aside. ‘As soon as a young
-lady is married, does she not frequently discover that she really has no
-leisure to cultivate talents which take up so much time?’ Nor is it
-quite certain that they are as efficacious as is generally supposed. The
-market is becoming overstocked, for ‘every young lady, and every young
-woman is now a young lady, has some pretension to accomplishments. She
-draws a little; or she plays a little; or she speaks French a little.’
-Accomplishments are becoming so general ‘that they cannot be considered
-as the distinguishing characteristics of even a gentlewoman’s
-education.’ Since they are no longer ‘exclusive,’ she hopes they may be
-cast aside for something better. Her indictment against the female
-education of her day is that ‘sentiment and ridicule have conspired to
-represent reason, knowledge, and science as unsuitable and dangerous to
-women; yet, at the same time, wit and superficial acquirements in
-literature have been the object of admiration in society; so that this
-dangerous inference has been drawn, almost without our perceiving its
-fallacy, that superficial knowledge is more desirable in women than
-accurate knowledge.’ It is interesting to find this complaint repeated
-in 1826 by an anonymous writer,[9] who maintains the old dictum that
-‘females are not behind males in capacity, and excel them in diligence
-and docility,’ but they are handicapped by ‘an education of mere
-externals and of show.’ There is a want of stamina in girls’ education,
-and as for their school-books, they are mere combinations of words used
-as ‘substitutes or apologies for ideas.’
-
-Maria Edgeworth’s influence should have been considerable, but turning
-from her works to her contemporaries and immediate successors, it seems
-doubtful whether they even understood her. Her stories, whose most
-useful lessons were addressed to parents, were turned into children’s
-books; and the demand for a more solid education simply led to an
-increase of the memory and book-work in schools. In spite of her
-strictures on the uselessness of a knowledge of isolated facts, and the
-attempts of Mrs. Barbauld and others to supply something better, the
-catechism system continued to grow and flourish. Large amounts of memory
-work were added to the piano and drawing, which still held their own,
-and the results were not merely negative as regards intellectual value,
-but positive in their injurious effects on health. Miss Frances Power
-Cobbe in her description of the fashionable boarding-school to which she
-was sent in 1836, speaks of the pages of prose the girls were expected
-to learn by heart, amid the din of constant practising. ‘Not that which
-was good in itself or useful to the community, or even that which would
-be delightful to ourselves, but that which would make us admired in
-society was the _raison-d’être_ of each requirement. Everything was
-taught in the inverse ratio of its true importance. At the bottom of the
-scale were Morals and Religion, and at the top were Music and Dancing,
-miserably poor music too, of the Italian school then in vogue, and
-generally performed in a showy and tasteless manner on harp or
-piano.’[10] Miss Cobbe thinks this education far worse than that
-received by her mother in 1790, when much less was attempted, and there
-was no ‘packing the brains of girls with facts.’ Besides ‘grammar and
-geography, and a very fair share of history’ (ancient from Rollin, and
-sacred from Mrs. Trimmer), they ‘learned to speak and read French with a
-very good accent, and to play the harpsichord with taste.’ Clearly
-things were on the downward course, and in the first half of this
-century the education of both sexes was in some respects in a worse
-condition in England than at any time before or since. Mere ignorance
-would have been comparatively harmless, but there never was a time when
-educational theories were more fashionable or more perverse. Miss
-Catherine Sinclair, who wrote in the forties and fifties, lifted up her
-voice, in _Modern Accomplishments_, against the system of cram and
-display then prevailing. ‘Lady Howard’s utmost ingenuity was exercised
-in devising plans of study for her daughter, each of which required to
-be tried under the dynasty of a different governess, so that by the time
-Matilda Howard attained the age of sixteen, she had been successively
-taught by eight, all of whom were instructed in the last method that had
-been invented for making young ladies accomplished on the newest
-pattern.’ All these governesses were foreign, according to the fashion
-of the day; at last an English lady of Edgworthian type was discovered,
-who trained the mind instead of overloading the memory, and all ended
-happily. Precocity and display were what parents demanded, and schools
-and governesses contrived to supply the requirements. Miss Sinclair’s
-accounts of premature death and lifelong ill-health may have been
-overdrawn, but doubtless she put her finger on the weak spot when she
-wrote: ‘Nothing is popular now that requires thought in young people,
-who are constantly devouring books, but never digesting them, and are
-allowed no time to think.’
-
-The better the school, in the acceptation of that day, the worse
-probably the result; and those girls whose parents could not afford the
-expensive governess or the ‘finishing-school,’ often had the best of it,
-so long as they were not sent to one of the cheap and inefficient
-imitations. By a curious irony the one attempt made early in the century
-to give a good education at a small expense, was that which through
-Charlotte Brontë’s genius has been held up to everlasting contumely. The
-Clergy Daughters’ School at Cowen Bridge undertook, for the small sum of
-£14 a year, to clothe, feed, lodge, and educate the daughters of
-clergymen. In 1825, the year when Charlotte Brontë was there, the Rev.
-W. Carus Wilson (too well known as Mr. Brocklehurst), appealing for
-additional funds, stated that an annual income of £250, together with
-the fees, would be sufficient to meet current expenses. A comparison of
-this modest demand with the sums raised in our own day for women’s
-colleges, helps us to realise the revolution that has taken place in
-public opinion. Even so most of the subscribers seem to have been Mr.
-Wilson’s relations, and it was only as a charity for the poor clergy,
-with a side-thought of getting better governesses at low terms, that it
-awakened any interest at all. Still it was considered a remarkable
-achievement. In 1833, Mr. Venn Elliott, who had visited the school in
-its new premises at Casterton, and been present at the consecration of
-the church built in its neighbourhood, wrote: ‘I would rather have built
-this school and church than Blenheim and Burleigh. So Dr. Watts said he
-would rather have written Baxter’s _Call to the Unconverted_ than
-Milton’s _Paradise Lost_.’ The result of this visit was the foundation
-of St. Mary’s Hall at Brighton. It still exists, and gives a really
-first-class education at a low fee. Other schools were founded in
-imitation; and in spite of the sordid economy of those early days, and
-the suffering it entailed on the weakly, they deserve full recognition
-as almost the only institutions which attempted in the early part of the
-century to provide a good and cheap education for girls. The tradition
-of sound study survived, and in 1867 the Casterton institution came in
-for a word of praise from the Royal Commissioners, amid their almost
-universal condemnation of existing girls’ schools.
-
-The benefits which a woman’s reign always confers on women have been
-experienced to the full during the long and peaceful reign of our
-present Queen. The interest taken by her and the Prince Consort in arts
-and letters, and in the general improvement of the people, set an
-example that was readily followed. Ladies of the upper and middle
-classes began to take a keener interest in the lives of the poor, and in
-dealing with the problems they thus encountered were often brought to
-realise their own want of education. There was a stir and a movement
-towards something better. The views of men were gradually changing, as
-the ideal of womanhood set by a purer Court became more elevated. Sixty
-years of a woman’s wise and beneficent rule have done much to restore
-the glories of Elizabeth’s day. Like the revival of letters, which
-communicated to the whole world the learning which had once belonged to
-one small people, this other renaissance brought knowledge, not only to
-the convent pupil and the lady of leisure, but to all the daughters of
-the nation. This widening has helped to fix the roots more firmly, and
-we may hope and believe that the gains of this century are not to be
-lost, but, enriched by all the wealth of the future, to continue for
-many a generation to come.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II
- THE FIRST COLLEGES
-
-
-The revival of women’s education in England has now a record of fifty
-years behind it. On the 1st of May this year Queen’s College in Harley
-Street celebrated its Jubilee with manifold rejoicings, a celebration in
-which all Englishwomen may claim the right to join. Though Girton and
-Holloway and other newer institutions have arisen since to throw the
-glories of Queen’s into the shade, none can deprive it of its proud
-title—the first women’s college in England.
-
-An occasion of this kind provokes reminiscence and the drawing of
-contrasts between 1848 and 1898; while the question that naturally
-occurs to us is: How did it all begin? Many answers have been suggested.
-Some have pressed the significance of 1848 as the year of Revolution,
-and hinted that the women’s share in revolt was an attempt to throw off
-the shackles of ignorance. This may not be altogether fanciful. Such
-social upheavals symbolise the workings of intellectual forces, nor can
-we doubt that the attempt to win for women privileges from which they
-had hitherto been jealously excluded is a part of the democratic demand
-for universal equal opportunity.
-
-Along with the general ferment of ideas and the cry for reform must be
-counted the growing influence on the lives of the upper classes
-exercised by the Queen and Prince Consort. Following the lead of the
-Court the ideals of the nation were changing. A more serious view of
-life and its responsibilities was developing, and the time seemed a
-propitious one for organised effort. But though various schemes had been
-discussed, the immediate impetus to action was an actual and crying
-need. In those days girls of the upper classes were, for the most part,
-educated at home by governesses, usually foreigners, because
-Englishwomen, though glad enough to obtain such posts, when suddenly
-thrown upon the world by the death of a parent or other untoward
-circumstance, were seldom properly qualified to fill them. Some of
-course there were who, by foreign travel or private study, had reached a
-fair standard of attainment; but how distinguish these from the herd,
-when they lacked even the teacher’s diploma with which their Swiss or
-German rivals were equipped? In this dilemma the Governesses’ Benevolent
-Institution came to the rescue.
-
-This Institution had been founded in 1843 with a threefold aim:—(1) To
-afford temporary relief in cases of great suffering, (2) To cultivate
-provident habits in those who could afford to save; (3) To raise
-annuities for those past work. This programme seemed to distinguish
-governesses as a class specially in need of pity and relief. To attempt
-to help them by increasing their competency, and thus indirectly their
-wage-earning capacity, was a bold new departure. The first proposal was
-to hold examinations for a teacher’s diploma, but it soon appeared that
-an attempt to examine the untaught was a useless inversion of the
-natural order. To make the undertaking really helpful it became
-necessary to institute a system of classes. This scheme was first
-discussed in 1846, and a sum of money collected by Miss Murray, one of
-the Queen’s Maids of Honour, handed over to the Institution for this
-purpose. In 1847 the first certificates were conferred, and arrangements
-made for opening classes. Here some of the most distinguished professors
-of King’s College stepped in with help. Among them were Maurice, Trench,
-and Kingsley, and others no less noted. It was a new and astounding
-departure for men of their standing to be willing to lecture to women.
-They began with evening classes, but soon added others in the day for
-ladies of no special occupation. This led to the taking of 67 Harley
-Street, for the purpose of holding classes in ‘all branches of female
-learning,’ and permission was received to name the new institution
-Queen’s College.
-
-On March 29, 1848, Professor F. D. Maurice, who has been called the
-‘parent and founder of the College,’ delivered an inaugural address on
-‘Queen’s College, London, its objects and methods.’ After apologising
-for the word ‘college’ as somewhat too ambitious for the project in
-hand, he thought well to answer in advance the objections of those who
-might use Pope’s hackneyed line about ‘a little learning’ as a means of
-discrediting the new classes. Even he did not anticipate very deep
-draughts from the spring of knowledge. ‘We are aware that our pupils are
-not likely to advance far in mathematics, but we believe that if they
-learn really what they do learn, they will not have got what is
-dangerous but what is safe.... I cannot conceive that a young lady can
-feel her mind in a more dangerous state than it was, because she has
-gained a truer glimpse into the conditions under which the world in
-which it has pleased God to place her actually exists.’
-
-Each of the first courses was preceded by a preliminary lecture, in
-which the professor introduced, and almost apologised for his subject.
-Latin was to win toleration as ‘one road, and perhaps the shortest, to a
-thorough study of English’; in each case it was shown that the evils
-anticipated from that particular subject were fanciful. These
-explanations strike us quaintly now; it is hard to realise how great was
-the terror of learned ladies which in those days it was fashionable to
-assume.
-
-Still, in spite of prejudice, the College flourished. There were no less
-than two hundred entries the first term. In 1853 it had grown
-sufficiently independent to stand on its own feet, and breaking away
-from the parent institution, it was incorporated by Royal Charter. Its
-objects were declared to be the general education of ladies, and the
-granting of certificates of knowledge. Professor Maurice became Chairman
-of Committee and Principal; and Queen’s, which loves its old traditions,
-has continued the practice of appointing a male Principal, therein
-differing from every other women’s college in the United Kingdom. It
-feels so keenly the debt it owes its founders, that it cherishes the
-idea—mistaken surely—that it can best do them honour by maintaining the
-college such as it was in their day. Thus the fate of many a pioneer has
-overtaken Queen’s. The vanguard have become the laggards, and useful and
-admirable as is its work, it has been outstripped by younger
-institutions, and no longer stands in the forefront of the battle. This
-is the common fate; it is easier to improve than to originate, but the
-debt of gratitude we all owe to Queen’s is none the less because so many
-others have harvested where she sowed.
-
-Since Queen’s takes pride in its conservatism and adherence to its
-original methods, the latest calendar gives a very fair idea of its work
-even in early days. It states that ‘the College provides for the higher
-education of women, in the first place by a liberal school training,
-and, subsequently, by a four years’ course of College education. The
-College education leads to the grade of Associate ... and after a
-further course of study to the higher grade of Fellow of the College.’
-The school was not part of the original scheme, but became necessary
-when the first generation of students, thoughtful women who had already
-been trying to improve themselves, and eagerly welcomed the advantages
-then for the first time offered them, gave way to a younger generation.
-Among the applicants for admission were mere schoolgirls, and instead of
-turning them away to seek inefficient preparation elsewhere, it was
-resolved to start a preparatory department for their benefit. This
-developed into a small school for girls under fourteen, the age at which
-pupils are admitted into the College. Here the students belong to two
-categories: those who follow a prescribed course laid down by the
-authorities, and those who enter for single classes, and arrange their
-work themselves. The former class are known as ‘compounders,’ and pay a
-composition fee of £8 to £10 per term. They must attend eighteen hours a
-week of regular class teaching. The regulations fix the subjects for
-twelve hours; parents or guardians for the other six. The prescribed
-work includes—(_a_) two languages: English, two hours, and French,
-German, Latin, or Greek, two hours; (_b_) two sciences: Mathematics and
-Arithmetic, four hours; Geography, one hour, Natural Philosophy, one
-hour, when exemption is granted in Mathematics; (_c_) English History,
-one hour, Ancient or Modern History, one hour; (_d_) Holy Scripture, one
-hour.
-
-Candidates for the Fellowship must have passed the examination for the
-Associateship at least one academical year previously to entering for
-the Fellowship examination. For this, one principal subject of study
-must be chosen, with not fewer than two additional subjects. Since only
-three students had, in 1897, concluded this additional course, the
-Associateship may be regarded as the ordinary goal of Queen’s College
-students. The course for this is excellent, doubtless, for girls from
-fourteen to eighteen; but studies of so miscellaneous a character,
-leading to a ‘grade’ which can be attained at the age of eighteen,
-belong properly to the domain of school work. Queen’s differs, however,
-in its organisation from the upper department of a modern High School.
-Most of the teaching is given in the form of lectures. This
-lecture-system marks a distinct stage in the progress of girls’
-education. In the schools of the early part of the century the various
-‘professors’ who came to lecture occupied an important place in the
-prospectus. They ranged freely over the sciences in a manner that amused
-and interested their hearers, without making any undue demand upon their
-intelligence or powers of thought. Hence, the lecture-system seems to
-have established itself as a first step towards attracting female pupils
-to the higher branches of knowledge. The High Schools, too, were to pass
-through that stage, and emerge from it. Queen’s still keeps up the
-tradition of lectures, and as its discipline and general arrangements
-differ from those of a school, without resembling those of a college, it
-must be regarded as an institution apart, self-contained, and
-unconnected. As such it is of the greatest value in supplementing the
-home-teaching of girls, or undertaking the complete education of those
-who do not desire to enter the University, or take up any distinct
-profession. These would probably get a better practical preparation at a
-good high school. Still the others are likely to remain the majority,
-and there will always be an important function for an institution that
-supplies good teaching without any compulsion to enter for outside
-examination. Such, at any rate, is the view of the Council, who have
-commemorated their Jubilee by a renewal of the lease, and the general
-improvement and partial reconstruction of the premises. In its old home,
-with unbroken traditions, gathering in the children and grandchildren of
-its earliest students, it is continuing the work with which, fifty years
-ago, it inaugurated the revival of women’s education.
-
-Although Queen’s was the first college actually opened, other similar
-schemes were being projected at the same time. The foundation in 1826 of
-University College had given an impetus to advanced studies in London,
-and as a perfectly undenominational institution it served as the model
-for Bedford Ladies’ College. The foundress and benefactor of Bedford was
-Mrs. Reid. Her wish to help girls took effect in 1847 in the
-establishment of classes at her own house. Two years later she took a
-house in Bedford Square and gave £1500 towards the initial expenses.
-Mrs. Reid and her friends were ambitious. They meant to found a real
-place of higher education for women, and in doing so they did not
-hesitate to break with the past. Mrs. Reid felt convinced that women
-could best understand the needs of girls, and though a committee
-consisting chiefly of men might at that time have included more
-distinguished names, she probably kept in mind the time to come when the
-college would be able to invite its own old pupils on to its committee.
-The co-operation of ladies was in the first instance secured by the
-institution of lady-visitors, to be present in turn at lectures—a plan
-at that time considered indispensable, and adopted also at Queen’s. It
-was arranged that the College Board should include the forty
-lady-visitors and six gentlemen. This Board annually appointed the
-Council of Management, and the Council elected the professors and all
-the officers of the college. This plan seemed to answer, and the
-college, which was fortunate enough to secure the services of such able
-men as De Morgan, F. W. Newman, and Dr. Carpenter, entered on a
-successful career. After a while pupils came in from a distance.
-Provision had to be made for these, and in 1861 a second house was taken
-and the upper floors adapted as a residence, while the lower ones were
-used for class-rooms. For a few years Bedford too had to maintain a
-school, but this was not part of the promoters’ scheme, and they hailed
-the first signs of improved school teaching as a pretext for closing it.
-This happened in 1868, at a time when circumstances made a complete
-reorganisation of the college necessary with a distinct declaration of
-policy.
-
-The change had been hastened by the death of Mrs. Reid. She left a
-considerable part of her fortune in the charge of three trustees, Miss
-Bostock, Miss J. Martineau, and Miss E. E. Smith, to be utilised for
-‘purposes of higher education.’ This seemed a suitable moment to seek
-incorporation, and in 1869 Bedford College received its charter. Its
-objects were thus described:
-
-‘1. To continue with an improved constitution the College for women
-which has been carried on since 1849 in Bedford Square, London, and has
-been known since the year 1860 as Bedford College.
-
-‘2. To provide thereby a liberal education for women, such education not
-to extend beyond secular subjects.’
-
-Henceforth the management was vested in members of the college, with a
-Council elected from the number and a President, to be called the
-Visitor. This office has been held successively by Erasmus Darwin, Mark
-Pattison, and Miss Anna Swanwick.
-
-Bedford, like Queen’s, was happy in its founders, but to none does it
-owe more than to Miss Bostock. After Mrs. Reid’s death she took over the
-care of the college as a sacred trust, devoting to it the greater part
-of her time, and helping it with money and good counsel. Happily she
-lived to see the fruit of her labours, and to know that Bedford College
-had won an assured position through its connection with the London
-University.
-
-Its beginnings, like that of most women’s institutions, had to be
-tentative. The first lectures probably had a more popular character than
-those now given; and since they aimed rather at general culture than a
-systematic course of study, Literature, History, and Language would draw
-the largest audiences. But from the very first Latin, Science, and
-Mathematics were taught, and the college remembers with due pride that
-George Eliot was a member of its earliest Latin class. At any rate the
-promoters were quite sure of their aims. The daring words, ‘a liberal
-education for women,’ had been uttered without extenuation or apology.
-But in those days Bedford College stood alone, with no academic body to
-test its work and direct its curriculum. Nor was public opinion yet
-fully ripe for a real University education for women. Bedford had to
-wait another ten years before the opening of the London degrees came to
-fix its position and define its studies. They were not wasted years. The
-college was giving numbers of intelligent and eager girls their first
-insight into real knowledge, and teaching them to be dissatisfied with
-narrow, cramping instruction. Many of them have gone out into the world
-to hand on the impulse and inspiration gained here, and help to
-influence that public opinion which alone has made admission to the
-Universities possible. In 1874 the college was helped by a move to
-better premises. When in 1879 London opened its degrees to women, the
-opportunity of Bedford had come, and it was ready to use it. From this
-date onward its history belongs to that of Women’s University Education.
-
-These two earliest colleges may be regarded as not only pioneers but
-also parent institutions. They drew within the sphere of their influence
-many of those women who were to train up the next generation. Among the
-earliest pupils of the Queen’s College evening classes was Miss Buss,
-who was already teaching in her mother’s private school, and was
-destined to found the first public school for girls. She was one of the
-first to win the governess diploma. Another was Miss Dorothea Beale, so
-well known for her work at Cheltenham. She remained at Queen’s from 1849
-to 1856, first teaching Mathematics, then Latin, and afterwards in
-charge of the school. In 1858 she became Principal of the Cheltenham
-Ladies’ College, which had already been at work for five years.
-
-The Cheltenham College differed in its original idea from Queen’s and
-Bedford. Both these had been founded with the purpose of giving women
-such advanced education as they were at that time capable of receiving,
-and had gradually been compelled by the exigencies of the case to
-provide for girls as well. Cheltenham, though called a college in
-imitation of the boys’ college in that town and some other public
-schools, really aimed in the first instance at providing for girls
-similar educational advantages to those which their brothers enjoyed in
-the same town. As King’s College had suggested Queen’s, the boys’
-college at Cheltenham suggested the girls’. Twelve years elapsed between
-the foundation of the two; and Queen’s and Bedford were already pointing
-the way when a small committee of enthusiasts met at the house of Mr.
-Bellairs, one of H.M. Inspectors, and drew up a prospectus, inviting the
-public to take shares in the new undertaking. A day-school was all that
-was at first contemplated, and the subjects to be taught there were
-described as Holy Scripture and the Liturgy, history, geography,
-grammar, arithmetic, French, music, drawing, needlework. German,
-Italian, and dancing to be extras. The proposal found favour. Shares to
-the amount of about £2000 were taken up, a house hired, and the new
-venture started with good auspices, 88 pupils entering the first term,
-and the numbers soon going up to 120. It is not quite easy to understand
-why this prosperous beginning was not followed up. After a while the
-numbers went down, and the college seemed to be losing favour. Probably
-it was ahead of local public opinion, not yet abreast of North London,
-where Miss Buss was already successfully at work. The first years were
-times of struggle, and even the appointment of Miss Beale in 1858 did
-not at once turn the scale. After forty years of successful work in the
-college, Miss Beale can enjoy the pleasure of contrasting then and now.
-Some of her reminiscences throw a curious light on public opinion in the
-early fifties. The curriculum, unpretentious as it seems, proved too
-advanced. Parents objected to the thoroughness of the teaching, and the
-time given to arithmetic and similar subjects. Some disliked the annual
-examination, which was held to be unfeminine, and the difficulty of
-obtaining good teachers was almost insuperable. In regard to these Miss
-Beale suffered through being ahead of her times. She desired especially
-two things: that the teachers should be women, for, to quote her own
-words, ‘we think it essential to the right moral training of girls that
-the whole internal discipline and much of the moral training should be
-in the hands of ladies’; and that they should be to some extent
-specialists, the only way to abolish the textbook cram and unintelligent
-memory work then in vogue in girls’ schools. How she set out again and
-again to seek for teachers, and how many a time she was disappointed,
-she has herself recorded in her history of the college. Her efforts show
-how hard it was to found a school before the reformation of the higher
-education had given the necessary impetus from above. It was a case of
-making bricks without straw.
-
-Perhaps the practical difficulties in the way of finance were really the
-most hampering, for the founders had too little experience of these
-matters; and a Mr. Brancker, who as treasurer, by readjusting the whole
-system of fees, put the College on a sound financial basis, may almost
-count as its second founder.
-
-In 1863, five years after Miss Beale took office, some Oxford examiners
-were invited to inspect and report on the school. This was a new
-departure; it meant an acknowledgment of the connection which should
-exist between girls’ schools and the Universities. A small thing in
-itself, but typical of the many changes that the next five-and-twenty
-years were to bring.
-
-From this time onward the College was brought into close connection with
-every educational reform in England; and its history, like that of the
-North London Collegiate, presents in miniature the various changes of
-this busy quarter of a century. In 1863 an informal examination was held
-for girls in the papers of the Cambridge Local Examination. This was the
-beginning of a new departure, and from that time forth preparation for
-one or other of the local University examinations formed part of the
-work of both schools. In 1866, Miss Beale and Miss Buss were called upon
-to give evidence before the Royal Commission, and the plan of these two
-schools was thus brought before the notice of the general public. The
-interest that resulted in all questions concerning the education of
-girls reacted on these first schools. For Miss Buss it won an endowment,
-for Cheltenham that recognition which means success. It became possible
-to raise the standard and enlarge the curriculum. Mathematics, Science,
-Latin and Greek, were added to the prospectus. Applications from pupils
-outside the town necessitated the opening of a boarding-house in 1864.
-The College was fast outgrowing its first home; then came a fresh
-obstacle to overcome. Building had become essential, but prejudice stood
-in the way. Although good premises and beautiful surroundings have long
-been regarded as essential for boys’ schools and colleges and a really
-important factor in the training given there, the prejudice that any
-makeshift was good enough for girls has died hard, if indeed it can even
-now be called dead. Miss Beale naturally desired to see the now
-flourishing College in adequate and beautiful buildings. This seemed to
-some of the governors too daring a departure. However, after many
-struggles and defeats, the party of progress carried the day. The new
-premises, the nucleus of the present beautiful College buildings, were
-opened in 1873. Of course they had the effect of attracting additional
-numbers; and when three years later, further extension became necessary,
-it appeared that the College had not merely outgrown its premises, but
-also its constitution. The time had come to put it on a more lasting
-basis. At a meeting of shareholders it was decided to renounce all claim
-on a profit, and accept instead a right of nomination on each share, as
-is done at several boys’ proprietary schools. The whole income became
-available for the payment of teachers, the maintenance and improvement
-of the buildings, school furniture and apparatus. The government was
-placed in the hands of a council of twenty-four persons, six being
-representative members chosen by the Bishop of the Diocese, the
-Universities of Oxford, Cambridge, and London, the Lady Principal and
-the staff of teachers, while the remaining eighteen were elected by the
-shareholders. The inclusion of women on this body has proved specially
-beneficial to the College.
-
-By this time there were 500 girls in the school, and ten licensed
-boarding-houses. Many internal changes had taken place, corresponding to
-the changes in the world without. The Cambridge Local Examinations had
-proved helpful in the early days, and the establishment in 1868 of the
-Cambridge Higher Local supplied a definite aim for the work of the
-senior classes. It has always been popular at Cheltenham, and over 500
-girls have passed it from the College. Another impetus was given to work
-by the institution of the special women’s examination of the University
-of London; during the nine years of its existence, one-third of the
-successful candidates came from Cheltenham. But it was the formal
-opening of the London degrees that led to the present complete
-organisation of the College with its system of departments, leading
-respectively to the Oxford Senior, Cambridge Higher, and London
-University Examinations. By this time Girton, Newnham, and other women’s
-colleges had come into existence. Cheltenham could send its pupils to
-continue their studies at the older Universities, and the specialist
-teachers, for whom Miss Beale had sighed in vain in the early days, were
-now forthcoming. Fashion too was beginning to smile on those more
-serious studies which the College had so long pursued in the face of
-prejudice. The time of struggle was over. Cheltenham was no longer in
-advance of the tide, but moving harmoniously with it, giving help and
-receiving it.
-
-Cheltenham College, as it now exists, has certain peculiarities which
-distinguish it from most of the girls’ schools of the present day.
-Firstly, it does not receive all comers, but is distinctly intended for
-the ‘daughters of gentlemen,’ and references in regard to social
-standing are required before admission. Secondly, it combines the
-functions of a day and boarding-school, by a system of boarding-houses
-which belong to the Council, and are under the general control and
-supervision of the Principal. Thirdly, it is not one large school, but a
-system of departments under separate heads, all under the direction of
-the Principal. Division I. is under Miss Beale herself. The work is
-directed towards: (1) the London Degrees; (2) the Cambridge Higher
-Local; (3) the Oxford Senior and Higher Local Examinations. This
-division is the College proper, and is organised to some extent on
-college lines. Division II. has about 200 pupils between twelve and
-sixteen. Division III., the juvenile department, has about 70 pupils
-between seven and twelve. Below this comes the Kindergarten. By-students
-may attend single courses of lectures as at Queen’s and Bedford.
-
-Cheltenham College is thus enabled from its own resources to take a
-child straight from the nursery, and after many years send her forth as
-a full-fledged graduate of London University. It is neither to be
-expected nor desired that many girls should thus receive the whole of
-their education under one roof, but while some attend one department and
-some another, the College does in itself comprise the three stages of
-education: primary, secondary, higher. It has gone even further, for it
-takes an important part in the work of training teachers, which has been
-so largely developed of late years. The training department has three
-distinct divisions, in which teachers are prepared for Kindergarten,
-Secondary, and Public Elementary Schools. The ‘Hall of Residence,’ which
-is growing so much in favour now, is also represented at Cheltenham by
-St. Hilda’s, a residential college for students over eighteen, and in
-particular the twenty foundationers who are intending teachers and are
-received at reduced fees. Finally, the Old Girls’ Guild with its eleven
-hundred members all over the world, its College Settlement in the East
-End of London, and its biennial meetings at Cheltenham, keeps the
-College in constant touch with the work, social, philanthropic, and
-professional, that is being done by women at the present day.
-
-The Cheltenham College has become a little world of itself. It presents
-in miniature each of the developments in women’s education which has
-taken place in the last fifty years. The dignity of its beautiful
-buildings, the ideals which take visible form in the statues of
-representative women, and the stained-glass presentations of Scripture
-characters and female virtues, seem to link it to the past; the energy
-and enthusiasm of its Principal, and the full tide of life that pulses
-through the whole, assure its place in the future of girls’ education.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III
- LIGHT IN DARK PLACES
-
-
-The fifties had witnessed the rise of these earliest colleges, and given
-hope to a little band of reformers whose efforts on behalf of light and
-progress were the chief feature of the sixties. Never was a reform
-happier in its advocates. Frances Buss, dreaming, while yet in her
-teens, of giving to future generations of girls that public school life
-which had been denied to her; Anne Clough, recording in her early diary
-the longing to do her country some great service; Emily Davies, devoting
-all her thought and energy to making that dream of a women’s college a
-reality; Dorothea Beale, struggling against opposition and prejudice to
-build up the wonderful organisation at Cheltenham—these were some of the
-pioneers whose names have become as household words, whose portraits
-hang in many a home even beyond the seas, the patron saints of our girl
-students.
-
-Side by side with these worked others, both men and women, who had come
-to realise the deplorable condition of girls’ education. On the one
-hand, complaints were heard of their incompetence in domestic matters.
-‘They cannot keep house accounts,’ says one writer; ‘they neither can
-make puddings nor direct servants in making them; they cannot make or
-mend their clothes; in a sick-room they are either so nervous or so
-senseless that their presence is worse than useless.’ On the other, we
-hear of the terrible strain consequent on what was by curious irony
-called over-education—girls sitting at their books or piano from morning
-to night, loading their memories with undigested facts. Both evils
-proceeded from the same cause. ‘Everything that is taught is taught
-dogmatically, and consequently the powers of research, inquiry,
-analysis, and reason either are altogether crushed out or rust from want
-of use.’[11]
-
-At this time public schools for girls were practically unknown. Teaching
-was no profession for women—it was the acknowledged resource of the
-middle-aged spinster left penniless by her father, or the widow whose
-husband had made ducks and drakes of the money. It was the one thing
-that anybody could do, since it required neither knowledge nor
-experience. All that was necessary was to hire a house, with a little
-saved or borrowed capital, and put up a brass plate on the door,
-announcing the existence of a select establishment for young ladies.
-Each schoolmistress did what seemed good in her own eyes or those of her
-pupils’ parents, and though, when the principal was herself a cultivated
-woman, she often inspired her pupils with a love of books that remained
-with them in after years, these cases were the exceptions. The condition
-of the great mass of cheap day-schools was deplorable.
-
-An attempt to penetrate beyond these brass-plated doors was made by
-Madame Bodichon, who as Barbara Leigh Smith had attended some of the
-earliest classes at Bedford College. The results of her inquiry were
-given to the Social Science Congress at Glasgow in 1860. She strongly
-denounced the little cheap private day-schools, academies, and such
-like, ‘often conducted by broken-down trades-people, who failing in
-gaining a livelihood in a good trade, take in despair to what is justly
-considered, in consequence of the competition of the schools assisted by
-government, as a very bad business.’ Happily, times have changed, and we
-can afford to smile at the picture of these ‘genteel’ establishments,
-with their ‘insufficient room and ventilation,’ where the young ladies
-were taught about the ‘four elements, earth, air, fire, and water,’ and,
-shutting their eyes and their windows, studied the wonders of nature in
-little cheap catechisms.
-
-Some test for distinguishing good schools from bad ones seemed desirable
-in the best interests of teachers and pupils. In 1857 and 1858 Oxford
-and Cambridge had instituted local examinations for young persons not
-members of the Universities. These had proved useful in raising the
-standard of middle-class education, giving an aim and a stimulus to
-small schools. Why not do the same for girls? It was decided to make the
-attempt. In October 1862 a small committee was formed in London, with
-Miss Emily Davies as secretary. Permission was asked and given to
-conduct an informal examination for girls with the same papers as were
-set to the boys. The examiners looked over the answers and reported on
-them. The results were somewhat startling. Out of forty senior
-candidates thirty-four failed in preliminary arithmetic. The juniors did
-a little better. The average work in English was pronounced fair, and in
-grammar very good. French did not compare unfavourably with the boys. In
-German only twelve candidates presented themselves; all passed—three
-with distinction. Not such a bad record after all, but of course it was
-only the progressive schools that were represented. These learned that
-they must look to their arithmetic, and they did so with excellent
-results. Both the successes and the failures showed the value of the
-experiment, and it was resolved to repeat it. A memorial was sent to the
-Vice-Chancellor of Cambridge, signed by more than a thousand persons
-engaged in teaching or interested in education. The result was the
-formal admission of girls to these examinations. In 1865 they were held
-at six places: Brighton, Bristol, Cambridge, Manchester, London, and
-Sheffield. A hundred and twenty-six candidates entered; ninety passed. A
-great advance had been made in two years. Arithmetic was no longer a
-stumbling-block. Out of the whole number of candidates only three failed
-in it. English history came in for a share of praise. ‘The examiners
-thought the style of the girls’ replies better than that of the boys.’
-‘The answers of the senior and junior girls were orderly and methodical,
-and the writing and expression good. The papers of many gave proof of
-care and ability on the part of both teacher and scholar,’ and more to
-the same effect. In 1866 there were two hundred and two girls at ten
-centres. This time the report was even more satisfactory.
-
-These results were most valuable. They proved that there must be many
-good schools in the country, and some teachers who could learn from the
-success and failure of their pupils. No time could have been more
-opportune for this experiment, for just then a Royal Commission was
-making an inquiry into all the schools that had not been included in the
-Popular Education Commission, or that which examined into the nine great
-public schools. This really meant a general survey of boys’ secondary
-education; and to boys it would have been confined, had it not been for
-those same energetic women who had inaugurated the reform of girls’
-education. Here was an opportunity not to be missed. Once more
-signatures were collected for a memorial, this time to beg for the
-inclusion of girls’ schools in the scope of the inquiry. This was
-granted, and consent given to the admission of a few ladies to give
-evidence. Some trepidation was felt at so novel a proceeding. Thirty
-years later, when another such Commission was appointed, and women were
-included among the Commissioners, their appointment caused less remark
-than the invitation given in 1865 to a few ladies to give information on
-a subject on which none were better qualified to speak. So quickly has
-public opinion changed!
-
-Nine ladies gave evidence before the Commission. The most valuable
-testimony came from Miss Buss, at that time head of a large private
-school, Miss Beale, Principal of Cheltenham College, and Miss Emily
-Davies, who was taking so active a part in all reforms that concerned
-girls. Eight Assistant Commissioners were requested to make special
-inquiries as to the girls’ schools in selected districts. Their task
-proved no easy one. The request to be allowed to inspect schools or
-procure information about them by other means was met sometimes by
-indignant refusal, at others by a silence as eloquent. However, in spite
-of difficulties, it proved possible to obtain returns from a good number
-and examine some more or less thoroughly. Since the assumption seems
-fair that it was the superior schools which were most ready for
-inspection, the reports must be read with the mental addition of an even
-worse state of things behind that remained unrevealed. At any rate,
-there was enough to make out a case for action.
-
-The report which was issued in 1867 summarised the impression formed by
-the Assistant Commissioners. ‘It cannot be denied that the picture
-brought before us of the state of middle-class female education is, on
-the whole, unfavourable. The general deficiency in girls’ education is
-stated with the utmost confidence, and with entire agreement, with
-whatever difference of words, by many witnesses of authority. Want of
-thoroughness and foundation; want of system; slovenliness and showy
-superficiality; inattention to rudiments; undue time given to
-accomplishments, and those not taught intelligently or in any scientific
-manner; want of organisation—these may sufficiently indicate the
-character of the complaints we have received in their most general
-aspect. It is needless to observe that the same complaints apply to a
-great extent to boys’ education. But, on the whole, the evidence is
-clear that, not as they might be but as they are, the girls’ schools are
-inferior in this view to the boys’ schools.’ Mr. Norris, one of the
-Assistant Commissioners, says: ‘We find, as a rule, a very small amount
-of professional skill, an inferior set of school-books, a vast deal of
-dry, uninteresting task-work, rules put into the memory with no
-explanation of their principles, no system of examination worthy of the
-name, a very false estimate of the relative value of the several kinds
-of acquirement, a reference to effect rather than to solid worth, a
-tendency to fill or adorn rather than strengthen the mind.’
-
-There is unanimous testimony as to the undue amount of time given to
-accomplishments, music in particular. There are some elaborate
-calculations as to the total number of hours spent on acquiring a
-mechanical skill on the piano, though about a third of the pupils never
-make the slightest use of it after they have left school. The music
-played is bad; there is little training for the taste and none for the
-mind in this study to which girls devote almost as much time as their
-brothers do to classics. Next to music modern languages absorbed most of
-the time and energies of the pupils, and yet the Commissioners
-unanimously report with severity on the results attained. Very few girls
-could compose a French sentence correctly; slipshod grammar and bad
-pronunciation are noted, and set down to the habit of speaking French
-out of school hours, by which a sort of jargon was developed
-incomprehensible to an outsider, and not even up to the standard of
-Stratford-atte-Bowe. On the subject of Science Mr. Fitch wrote: ‘Few
-things are sadder than to see how the sublimest of all physical sciences
-is vulgarised in ladies’ schools. No subject, if properly taught, is
-better calculated to exalt the imagination and to kindle large thoughts
-in a pupils mind. Yet all the grandeur and vastness are eliminated from
-the study of Astronomy as commonly pursued; and the pupils whose
-attention has never been directed to any one of the great laws by which
-the universe is governed, think they are learning astronomy when they
-are twisting a globe round and round, and solving a few problems in
-latitude and longitude.’
-
-Arithmetic comes in for the worst censure. It is spoken of as ‘the weak
-point in women teachers.’ ‘It would be an affectation of politeness,’
-says Mr. Hammond, to say a word on behalf of the arithmetic taught by
-ladies. It is always meagre and almost always unintelligent.’ The
-school-books receive almost unqualified abuse, in particular _Mangnall’s
-Questions_ and ‘all the noxious brood of catechisms.’ History and
-‘miscellaneous subjects’ are too often taught from these, geography and
-grammar from wretched little text-books, all the sciences in the course
-of a few lectures. Now and then a word of praise is given to English
-literature and composition, _e.g._, ‘English literature occupies a more
-prominent position in the education of girls than of boys.... The object
-of the lessons is to exercise the memory and to cultivate the
-imagination of the scholars; their most beneficial result is observable
-in the style of composition acquired by girls at a comparatively early
-age. Whereas a boy of fifteen hardly ever succeeds in putting together
-half a dozen readable sentences, a girl of the same age often writes
-with much freedom and fluency.... A bundle of letters written by girls
-of seventeen or eighteen afforded me real pleasure; many of these were
-well conceived and well expressed, and they presented a variety of style
-and subject which proved that they were not manufactured to order or
-cast in any stereotyped mould.’[12]
-
-One of the most serious defects is the lack of all physical training,
-while attempts are made to combine exercise and instruction, _e.g._ by
-repeating French verbs when out walking, thus achieving neither result
-satisfactorily.
-
-Not only were the Commissioners of one mind in their strictures, but
-there is a striking unanimity about their recommendations. Mr. Giffard’s
-lucid summary may be taken as also representing the views of his
-colleagues: ‘If I were to sum up the impression I derived from my visits
-to girls’ schools, I should say, (1) that the mental training of the
-best girls’ schools is unmistakably inferior to that of the best boys’
-schools; (2) that there is no natural inaptitude in girls to deal with
-any of the subjects which form the staple of a boy’s education; (3) that
-there is no disinclination on the part of the majority of teachers to
-assimilate the studies of girls to those of boys; (4) that the present
-inferiority of girls’ training is due to the despotism of fashion, or,
-in other words, the despotism of parents or guardians.’
-
-There is a general consensus of opinion on the following points:—
-
-1. Most girls’ schools are too small.
-
-‘There is little life, no collective instruction, and nothing to call
-forth the best powers of either teacher or learner in a school where
-each class consists of two or three pupils only.’—(Mr. Fitch.)
-
-2. They lack proper organisation.
-
-‘There is a certain number of classes or of girls learning particular
-things, but there is neither any definite course of studies nor any
-grouping of classes, so as to play into one another.’—(Mr. Bryce.)
-
-3. Want of proper proportion in arranging subjects.
-
-4. Poor quality of the teaching, due to the inferior education of the
-teachers themselves.
-
-5. Lack of an external standard to act as a stimulus to the learner and
-help to the teacher.
-
-Mr. Bryce’s recommendations are of special interest, since they mark out
-the lines on which the chief reforms have proceeded. They are these:—
-
-1. The establishment of schools for girls under proper authority and
-supervision. ‘It would be at all events most desirable to provide in
-every town large enough to be worthy of a grammar school a day school
-for girls, under public management, where a plain, sound education
-should be offered at the lowest prices (from £5 per annum or upwards)
-compatible with the provision of good salaries for teachers, and which
-should be regularly examined by competent persons thereto appointed.’
-
-2. Considerable changes in the course of instruction for girls of all
-classes. ‘It would be proper to lay more stress upon arithmetic, to
-introduce mathematics everywhere, and Latin where there is a fair
-prospect of a girl’s being able to spend four hours a week upon it for
-three years.’
-
-3. The foundation of institutions which should give to women the same
-opportunity of obtaining higher education which the Universities give to
-boys. The lack of this higher training injures the school education by
-lowering its tone, and opening up no wider field of knowledge to the
-more studious and eager scholars. An even worse result is ‘the low
-standard of education and of knowledge about education among
-schoolmistresses and governesses.’... ‘It is from the advent of more
-highly educated teachers that the first improvement in the education of
-girls is to be hoped for.’
-
-Such was the verdict of this famous Commission, whose ‘revelations’ have
-figured in so many prizegiving speeches. The report filled twenty stout
-volumes, which were duly relegated to their place on official shelves,
-to accumulate dust; and there, thirty years after, they have been joined
-by the nine volumes drawn up by our latest educational Commission. Truly
-has it been said that the best way to shelve a question in England is to
-let a Royal Commission sit upon it. But even a Royal Commission and a
-twenty-volume report could not shelve the subject of girls’ education;
-the reformers were too much in earnest. Miss Beale extracted from these
-ponderous blue tomes all that related to girls, and reprinted it in a
-compact little volume. Even before its appearance action had been taken.
-The Cambridge Local Examinations had drawn schoolmistresses together and
-given them a common interest. They now began to form associations in
-different parts of the country. One was started in London, with Miss
-Buss as President and Miss Davies as Secretary. The North of England
-proved a specially congenial sphere for this form of union. The Ladies’
-Honorary Council of the Yorkshire Board of Education was an outcome of
-the introduction into that county of the Local Examinations, but it soon
-extended its operations over wider fields, _e.g._ domestic economy and
-sanitary science, as well as the extension of endowments to girls.
-
-Even more far-reaching in its results was the North of England Council.
-This too originated in Schoolmistresses’ associations, among which Miss
-A. J. Clough was a moving spirit. In 1865 she contributed to
-_Macmillan’s Magazine_ an article setting forth certain schemes for
-improving girls’ education. One of these was to establish in other large
-towns courses of lectures similar to those given at Queen’s and Bedford
-Colleges, to be attended by the older pupils from schools and by
-teachers. Co-operation between several towns would make it possible to
-engage really able lecturers from Oxford and Cambridge. The experiment
-was first tried at Liverpool, and spread to Manchester, Leeds, and
-Sheffield. Associations were formed in these four towns, and by the
-election of two representatives from each, the ‘North of England Council
-for Promoting the Higher Education of Women’ was constituted in 1867,
-with Miss Clough as secretary and Mrs. Butler as president. The lectures
-proved a phenomenal success. In the autumn of 1868 the numbers of the
-combined audiences in nine towns amounted to 1500, and Mr. F. Myers
-writing of them in _Macmillan_, enumerated their advantages thus:
-
-‘1. They contain within themselves the germ of university extension.
-
-‘2. They confront young women in a reasonable manner with reasonable
-men.
-
-‘3. They encourage and help governesses, who attend in large numbers,
-and are glad to have good teaching and to know of the best books.
-
-‘4. They form a nucleus for educational libraries and for the
-friendships of fellow-students.
-
-‘5. They pay.’
-
-These lectures were in actual fact the beginning of University
-Extension, but the work of the North of England Council did not stop
-here. A further aim for study was needed, and some more advanced
-examination than those for girls under eighteen, if women were to be
-qualified to instruct girls in anything but elementary subjects. A
-petition was drawn up and sent to Cambridge with the signatures of over
-600 ladies engaged in teaching, 300 interested in it, and six members of
-the late Schools’ Inquiry Commission. They pointed out ‘the great want
-which is felt by women of the upper and middle classes, particularly by
-those engaged in teaching, of higher examinations suitable to their own
-needs.’ The petition was granted, and the first Women’s Examination held
-in 1869.
-
-Looking back on these past days now that it is the fashion to decry
-examination as the death of education, it is interesting to realise what
-this much abused system really did to give it fresh life. The Cambridge
-Senior and Junior Locals were the first link established between girls’
-schools and the university, and it would be difficult to over-estimate
-their value in this period of chaos. Their utility was recognised at
-once. They spread all over the country and to the colonies; and they are
-widely used by schools, both public and private, and by children working
-with governesses at home. Edinburgh and Durham soon followed suit in the
-admission of girls, and in 1870 Oxford too relented. London did its part
-by instituting a special Women’s Examination on the lines of
-Matriculation, and in 1869 that of Cambridge was held for the first
-time. These were the germs of future developments. At London the way was
-paved for opening the degrees to women; the Cambridge Women’s
-Examination led to the foundation of Newnham.
-
-To some extent the work of these examinations is done. Conditions have
-changed; and the establishment of the Oxford and Cambridge Joint Board,
-and the opening of the universities to women have removed the necessity
-for this kind of examination in schools of the first grade. But in small
-private, and in middle-grade schools, and for children working with
-governesses at home, they are still of distinct use, and their
-popularity does not seem to diminish, if numbers are any test. Should
-they ever become needless, owing to a more perfect school organisation,
-we must still hold their memory in respect, for they can show a good
-record. It is their merit that at a time when no schoolmistress had a
-College training and no University examiner ever entered a girls’
-school, they supplied a slender link between the school and the
-university, and when there was no standard for girls’ education, and
-often neither organisation nor curriculum, they did afford an aim and a
-stimulus, which, if not absolutely the best, proved at any rate
-trustworthy guides. If examination is not education it has often led to
-it, and never more successfully than in the case of girls and women.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV
- THE HIGH SCHOOLS
-
-
-The Report of the Schools’ Inquiry Commission in 1867 served as a
-revelation, for it brought home to the general public the exceedingly
-unsatisfactory condition of middle-class education for both boys and
-girls. Its immediate outcome was an examination and redistribution of
-endowments, in which for the first time the claims of girls were
-considered. But it was evident that even the most judicious application
-of existing endowments could not suffice to fill all the educational
-gaps in the country. The Commissioners had therefore included among
-their recommendations the following:—1. To offer proprietary and private
-schools the same inspection and examination as were required in public
-schools, and to make their position more assured by a system of school
-registration. 2. To give power to towns and parishes to rate themselves
-for the establishment of new schools. These suggestions remained a pious
-opinion, for no action was officially taken, but (as so often happens in
-England) private enterprise stepped in, and compensated for public
-laxness. The inquiry had done good service in throwing light on the
-inefficient condition of small and cheap private schools for girls, of
-which there were such large numbers in the country. Clearly what was
-wanted was a system of schools large enough to permit of low fees and
-satisfactory grading. Much of the evidence had been negative, and showed
-what to avoid. Happily there were a few schools in existence which could
-serve as beacon lights. Of these the North London Collegiate and the
-Cheltenham Ladies’ College took the first rank. The former, though
-really a large private school, had been organised by Miss Buss on public
-lines, with a view to being ultimately placed on a sound and permanent
-footing. The latter was a large proprietary school, so planned as to be
-in no need of public money. Both Miss Buss and Miss Beale were unanimous
-in urging the establishment of large public schools for girls. Speaking
-of London, Miss Buss had said, ‘I think, in the first place, there are
-scarcely any good schools; in the next place, there are very few good
-teachers; and in the third place, there is no motive offered to the
-girls for study nor to their parents to keep them at school.’ Miss Beale
-considered that schools were preferable to private teaching at home,
-because one person could not be mistress of all the subjects to be
-taught, ‘and a good teacher can scarcely continue so when condemned to
-the monotony of the ordinary private school-room.’ Small schools could
-not be properly graded except when very high fees permitted of small
-classes.
-
-Large day-schools with low fees for girls were called for. This much was
-agreed on, but where was the necessary capital to be found? Among the
-public-spirited men and women who set themselves to answer this
-question, the foremost place belongs to Mrs. William Grey. She had for
-some time been working to get a share of educational endowments for
-girls. ‘Let me remind you,’ she wrote at this time, ‘that while there
-are in or near London alone the magnificent first-grade endowed schools
-for boys of the Charterhouse, Merchant Taylors, St. Paul’s, Harrow, and
-Eton, besides King’s College and University College schools, there is
-not in the whole of London an endowed school of a similar class for
-girls, and that while the proportion of educational endowments for girls
-to those for boys is as 1:92, the proportion of women supporting
-themselves is to men as 1:7.19; that is, to quote the words of Mr.
-William Brook, “seven times as many men are employed as women, but men
-have ninety-two times as much money as women, to arm, equip, and qualify
-themselves for the battle of life.”’
-
-Failing endowments, or even side by side with them, capital must be
-obtained from other sources: this was the problem which had now to be
-faced. On May 31st, 1871, Mrs. Grey read a paper before the Society of
-Arts on the Education of Women. She described its extremely
-unsatisfactory condition, and suggested three remedies. (1) The creation
-of a sounder public opinion respecting the need and obligation of
-educating women. (2) The redistribution of educational endowments so as
-to give a fair share of them to girls. (3) The improvement of female
-teachers by their examination and registration according to fixed
-standards.
-
-In the following October, at the Social Science Congress at Leeds, she
-proposed the establishment of a national Union for the improvement of
-the education of women of all classes. Its objects should be—(1) To
-enlighten the public mind, through meetings and lectures throughout the
-country, on the present state of female education, on the national
-importance of improving it, and on the measures required for that end.
-(2) To collect and disseminate information respecting the best methods
-of education, the comparative advantages of large and small schools, the
-influence of endowments, and generally all questions connected with the
-training of girls. (3) To promote measures for the better training of
-female teachers, and especially for their examination and registration
-by fixed standards, so as to secure a measure of competency. (4) To
-assist the formation of councils similar to the North of England Council
-for the Education of Women in other divisions of the country, and, while
-endeavouring to multiply local centres of activity, to afford all
-workers in the same cause a common bond of union, and a means of
-intercommunication and combined action.
-
-The proposal was favourably received; 300 names were at once given in
-for membership, and a provisional committee formed. Individual
-subscriptions were fixed at five shillings; and an affiliation fee of
-not less than a guinea annually entitled corporate associations to be
-represented on the annual general council, and to all the privileges of
-membership. This National Union supplied a real need. Members poured in
-fast. The Princess Louise consented to become president, and the roll of
-vice-presidents was a distinguished one. Branch unions were formed, and
-associations already existing at Belfast, Dublin, Birmingham, Cambridge,
-Clifton, Falmouth, Guernsey, Huddersfield, Norwich, Plymouth,
-Northampton, Wakefield, Winchester, and Windsor were brought into
-membership with the Union. Many of the Schoolmistresses’ Associations
-sought affiliation: the Ladies’ Council of the Yorkshire Board of
-Education, and the North of England Council also joined the Union, and
-consented to appoint representatives to the central committee. With
-admirably organised machinery directed by knowledge and enthusiasm,
-great reforms seemed possible, and in 1872 the Union proceeded to its
-first piece of constructive work, the establishment of the Girls’ Public
-Day School Company.
-
-Proceedings were inaugurated at a meeting at the Albert Hall, with Lord
-Lyttelton in the chair. Proposals were brought forward for starting a
-shareholding company ‘for the purpose of establishing and maintaining in
-London and the provinces superior day-schools, at a moderate cost, for
-girls of all classes above those provided for by the Elementary
-Education Act.’ A capital of £12,000 was to be raised in 2400 shares of
-£5 each. The proposal found favour, prospectuses were sent out,
-accompanied by a letter from Princess Louise; 800 shares were at once
-taken up, and the company was floated. Among the earliest members of its
-council were the Marquis of Lorne, the Dowager Lady Stanley of Alderley,
-Sir J. K. Shuttleworth, Mrs. William Grey, Miss Mary Gurney, and Miss
-Shirreff, Sir Douglas Galton, K.C.B., and Mr. C. S. Roundell.
-
-The next step was to open schools, and Chelsea was chosen as the scene
-of the first experiment. Miss Porter was appointed head-mistress, and a
-suitable house was hired. The school began with twenty-five girls, and
-rapidly increased. A few months later a second one was opened at Notting
-Hill with Miss Jones as head. For these first experimental schools no
-shares were specially taken up in the neighbourhood. In future, any
-place that wished for a high school was usually required to take up a
-certain number, as a definite assurance of local interest. Croydon was
-opened on these conditions in 1874, with twenty pupils. Then followed,
-in 1875, Clapham, Hackney, Bath, Oxford, and Nottingham; in 1876,
-Brighton, Gateshead, and St. John’s Wood; in 1878, Dulwich, Ipswich,
-Maida Vale, Sheffield. At present the schools number thirty-four. They
-are at Bath, Blackheath, Brighton, Bromley, Carlisle, Clapham (High and
-Modern), Clapton, Croydon, Dover, Dulwich, Gateshead, Highbury, Ipswich,
-Kensington, Liverpool, East Liverpool, Maida Vale, Newcastle, Norwich,
-Nottingham, Notting Hill, Oxford, Portsmouth, East Putney, Sheffield,
-Shrewsbury, South Hampstead, Streatham Hill, Sutton, Sydenham, Tunbridge
-Wells, Wimbledon, York.
-
-The fees are: for pupils under ten years of age, £10, 10s. a year;
-entering the school between ten and thirteen, or remaining after ten,
-£13, 10s. a year; entering after thirteen, £16, 10s. a year. The company
-is on a sound financial basis, since the larger and more flourishing
-schools make up for the deficiencies of the smaller ones. Until 1896 a
-dividend of five per cent. was paid, now limited by resolution of the
-shareholders to four per cent. The capital has been increased to
-£150,000.
-
-Meantime similar schools were springing up all over the country. At
-Plymouth one was started by a local branch of the National Union, at
-Huddersfield by a local company, at Southampton by the Hampshire
-Association, at Manchester by private subscription, at Bradford by an
-endowment. The impulse given by the Union and its pioneer schools was
-felt everywhere, and it seemed as though before long every large town in
-England would have a proprietary or public school for girls. A rival
-company was founded in 1883. The Church Schools Company differed from
-the Girls’ Public Day School Company in making definite Church teaching
-one of its objects, while the religious instruction of the Girls’ Public
-Day School Company had always aimed at being, as far as possible,
-undenominational. The promoters of the Church Schools thought that as
-there was room for voluntary schools side by side with board schools, so
-there might also be scope for Church High Schools in spite of the
-existence of the Girls’ Public Day School Company. Their original
-proposal was to start schools of various grades for boys and girls above
-the class attending elementary schools, where a general education should
-be given, in accordance with the principles of the Church of England, at
-a moderate cost.
-
-A beginning was made with day-schools for girls, and hitherto little
-else has been done. It is probable that this Church Company did, to some
-extent, meet a need, but it was not a very large one. The majority of
-the Church of England parents are perfectly satisfied with the religious
-instruction of the Girls’ Public Day School Company schools, and the new
-schools drew their pupils, not so much by an appeal to those who
-disapproved on principle of the existing high schools, as by
-establishing themselves in towns which the other company had not
-entered. Naturally they appealed to a smaller class, and can never
-expect to attain the numbers of the undenominational high schools. Hence
-they have always been, to some extent, hampered, for though the company
-is financially sound, and gives a small dividend to shareholders, it has
-had to economise very severely in the matter of salaries and buildings.
-This must always re-act to some extent on the education, and it is
-probably for this reason that these Church Schools have never attained
-the high position of their rivals. The fees paid vary according to the
-locality, some being as low as £4, 4s., others as high as £18, 18s.; £9,
-9s. to £12, 12s. seems the commonest fee. Many of the schools are very
-small. At present the number is twenty-six, and they are situated at
-Bournemouth, Brighton, Bury St. Edmunds, Derby, Dewsbury, Durham,
-Gloucester, Guildford, Hull, Kendal, Kensington, Leicester,
-Newcastle-on-Tyne, Northampton, Reading, Reigate, Richmond, St. Albans,
-Streatham, Stroud Green, Sunderland, Surbiton, Wigan, Woolwich, Great
-Yarmouth, York.
-
-High Schools can now trace back their history for a quarter of a
-century. In that time more than a hundred have been founded in England.
-They have become the typical girls’ schools of this country, private
-schools have been organised on the same lines, and the scheme of large
-day schools with no distinction of class, giving a good education at a
-low fee, has been almost universally accepted. It seems so simple and
-natural, that it is hard to realise that twenty-five years ago it was a
-strange and therefore a dangerous innovation. After all what do we mean
-by a High School? There is a general impression of the meaning of the
-term, though it would not be easy to define it. In the United States, a
-High School is an advanced school, which can only be entered by pupils
-who have already passed through the Primary and Grammar Schools; that
-is, do not enter before the age of fourteen or fifteen. It is thus a
-Secondary School, forming the link between the primary institutions and
-the University. Our English High Schools provide both elementary and
-secondary instruction, and the ages of the pupils range from seven to
-nineteen. Hence, although there is a natural division between the Lower
-and Upper School, the work is closely connected; the same mistresses
-teach in both, and subjects such as Latin and French are usually carried
-down into the lower classes. The lower part of a High School is not
-exactly parallel to an Elementary School; the pupils have begun more
-subjects, they have been taught in smaller classes, and by different,
-less rigid methods. The High School cannot therefore at present be
-regarded as the middle rung of the educational ladder. In England there
-is a gap between it and the Elementary School, which is sometimes
-successfully bridged by special means, but the existence of which cannot
-be disregarded in any general scheme of English education. As the need
-of secondary education is more generally felt, a system of schools
-leading upward in direct line from the elementary school is being
-naturally evolved, and connection between the two lines is being
-provided by scholarships and other means. But if we disregard a few
-exceptional cases, it seems best to look on the High School as an
-organic whole, taking the child from the nursery to the university, and
-sometimes even helping out the nursery by means of the kindergarten.
-
-It is not uncommon to hear people talk of the High School system, but
-this is misleading. In so far as the High Schools have a special system,
-it is the natural outcome of the scheme of large classes and careful
-gradation. Hence it resembles in many respects that which has long
-prevailed in Germany and the United States. There is no High School
-Code, and even under the same management, _e.g._ in the Girls’ Public
-Day-School Company Schools, considerable latitude is left to the
-individual head-mistress; but there are certain arrangements which are
-found convenient in the organisation of large day schools, and which
-prevail with modifications in all the High Schools, as well as in many
-large private institutions.
-
-The morning hours are given to class teaching; from 9 to 1, or 9.15 to
-1.15, being the usual times. Subjects requiring individual instruction
-(which are usually extras), _e.g._ piano, solo singing, advanced
-drawing, and painting, are taught in the afternoons, also Greek in some
-schools, special coaching in advanced Latin or Science, and so forth.
-The principle underlying this arrangement is that of giving the best
-working hours to serious mental work, and reserving accomplishments
-which are rather the ornament than the essentials of education, for the
-latter part, thus assigning to the subjects of instruction their proper
-relative importance, and keeping the real work of the school
-undisturbed. This arrangement seems so easy and natural that it would be
-hardly necessary to dwell on it, were it not that until very lately the
-opposite system prevailed in some schools that otherwise aimed at
-thoroughness, and it was not unusual for a girl to be called away in the
-middle of an important lesson in history or arithmetic, and sent to her
-music. Under the present plan, the greater part of the girls have
-finished their school work by one o’clock, and have the afternoon and
-evening free to divide between preparation of lessons (two to three
-hours), exercise, and home duties. For the benefit of those who require
-help in their lessons, or cannot get a quiet room at home, a system of
-afternoon preparation at school is organised. This generally lasts an
-hour and a half to two hours—most schools provide a dinner for girls who
-come from a distance. A whole holiday on Saturday seems the rule
-everywhere.
-
-Some schools have a kindergarten department attached, where little boys
-are taught along with the girls, and a transition class where the
-children learn to read before passing into the school proper. The
-division is into forms, I. being the lowest, and VI. the highest. Large
-schools divide the forms into Upper and Lower. Where a school is fully
-organised, it is usual for a whole class to move up together. Backward
-girls may remain in the form another year. Unfortunately many high
-schools are too small to be fully organised, and in these the gaps
-between the classes are too large, and general promotion impossible.
-Clever girls spend one year in a class, slower ones two, and the
-disadvantage for the latter is very serious, since there is a weariness
-about going over the same ground twice, which is the reverse of
-stimulating. Large classes can progress as quickly as smaller ones when
-they are very carefully grouped. Where the pupils are at different
-stages there is much waste of time, and either the weak go to the wall,
-or the strong get less than their due. It is, therefore, the first
-essential of a high school that the numbers should be large, not much
-under two hundred.
-
-Even when the school is large and the classes work smoothly together,
-the girls do not all work evenly in every subject. To prevent waste, it
-is usual to let certain subjects, perhaps Arithmetic and English,
-determine promotion, and to teach the others in divisions. Two or three
-forms may take French at the same time, and be rearranged for that
-lesson, returning to their own rooms when it is over. This moving about
-affords a pleasant change, and is quite easy when the building is a
-convenient one. Indeed, suitable premises are almost as important for
-the harmonious working of a school as large numbers and careful
-classification. Long narrow corridors and awkward staircases are fatal
-to order. Ordinary dwelling-rooms adapted for school purposes can seldom
-be properly ventilated, and according to their position in the room, the
-pupils suffer from draught or heat, the light falls the wrong way upon
-their work, the classes have to be graded to suit the size of the rooms
-rather than the abilities of the pupils. In fact nothing can be more
-unsatisfactory than the adaptation as a school of an ordinary
-dwelling-house.
-
-The arrangement that seems to answer best is that of a large central
-hall used for prayers and general gatherings, out of which some of the
-form-rooms open, whilst the rest, with extra rooms for small divisions,
-are upstairs. Of this construction the Blackheath and Sheffield High
-Schools are good examples. The finest girls’ buildings are naturally
-found where there is an endowment, as at the North London Collegiate,
-the Bedford, and Manchester High Schools. Few, if any of the Church
-schools have specially constructed buildings, and several of the Girls’
-Public Day School Company’s Schools are carried on in adapted premises.
-Some grant of public money for buildings to really efficient proprietary
-schools would probably be the cheapest and most effective way of helping
-girls’ education in many of our large towns.
-
-The North London Collegiate, both in point of time and in importance,
-claims precedence as the pioneer high school. It was in working order
-when the Girls’ Public Day School Company started, and was doubtless the
-model set before its promoters. The following account written in 1883 by
-Mrs. Bryant, who is now head-mistress, is in many ways typical, and
-applies _mutatis mutandis_ to the general routine of all fully equipped
-high schools.
-
-‘Entering the school with the girls in the morning, we should proceed
-first through the entrance hall down to the basement, and into the
-cloak-rooms. Here each girl has a numbered place provided with hooks for
-cloak and hat, umbrella-stand, boot-rack, and bag for the house-boots,
-which she always wears while in school. There are also shelves for books
-while dressing is going on, and forms for use in changing boots. Since
-the space allotted is ample, and the girls come in relays, both before
-and after school, crowding is avoided.
-
-‘When ready, each girl goes upstairs with her books to the great hall,
-where the rule of silence is strictly enforced. At 9.15, all are
-assembled for prayers, each form in its place, while the prefects, who
-are members of the sixth form, and are elected by it and the teachers of
-the upper division of the school, are scattered among the other forms,
-as guardians of public order, during the interval of waiting. After
-prayers, each form marches out with its mistress to its own room. Five
-class-rooms open out of the hall on the ground floor; these are used by
-the upper division of the school, including the sixth form, and four
-sub-divisions of the fifth form. Five more open out of the hall gallery,
-used by all the sub-divisions of the fourth form, which constitute the
-middle division of the school. Above these two tiers, there is a third
-set of rooms, three class-rooms and the drawing school. The lower
-divisions of the school use these four rooms, besides one of the
-irregularly placed rooms. Of the latter there are several, lying with
-the laboratories, lecture-room, libraries, and music-rooms, on the side
-of the great stone staircase, opposite the Clothworkers’ hall.
-
-‘Each class room contains 5600 cubic feet, and is fitted for thirty-two
-girls. All have Swedish desks, except the elder girls, who have separate
-desks with chairs. There is a raised platform for the teacher, with a
-chair and table. All the rooms are fitted with cupboards, and in most
-there is a small circulating library, which the girls can use on payment
-of a small subscription. The pine wainscot, brick walls, and tiled
-fire-places of the class-rooms, make a good background for the
-decorations of the Kyrle societies, which exist in each class; and all
-the rooms have pictures on the walls, as well as notice-boards and
-time-tables. Another institution of the decorative kind is the window
-garden, with which many of the rooms are provided, and in which the
-girls take, for the most part, great pride.
-
-‘In these rooms the hard work of the day goes on till 1.30, with an
-interval, as near the middle as possible, of twenty-five minutes, for a
-light lunch and drill. In five separate relays, the girls proceed to the
-dining-hall, which, with the kitchens and housekeeper’s room, lies under
-the great hall. Here they can buy buns, biscuits, bread and butter,
-fruit, coffee, milk, and lemonade, and, while talking as loudly and as
-much as they please, they are required to take their stand in orderly
-lines across the room. From the dining-hall the girls proceed to the
-gymnasium, a very fine room, 100 feet long by 30 feet broad, where they
-have musical drill for a quarter of an hour. Monday and Thursday,
-however, are days for special calisthenic exercise, lasting half-an-hour
-each day. Then work is resumed till 1.30, when the school is dismissed
-in relays, as before stated.’
-
-Even more important than the routine of a school is its curriculum; and
-here the need of the reformer’s hand is still felt acutely. The subjects
-included in the Girls’ Public Day School Company prospectuses are the
-following—Religious Instruction, Reading, Writing, Arithmetic,
-Mathematics, Book-keeping, English grammar, composition, and literature,
-History, Geography, French, German, Latin, the elements of Physical
-Science, Social Economy, Drawing, Class-singing and Harmony, Gymnastic
-Exercises, and Needlework. To these Greek must now be added, since it is
-taught in every school that prepares for college. The prospectus says
-‘any or all of these may be taught,’ which means that the head-mistress
-has, within certain limits, a right of selection. Hence the tendency of
-schools, even under the same management, to vary greatly. Not only is
-there as yet no consensus of opinion in England as to the best
-curriculum for girls’ schools, but even the general aim to be kept in
-view seems by no means determined. Mrs. Bryant lays down the
-incontrovertible dictum that ‘the ideal of the curriculum is a balance
-of subjects so that all normal faculties and interests may be
-cultivated.’ But there is another side which cannot be neglected, and
-the claims of the ideal vanish into insignificance before the demands of
-practical life and outside examination. In spite of the repeated
-promises that examination is to be servant and not master we must not
-hope to escape from its dominion as long as it is the ‘open sesame’ of
-colleges and professions. A rough test, it is still the best hitherto
-devised, and serves on the whole to separate the sheep from the goats.
-Since we must, therefore, acknowledge its sovereignty, it behoves us to
-see that it exercises a wise and benevolent tyranny. However much we may
-protest, the curriculum of a school will always be largely determined by
-the nature of its leaving examination, since this regulates the work of
-the upper forms, and these more or less mould the lower. Some schools
-reduce this examination work to a minimum, reserving it entirely for the
-highest form, while others use the machinery of outside examinations to
-determine the whole of their work. The North London Collegiate belongs
-to this latter class. The upper part is organised according to two
-parallel courses. Of these _A._ leads to the London degree examinations,
-that is to Matriculation or in some cases Intermediate Arts, and Course
-_B._ to the Cambridge Senior and Higher Locals. All these examinations
-under certain conditions admit to the Women’s Colleges at Oxford and
-Cambridge, and hence act the double part of a leaving and entrance
-examination, but this school also makes use of the lower examinations,
-_e.g._, the Preliminary and Junior Locals. Hence the work of these
-classes must be directed to the set subjects required for these
-examinations, and must include the particular periods of history, works
-in literature, and French and German books that are laid down by the
-examiners, even though they may not seem the most suitable in other
-respects. Many educationalists think this disadvantageous to the general
-plan of a girls’ school, which should proceed on stated harmonious lines
-from the lowest to the highest class. Mrs. Bryant, however, thinks that
-the advantages outweigh the disadvantages, since ‘by their means the
-more advanced body of opinion can be brought to bear on the inert or
-prejudiced mass, which lags behind in the movement of educational
-progress.’ In spite of this valuable testimony the consensus of opinion
-is rather on the other side. The schools of the Girls’ Public Day School
-Company have almost entirely abandoned the miscellaneous junior
-examinations, which lead to nothing, in favour of those conducted by the
-Joint Board of Oxford and Cambridge. This is the test applied to the
-leading boys’ public schools since 1873, and it is the nearest approach
-in England to an _Abiturienten_ examination, since the higher
-certificate, if taken in the required subjects, exempts its holder from
-the first public examination at Oxford and Cambridge. The Board awards
-higher and lower certificates, and undertakes a general examination of
-the schools. The papers are sent to the school, and the examination is
-conducted there under the supervision of the head-mistress. The lower
-forms are also examined _viva voce_ by a delegate of the Board, and
-reports on the general condition of the school and on the paper work are
-sent to the governing bodies. In this way the progress of different
-schools can be compared, and a general control kept, while there is
-little disturbance to the school course, since the questions are set on
-the work actually done. The Council of the Girls’ Public Day School
-Company itself awards certificates to girls who gain sixty per cent. of
-the marks in five papers.
-
-The subjects of the higher certificate examination are arranged in four
-groups:—
-
- GROUP I.
-
- (1) Latin.
- (2) Greek.
- (3) French.
- (4) German.
-
- GROUP II.
-
- (1) Mathematics (elementary).
- (2) Mathematics (additional).
-
- GROUP III.
-
- (1) Scripture Knowledge.
- (2) English.
- (3) History.
-
- GROUP IV.
-
- (1) Natural Philosophy (Mechanical Division).
- (2) Natural Philosophy (Physical Division).
- (3) Natural Philosophy (Chemical Division).
- (4) Physical Geography and Elementary Geology.
- (5) Biology.
-
-All candidates for a higher certificate must satisfy the examiners in at
-least four subjects taken from not less than three different groups,
-unless they take one subject in II. or IV., in which case they can
-choose three from I. No one may offer more than six subjects. The
-examination is so arranged as to hamper the school work as little as
-possible. Thus in languages great stress is laid on grammar,
-composition, and unprepared translation, while the set books can be
-selected from a long list; or (to give even greater freedom) it is
-allowed to ‘substitute with the consent of the Board other portions or
-periods which are at least equivalent to those specified in the
-prescribed list, provided that the extra expense involved be defrayed by
-the school authorities.’ This privilege of choice is extended also to
-Scripture, English and History.
-
-The subjects for the lower certificate are:—
-
- GROUP I.
-
- (1) Latin.
- (2) Greek.
- (3) French.
- (4) German.
-
- GROUP II.
-
- (1) Arithmetic.
- (2) Additional Mathematics.
-
- GROUP III.
-
- (1) Scripture Knowledge.
- (2) English.
- (3) English History.
- (4) Geography.
-
- GROUP IV.
-
- (1) Mechanics and Physics.
- (2) Physics and Chemistry.
- (3) Chemistry and Mechanics.
-
-The higher certificate is often taken by girls in Form Lower VI., and
-they are then free in their last year to prepare for university
-scholarships or do other special work. The lower certificate is less
-popular, but it is sometimes taken in Form V.
-
-Unquestionably the real problem before our girls’ schools is to plan a
-curriculum which, while keeping in view the harmonious development of
-mind and body, and the preparation for a girl’s future life, shall yet
-give the necessary preparation for these final examinations. The
-reformers see hope in a more careful grouping of studies which shall
-break down the barriers between them, so that the subjects learnt at the
-same time should be allies rather than rivals. If fewer were taken up
-simultaneously, more time and interest might be given to each new
-requirement when it first appears on the scenes. After a couple of
-years, when considerable advance had been made, it might be relegated to
-a less important place and a fresh central study chosen. In the higher
-forms the threads would be once more drawn together, for then a pupil
-must be prepared to marshal all her forces for one great occasion.
-Experiments of this kind have been tried with much success in America,
-and there is a scheme for doing something of the kind in England. There
-is a plentiful field for experiments, and no doubt the curriculum
-question will be discussed at many a teachers’ meeting before the
-problem is solved. The High Schools will contribute their share to the
-work if they are to remain in the van as they have hitherto done.
-
-Since the very establishment of the High Schools was a protest against
-the superficiality and showiness condemned by the Royal Commission,
-their main endeavour was to avoid the mistakes of their predecessors.
-Accomplishments were relegated to the background. Arithmetic and
-mathematics were taught for their mental training and the development of
-accuracy. ‘The noxious brood of catechisms’ was abandoned in favour of a
-system of oral teaching: object lessons were introduced into the lower
-forms to induce observation, and in the science lessons facts were
-taught first-hand and not through the medium of books. The slipshod
-French chatter of the boarding-schools gave way to stricter grammatical
-training; parsing and analysis took the place of rote repetition of the
-parts of speech. Accuracy and thoroughness were the aim everywhere. At
-first the instruction was attended with many difficulties. There were
-few well-educated and no trained teachers, and very little agreement as
-to the really best methods. Hence it was natural that the revolt against
-the abuses of the past should produce some fresh faults. The reaction
-against the old text-books caused the introduction of a lecture-system;
-an excessive amount of note-taking, writing out, and correction by the
-teacher seemed to afford both parties the maximum of effort with the
-minimum of result: books were shunned as though the printed word were in
-itself hurtful, and much matter was laboriously dictated that might have
-been taken from any intelligent hand-book. The girls spoiled their
-handwriting, instead of straining their memories; that was the chief
-difference. Happily this plan has given way to more intelligent
-inductive methods, though even now there is a tendency in some schools
-to rely too much on written notes and too little on training the
-attention and memory. High School girls still need to learn how to use a
-book intelligently, and to appreciate knowledge that comes to them in an
-unaccustomed fashion. They have learnt the use of writing, to make ‘an
-exact man,’ but reading as a means of producing the ‘full’ woman has
-hardly as yet touched the High School system. This defect is now being
-realised and efforts will doubtless be made to remove it. Already the
-improvement in the teachers has produced a beneficent revolution in
-girls’ schools. To their inadequate education the Royal Commissioners
-largely attributed the unsatisfactory state of things they found. Side
-by side with the growth of the high schools went the movement for
-admitting women to the universities, both acting and re-acting on each
-other, since the high schools sent up their best pupils to college and
-the college sent them back to teach and train future students. A great
-proportion of the mistresses are now university women, while a smaller
-number have been trained at the Cambridge Teachers’ College or the Maria
-Grey or other Training Colleges—Kindergarten Colleges provide teachers
-for the little ones.
-
-While the High School puts intellectual subjects first, it does not
-disregard accomplishments, though it seldom uses that word. Music is
-taught to all in the form of class-singing; piano and violin and solo
-singing are ‘extras,’ and do not belong to the general school work.
-Drawing has really won a more important place than before, because it is
-used as an educational factor, and not merely for purposes of show. The
-scheme of the Royal Drawing Society, organised by Mr. Ablett, is in use
-at nearly all the high schools. It is essentially a class system, and
-aims at training the eye, hand, and memory, rather than producing mere
-technical skill. The little ones in the first form are taught to present
-graphically objects interesting to themselves, by means of simple
-ruling, memory, and brush-work exercises. Special features are judgment
-at sight, memory and dictated work, the early introduction of drawing
-from objects and simple geometrical design. The schools are examined
-once a year. The examination takes place in the school itself under the
-superintendence of the head-mistress and drawing teacher, the work is
-sent up to London, and promotion to the next division depends upon the
-pass. Pupils who pass all the six divisions with honours are entitled to
-a full Drawing Certificate which has a commercial value for teaching
-purposes. Drawing, a little modelling, and needlework in the lower
-forms, represent at present the manual side of High School teaching.
-Cookery, dressmaking, etc. though popular in a different class of
-school, have hardly as yet been able to effect an entrance, nor does it
-seem altogether desirable that they should. That every school cannot
-teach everything is an axiom long ago accepted for boys’ education, and
-it must be realised for girls too, if the outcry against overstrain is
-to cease. Differentiation is the only safe course. It is partly the
-strength and partly the weakness of the High School that it represents,
-in fact, two schools: the first grade for girls who are to proceed to
-the university, and whose life at home makes a certain amount of
-literary and linguistic attainment desirable, and the second grade for
-those who must leave at fifteen or sixteen, and look forward to a career
-in business or to practical utility at home. In the lower forms the need
-of both is the same: a good general education; afterwards bifurcation
-seems desirable. When a school is not large enough to allow of this, it
-is the early-leaving girls who go to the wall. For these an entirely
-different scheme of education might be best—this too is a problem that
-will have to be faced. Physical training is also considered at most of
-the High Schools. Generally, fifteen minutes in the middle of the
-morning is given to some form of drill. In a few large schools, _e.g._,
-the North London Collegiate, this daily drill is undertaken by a
-specialist. Usually it falls to one of the assistants, though it is very
-common for a special teacher of Swedish drill to visit the school once
-or twice a week, and take all the girls in divisions. The North London
-Collegiate and the Sheffield High School have gymnasiums, and take this
-side of the work very seriously. A physical-record book is kept, and
-every child on entering is examined by a lady doctor attached to the
-school. Particulars of sight, hearing, throat, breathing, lungs, heart,
-chest, and waist measurement are recorded, with any observations
-considered necessary. Suitable gymnastic exercises are then prescribed,
-and the examination repeated from time to time, and note made of any
-changed condition. Some such plan might be tried in all High Schools,
-were the parents willing to pay for it. The low fees charged cannot be
-expected to include medical supervision as well as all the other
-advantages. At present Sheffield and the Camden Schools are almost the
-only day-schools that consider the physical training as systematically
-as the intellectual. Still, the Girls’ Public Day School Company has now
-appointed a qualified lady inspector of physical training. Exercise
-doubtless plays an important part in every high school, but it is
-sometimes pursued with more zeal than knowledge. Just now athletics are
-taking a very prominent place. School playgrounds and playing fields
-have become a necessity. Girls have learned to play cricket, hockey, and
-rounders; they choose their elevens, elect their captains, and have
-their practices and matches much like their brothers. How far this
-particular kind of exercise is conducive to a girl’s health is another
-of the still unsolved problems. One thing is certain: these games do
-much to improve the general tone of a school. Their effect in producing
-loyalty and public spirit and promoting cheerfulness is quite as marked
-in girls as in boys, and the development of the play side, along with
-the greater liberty, the giving of responsibility as a reward, and all
-that belongs to a real public school are features at least as valuable
-as the improvement in the teaching. The High Schools have produced a new
-type of girl, self-reliant, courageous, truthful, and eager for work. A
-full record of their after careers would prove interesting. Many pass
-straight from school to Oxford or Cambridge, a great many have gained
-scholarships, and the women’s colleges are largely recruited from their
-ranks. Some pass on to the medical schools, others gain County Council
-scholarships for technical or scientific work, large numbers are engaged
-in teaching, one or two have taken up gardening at Swanley Horticultural
-College, and a good many are making themselves generally useful at home
-as wives or daughters. Almost everywhere the High School girl proves
-herself capable, accurate, and trustworthy. She is sometimes blamed for
-a want of grace, such as belonged to a few rare ladies of the olden
-time, but she also lacks the helplessness and silliness that were
-prevalent then. Physically, morally, and intellectually, these schools
-may claim that they are improving large numbers, and with them surely
-the race.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V
- ENDOWMENTS FOR GIRLS
-
-
-The history of endowed schools carries us far away into the misty realms
-of the past, before ever the Conqueror set foot in England and put back
-the clock of civilisation a hundred years. The earliest schools of which
-we have any knowledge were attached to the chief collegiate churches,
-where one officer would be specially told off to teach the boys, just as
-another would conduct the singing. Convent and school or church and
-school were invariably allied. The first separable school endowments
-were merely assignments of a specific part of the general endowment for
-the support of the chancellor or his deputy, the grammar school master.
-Like the earliest colleges these schools were founded ‘for prayer and
-study.’ The first person to reverse this order, and endow an independent
-school, was William of Wykeham, when in 1393 he founded Winchester
-College, to give free instruction to seventy poor boys, and so help them
-to holy orders or the university. Thus the new school became ‘a
-sovereign and independent corporation existing of, by and for itself,
-self-centred, self-controlled.’ ‘To make education, and that education
-not the education of clerics in theology or the canon law, the paramount
-and pronounced object of an ecclesiastical institution, with all the
-paraphernalia of Papal bull and royal and episcopal license, was no
-small innovation. It was a new departure, which opened a new era in the
-world of education, and therefore of thought.’[13] Later founders,
-following in the steps of William of Wykeham, gave sums of money for the
-training of youth in ‘grammar and good manners.’ Grammar meant Latin and
-Greek, the ‘key to all the sciences’; the manners were to be those of a
-true gentleman, ‘trouthe and honour, fredom and curteisie.’
-
-Following on these came the schools of the Reformation age, of which the
-most familiar example is Dean Colet’s foundation of St. Paul’s. These
-were established or assisted by the gifts of ‘pious founders,’ or
-sometimes by diverting old funds originally destined for other purposes.
-Reading school was founded out of funds obtained by suppressing an
-almshouse for poor sisters, and under Elizabeth made into a grammar
-school ‘for educating the boys of the inhabitants of the said borough
-and others in literature.’ Such schools were often placed under lay
-control, but the clerical idea was still in the background. Not priests,
-but ministers of the reformed religion, were needed, and learning became
-even more essential for men who had to make knowledge take the place of
-tradition.
-
-The clerical purpose of most of these schools naturally tended to
-exclude girls or make them of secondary importance. What place was
-actually assigned to them in the 353 schools founded between the
-accession of Henry VIII. and the death of James I. is a problem that
-must be left to antiquarians. Certain it is that in the ensuing period
-the education of both sexes was more on an equality, since the standard
-was one of inferiority. An age of political disturbance was followed by
-an epoch of frivolity. Learning fell into contempt. The foundations of
-the eighteenth century were not grammar but charity schools, and though
-girls were not forgotten, it was with the hope of training servants for
-themselves that rich persons supported these schools. Not to give a
-liberal training, but to teach the poor to ‘keep their proper station,’
-was the aim of eighteenth century founders.
-
-Thus it came about that the Schools’ Inquiry Commissioners found a
-goodly number of girls in endowed schools of an elementary character,
-which would hardly bear comparison with the poorest of our modern board
-schools. While the King Edward Schools at Birmingham were giving 290
-boys a classical and 300 a sound English education, none of these
-benefits fell to girls. In the elementary schools of the same foundation
-were 655 boys and 630 girls. At Christ’s Hospital, distinctly founded
-for both sexes, there were but 18 girls as against 1192 boys. Perhaps
-even the eighteen would have been better off elsewhere. They occupied a
-part of the junior boys’ school at Hertford; they had one ward under the
-charge of a nurse, their playground was a little over a quarter of an
-acre, they took their walks abroad under care of the nurse, they had no
-calisthenics or other physical training; their diet was bread and milk
-for breakfast, bread, meat, potatoes, and porter for dinner, bread and
-butter, milk and water for supper. There was no admission examination,
-no leaving standard of attainment; they learned a little Scripture,
-English (so-called), and History and Geography from abridgments. On
-leaving, at about fifteen, most of them were apprenticed to business. It
-did not prove easy to place them. No wonder!
-
-A similar tale might be told of Bedford School. It was established in
-1566 by Sir William Harpur and Dame Alice, his wife, ‘for the education,
-institution, and instruction of children and youth in grammar and good
-manners, to endure for ever.’ Did child mean ‘boy’ in the minds of the
-founders? It seems uncertain; for, as the endowment increased in value
-and some of it became available for purposes other than the free grammar
-school, the interests of girls were also considered. At various periods
-of the eighteenth century fresh uses were found for the surplus money,
-and it is characteristic of the age that the feminine equivalent for a
-sound education was a dowry. £800 a year was set aside for
-marriage-portions for forty poor maids of the town of Bedford, to be
-distributed by lot, provided that a successful candidate was married
-within two calendar months of drawing the lot, and not to ‘a vagrant or
-other person of bad fame or reputation.’ Naturally there was not much
-difficulty about claiming the lot. Young men came from far and near to
-woo the ‘maids of Bedford.’ Any residue was given to poor maid-servants
-who had resided five years at Bedford and were married within a year.
-The next addition was a hospital for boys and girls, an allotment of
-£700 to apprentice fifteen boys and five girls, and almshouses for ten
-old men and ten old women. Early in this century preparatory and
-commercial schools were added; and girls were considered to the extent
-of a foundation where the head-mistress received £80 per annum as
-against the headmaster’s £1000. Which figures very eloquently sum up the
-relative estimation in which girls’ and boys’ education was held before
-1848.
-
-The Schools’ Inquiry Commission had made it abundantly clear that the
-educational endowments of the country needed overhauling. Not only had
-many of them increased greatly in value, but the establishment of public
-elementary schools was making the appropriation of endowments for
-elementary schools unnecessary. Again, many free schools were giving a
-liberal education to the sons of rich men. By the institution of even a
-low fee considerable sums would become available for the improvement of
-existing schools and the establishment of new ones. Then there were the
-various charitable endowments left for special purposes which no longer
-existed. In some cases money had been bequeathed to the poor in a
-parish, and was simply used for the relief of the rates. In London alone
-there were sums of £1500 a year given for the relief of poor prisoners
-from debt. Among other out-of-date purposes were the ransom of Barbary
-captives, the destruction of lady-birds in Cornhill, etc. In a certain
-part of Worcestershire money had been left in 1620 for distributing
-bread among the poor of seven parishes and, as a secondary purpose,
-supporting a free grammar school, the surplus to be applied to repairing
-the church and bridges, and increasing, if expedient, the salary of the
-schoolmaster. By 1867 the total income had increased to £657, and was
-applied to elementary schools and a free grammar school for fourteen
-boys. In other cases money was left for doles; with the result that in a
-certain parish, too richly endowed, extra waiters had to be put on at
-the gin-shops for two weeks before and after the distribution. In fact
-it was a case of money in the wrong place; education starving for want
-of funds that were only doing mischief. The regulation of the
-educational charities, and appropriation of those others which were
-doing more harm than good, was becoming an urgent necessity. Some
-changes had already been made under the Charitable Trusts Acts, but
-these were a good deal limited in their operations, and a more
-systematic reorganisation was undertaken under the Endowed Schools Act
-of 1869. This appointed three commissioners for four years to inquire
-into the endowments of England and Wales, and the first to hold this
-office were Lord Lyttelton, Canon Robinson, and Arthur Hobhouse, Q.C. In
-1874 this Commission was merged in the Board of Charity Commissioners
-for England and Wales.
-
-‘In framing schemes under this Act, provision shall be made as far as
-conveniently may be for extending to girls the benefits of endowments.’
-This clause is the Magna Charta of girls’ education, the first
-acknowledgment by the State of their claim to a liberal education. This
-result was in great part due to those same men and women who had brought
-about the opening of the local examinations, and induced the Commission
-to take cognisance of girls’ schools, and were striving, in face of all
-opposition, to win something like a university education for girls. As
-early as 1860 at the Social Science Congress Madame Bodichon had entered
-a strong protest against the theory that boys’ education must be
-assisted and girls’ self-supporting. ‘Magnificent colleges and schools,
-beautiful architectural buildings costing thousands and thousands of
-pounds, rich endowments all over England, have been bestowed by past
-generations as gifts to the boys of the higher and middle class, and
-they are not the less independent and not a whit pauperised.’ At first
-this was but a voice crying in the wilderness, but the cry was taken up
-first by a few supporters, then by the whole country, and at last the
-_Times_, certainly not a revolutionary organ, declared that, ‘This
-country is most abundantly and redundantly endowed for men and boys, as
-if they were unable to take care of themselves, whereas there is
-little—indeed nothing, we may almost say—for that which is
-contemptuously called the weaker sex.’
-
-An Association for Promoting the Application of Endowments to the
-Education of Women was formed, and offered to assist trustees of schools
-and other persons interested in education by supplying information and
-suggesting plans whereby available funds might best be applied to the
-education of women. It had a strong committee, which numbered among its
-members Miss Davies, Miss Clough, and Miss Bostock, as well as Mr. Bryce
-and Mr. Fitch, those constant and helpful supporters of all efforts to
-improve the education of girls. At this time the needs of the middle
-class seemed most urgent, since the State-aided schools were coming to
-the aid of the very poor, and the rich could pay the high terms that
-were then demanded by the better private schools. The immediate need
-seemed to be for schools of the second or third grade, _i.e._ those
-meant for girls who would leave school some time between fourteen and
-seventeen, and might be expected to pay fees ranging from £4 to £10 per
-annum.
-
-Of such schools the first were founded out of the surplus revenues of
-King Edward’s Schools at Birmingham. Here four schools of the second
-grade were opened, each to accommodate about 160 pupils. These not only
-filled at once, but had to refuse admission to 500 candidates. In 1870
-the Grey Coat Hospital at Westminster was opened; but on the whole
-progress was slow, and Mr. Roundell’s estimate in 1871 that there were
-in England and Wales 225,000 girls waiting for secondary education was
-probably not wide of the mark.
-
-In that same year an event occurred of far-reaching importance. The
-admirable institution so long associated with the name of Miss Frances
-Buss was transformed into a public school for girls. Readers of her
-interesting biography now realise, what had long been known to her
-friends, with what a single mind and earnest devotion she had worked for
-the cause nearest her heart—the establishment of public schools for
-girls. As early as 1850, her own private school had been reconstituted
-on public lines, with the help of the Rev. David Laing, one of the
-promoters of Queen’s College, but her ambition was to make it public in
-fact as well as in its methods. Attention had been drawn to her work by
-her evidence before the Schools’ Inquiry Commission, and now some of its
-members themselves came forward to help her. If ever a school could lay
-claim to public aid, it was this one; and as soon as the enabling act
-was passed, active measures were taken to secure for it an endowment.
-With rare clear sight Miss Buss realised that a fully equipped school
-can only be self-supporting by the sacrifice of either suitable
-buildings, adequate salaries, or a scale of fees suited to the
-neighbourhood. She wanted to organise a pioneer school in which none of
-these good things should be lacking; nothing less than the best seemed
-good enough. Her enthusiasm and confidence were not to go unrewarded. In
-December 1870, a public meeting was held in the St. Pancras Vestry Hall,
-to announce the formation of a trust for carrying on the existing
-school, and starting another of a lower grade in connection with it. The
-upper school thus constituted took the name of the North London
-Collegiate, and in January 1871 removed with its two hundred pupils to
-202 Camden Street, and at the same time the Lower or Camden School came
-into existence. According to Miss Buss’s principle, the fees under the
-new trust were calculated to meet current expenses only. The building
-was to be provided from other funds, as was done in boys’ public
-schools. A subscription list was opened, and every possible endeavour
-made to win public support. These were anxious years for Miss Buss;
-money came in slowly, and rather than abandon her principle she chose to
-sacrifice her salary. Nor did she wait in vain; the excellent work of
-the school won it recognition, and when in 1874 the Charity
-Commissioners were called upon to dispose of the Platt Charity derivable
-from property in St. Pancras, belonging to the Brewers’ Company, they
-recommended that £20,000 be given to the North London Collegiate and
-Camden Schools. Thus building funds were secured, afterwards
-supplemented by a generous donation from the Clothworkers’ Company. The
-scheme became law in 1875, and the two schools have continued since then
-to work side by side as endowed schools of the first and second grade,
-with different principals, but both under the superintendence of the
-head-mistress of the upper school. This arrangement has proved most
-valuable, as it promotes co-ordination instead of rivalry between the
-two schools. In other places where two grades exist side by side, it is
-not uncommon to find the lower one attempting with inadequate means to
-imitate the upper. The special needs of the class attending it are then
-neglected, and undue attention given to a few clever girls, for whom
-leave is sometimes obtained to stay beyond the appointed age. At the
-Frances Mary Buss Schools (as the two are now called in memory of their
-founder), this danger is obviated by a good system of scholarships from
-the lower to the upper.
-
-At the Camden School girls may attend from seven to seventeen. The fees
-range from £5, 2s. to £8 per annum. The subjects taught are the usual
-English ones, with Class-Singing, Needlework, Drawing, and Book-keeping,
-and the elements of Science. Special attention is given to theoretical
-and practical Domestic Economy, and these classes receive assistance
-from the London County Council. French is the only foreign language
-taught. At the North London Collegiate, girls may attend between eight
-and nineteen, the list of subjects is much wider, and selections have to
-be made under the direction of the head-mistress. French, German, Latin
-and Greek, are included in the curriculum, and the practical subjects
-either omitted or reduced to a minimum. Since the work of the school is
-directed to the London University Examinations and the Cambridge Higher
-Locals, the course is necessarily laid out for girls who can stay long
-enough to enter the upper forms, and perhaps proceed to college. The
-fees range from £17, 11s. to £19, 14s. But girls over sixteen proceeding
-from the lower to the upper school pay only £14, 8s. Many pass up by
-means of scholarships.
-
-These two schools with their thousand pupils, fine buildings, and noble
-roll of honours won by old pupils stand pre-eminent among girls’
-endowments. The principle that with a scale of fees adapted to meet
-current expenses the endowment should provide buildings and scholarships
-has been triumphantly vindicated by the Frances Mary Buss Schools.
-
-Almost simultaneous with the endowment of these schools was the
-appropriation of some part of the funds of the Bradford Grammar School,
-‘to supply a liberal education for girls by means of a school or schools
-within the borough of Bradford.’ Public opinion was, however, hardly
-ripe for such a diversion of any large part of an old endowment, and
-although, as Mr. Forster pointed out at the inaugural meeting, a charter
-of Charles II. had assigned the land ‘for the better teaching,
-instructing, and bringing up of children and youth,’ ‘which terms are of
-common gender,’ the money assigned to the girls would not have been
-sufficient to start the school, but for the generosity of the Ladies’
-Educational Committee, which raised a sum of £5000 for purchasing the
-buildings. Thus the Bradford Girls’ Grammar School came into being. The
-fees are £12 to £15, 15s., and girls may stay till eighteen or nineteen.
-It is thus technically of the first grade, and as such prepares the
-pupils in the highest class for the university. Many, however, leave
-school long before attaining this stage, and this appears to constitute
-one of the special difficulties of North of England schools. There is,
-however, a wide list of subjects which may be taught, and from these the
-head-mistress arranges each pupil’s curriculum. As the fees are the same
-as those of a high school, the endowment fund helps to supply better
-salaries, apparatus, etc. and thus to increase efficiency. A scholarship
-fund of £1000 has been provided by the generosity of two private donors,
-and forty-one scholars have by its help already proceeded to the
-university.
-
-Manchester also has a first-grade endowed school, which originated like
-so many others in those active years that followed 1870. Here too the
-initiative was taken by an association for promoting the higher
-education of women. The school was started in 1873 by subscription, and
-in 1876 the present site in Dover Street was secured for building, and
-over £5000 raised for the purpose. A few years later, an opportunity
-occurred of securing some public money, as the wealthy foundation of
-Hulme’s Charity was to be reorganised. The school secured a share,
-receiving a capital grant of £1500, and £1000 a year on condition that
-the governing body should be reconstituted to give it a more
-representative character. Under the new arrangement, there are
-representatives of the Hulme Trustees, Oxford, Cambridge, Victoria, and
-London, Owens College, and the Manchester School Board, as well as other
-co-opted members. This representative character has proved of the
-greatest value to the school, which takes rank as one of the first in
-the country. The buildings are admirable in convenience and arrangement,
-and the scholarship fund amounts to £640 a year. Two smaller schools
-lately established by the governors at Pendleton and North Manchester
-have somewhat diminished the numbers of the parent school, but prove a
-boon to girls in those parts, since the means of communication at
-Manchester are somewhat inadequate. Only Manchester girls are received
-in the High School, or those residing with near relations. There are no
-boarding-houses; it is a purely local school. The fees are nine to
-fifteen guineas per annum. Manchester has been specially successful in
-‘assimilating’ those girls that enter the high school from the
-elementary schools, several of whom have passed on to the university
-with scholarships, and been very successful in their after careers. Its
-chief want is a system of scholarships from the elementary schools, to
-enable it to extend its useful work, and take a place in a national
-system of education.
-
-The most complete schemes of endowed schools for girls are at Birmingham
-and Bedford, and they are typical of two different systems. The King
-Edward’s endowment, one of the largest in England, had been so
-mismanaged that in 1828 only 115 boys were being educated on it, and the
-school building was in ruins. In 1831 by a Chancery scheme, two new
-schools, Classical and English, were established, and twenty years later
-there were sufficient funds to maintain eight elementary schools as
-well. Immediately after the passing of the ‘Endowed Schools Act’ further
-changes were made. The schools were reorganised in three grades (high,
-middle, lower middle), and four grammar schools founded for girls. When
-the spread of State-aided elementary schools made the third class
-unnecessary, these were abolished, and a girl’s High School substituted.
-This forms the last link in the chain; and a close connection between
-different grades by means of scholarships, leading gradually upward from
-the elementary school to the university, gives the necessary cohesion to
-the system. The High School can accommodate 260 girls, and the four
-grammar schools 780. Fees are charged in all, but not so high as to
-cover the cost of education. At the High School it is calculated that
-the expense of each pupil is £20 per annum, while the fee is £9. The
-endowment makes up the deficiency, and permits the reservation of
-one-third of the places for foundation scholars. Further, it enables the
-governors to offer their teachers good salaries, and to conduct the
-whole on those generous lines without which it is impossible to provide
-a liberal education for either girls or boys. In educational
-organisation as in municipal matters, Birmingham is a model to the rest
-of the country. It shows how an old endowment, sufficiently large and
-carefully distributed, can be made to meet the needs of all classes of a
-community. ‘We cannot reform our ancestors,’ as George Eliot so
-pertinently remarks, nor can we set down rich old endowments in the
-midst of places that have never known such benefactions. But fresh money
-is coming in from new sources, and we want object lessons in its
-application. Birmingham teaches the value of co-ordination, and
-incidentally the use to which public funds may be put in bringing a good
-education within the reach of the largest possible number.
-
-The position of Bedford is different. A small town with no special
-industry happens, through the munificence of one of its ancient
-citizens, to be possessed of one of the largest endowments in the
-kingdom. For many years its benefits were confined to the inhabitants of
-Bedford, and as a result the population was constantly increased by
-persons who were glad to get free education for their sons. Many, no
-doubt, were well able to pay for it, but preferred, naturally enough, to
-get it for nothing. At the time of the Schools’ Inquiry Commission, the
-endowment was maintaining:—(1) A grammar school with 204 boys. (2) A
-commercial school with 358 boys. (3) A preparatory commercial school
-with 237 boys; as well as elementary schools for nearly 1200 children
-and a hospital for 13 boys and 13 girls, almshouses, etc. Considerable
-as were these numbers, they fell far short of the possibilities of the
-endowment. The institution of a fee, even a low one, would at once set
-free a goodly sum, and something, if only as compensation for the
-marriage portions, was due to the girls. A new scheme providing for a
-fresh distribution of the funds was drawn up in 1873, but the girls’
-schools did not come into existence till 1882. Under the present
-arrangement one-eleventh of the available funds is used for eleemosynary
-purposes, two-elevenths go to the elementary schools, which until quite
-lately have served all the needs of the town and rendered a schoolboard
-unnecessary. The remainder is divided equally between the two higher
-schools—boys’ Grammar and girls’ High—and the two Modern schools. This
-looks very much like putting girls and boys on an equality, but a clause
-in the scheme explains that three boys are to be considered equal to
-five girls. In other respects the money is evenly divided; it is shared
-out annually ‘in proportion to the average number of scholars attending
-the said schools respectively during the preceding year,’ a curious
-application of a Scriptural doctrine, by which a rise in numbers in the
-boys’ school entails a corresponding deficit in the exchequer of the
-girls’ school and _vice versa_. Still, rightly managed, there is enough
-for all.
-
-At Bedford no attempt is made to co-ordinate the work of the two
-schools, or to establish any but the very slightest connection—by means
-of a few scholarships—between the elementary and modern schools. Hence
-the benefit of co-operation is lost. The great difference between the
-fees—£9 to £12 at the High, £4 at the Modern school—makes active rivalry
-impossible. It is the state of the home exchequer that settles the
-choice of a school, far more than the preference for one system of
-education or a girl’s probable after-career. It is curious that, in
-spite of the general outcry for cheap schools, the low fee of the Modern
-School has not proved as great an attraction as was expected; it has
-filled but slowly, and is only now approaching 200, while the High
-School averages an attendance of 600. To some extent the curriculum of
-both schools is the same, but the greater economy requisite in the
-Modern school necessitates larger classes, less complete equipment, and
-lower salaries for the teachers. To families in straitened
-circumstances, local shopkeepers, and small farmers within a short train
-journey of the town, the school is a great boon; but it seems certain
-that at Bedford, whatever may be the case elsewhere, all who can afford
-the higher fee are willing to pay it for the sake of the greater social
-prestige of the High School. Prejudice of this kind must always be
-reckoned with, however carefully Parliament or Royal Commissioners may
-provide on paper for the needs of each class of the population.
-
-On the other hand, the High School has more than fulfilled
-anticipations. Not only does it provide a first-class education for the
-sisters of grammar school boys, it has won a position and prestige of
-its own which attract considerable numbers from a distance. There are
-now several flourishing boarding-houses, all working in close connection
-with the school, and under the superintendence of the head-mistress. In
-this way Bedford High School, like the Cheltenham Ladies’ College, St.
-Leonard’s School at St. Andrews, and a very few others, has taken a
-position somewhat analogous to that of a boys’ public school, sought for
-its own sake, and not merely on account of its nearness or cheapness.
-The large numbers, ample staff, and sufficient funds enable the
-head-mistress to consider the needs of individual pupils more carefully
-than could be done in a small school. Forms are joined and subdivided
-lengthwise and crosswise, so as to bring together in small groups girls
-who are to give a good deal of time to Classics, Modern Languages,
-English, Drawing or Science, or any other special subject, thus avoiding
-the scrappiness with which the modern curriculum is sometimes charged.
-The girl who aims at the university is prepared for it, the girl who has
-a real taste for accomplishments receives first-rate instruction in
-music, drawing, etc. and at the same time is encouraged to give special
-attention to English. There is no attempt to force all through the same
-mill. The school is most fortunate in its buildings, which are beautiful
-as well as convenient. Hall, gymnasium, studio, laboratory, padded rooms
-for practising, nothing seems wanting to the equipment. It is pleasant
-to wander through the airy and tasteful class-rooms and realise that
-this is one of the many good things which the redistribution of
-endowments has given to girls. At Bedford there is not much risk of
-forgetting whence the money comes. The Harpur Trust seems to give its
-character to the town. The numerous schools, the Harpur Trust offices,
-the rows of almshouses, the ‘Harpur’ and ‘Dame Alice’ streets are
-suggestive of a town that has grown up about its schools, almost as
-Oxford and Cambridge have about their colleges. In the old church close
-by the founders lie buried; ever succeeding generations of boys and
-girls are entering into their inheritance.
-
-Among the eight largest endowments of which the Commissioners had to
-take cognisance was that of Dulwich. In few places was the reformer’s
-hand more needed than in the assignment of those large sums which had
-accumulated under the charity of Alleyn’s College of God’s Gift. At the
-time of the Schools’ Inquiry Commission—that date which marks a new
-starting-point in educational chronology, it maintained only an upper
-school with 130 boys, and a lower school with 90. In 1895 when some of
-the results of twenty-five years were summarised, it was supporting:—(1)
-A first-grade boys’ school—Dulwich College—with 630 scholars. (2) A
-second grade boys’ school—Alleyn’s School—with 540 boys; and
-contributing, (3) To James Allen’s Girls’ School a capital sum of £6000,
-and £650 a year. (4) To the Central Foundation Schools—boys and girls—a
-capital sum of £11,000 and £2300 a year. (5) To St. Saviour’s Grammar
-School, Southwark, a capital sum of £20,000 and £500 a year.
-
-This is a result that should please all parties. In spite of the
-additional advantages given to boys, the girls gain two schools; for
-although the James Allen school had been founded as early as 1741 by
-James Allen, master of Dulwich College, it was really nothing more than
-an elementary school until its reconstruction in 1882 with a part of the
-Dulwich endowment. It can accommodate 300 girls, has eight class-rooms,
-laboratory, assembly hall, dining-room, recreation ground of two and a
-half acres, and a completely equipped gymnasium where lessons are given
-by an expert teacher. With a £6 fee it is always full, and admirably
-serves its purpose of ‘supplying to girls of the middle class a sound
-practical education.’
-
-The fourth of the large endowments belongs to St. Olave’s Grammar
-School, and a school for girls is in course of establishment here.
-
-The Tonbridge endowment, administered by the Skinners’ Company, now
-supports a school for girls at Stamford Hill.
-
-The Manchester Grammar School fund has of late decreased in value, and
-has nothing to offer girls; but here they have had help from another
-quarter.
-
-The Jones foundation at Monmouth now provides for 500 boys, and 100
-girls, besides 50 elementary scholars, in place of 180 boys at the date
-of the Commission.
-
-Of the eight endowments, by far the largest was that of Christ’s
-Hospital, and here there was no question as to the original intentions.
-The treatment of girls had been so unfair as to arouse general
-indignation. But the whole foundation really needed overhauling. After
-long delays an elaborate scheme was drawn up, providing for the removal
-into the country of the boys’ school, proper boarding-school provision
-for girls, and large day-schools in London for both sexes. Of all this,
-now nearly twenty years after the passing of the Endowed Schools Act,
-very little has been done, though the removal of the boys’ school from
-London to Horsham is now definitely settled. At Hertford the girls’
-school has been reformed in its methods, and additional ward
-accommodation provided, but by a perverse system of election it is made
-very difficult to fill even that space. Girls can only be admitted on
-presentation of a governor—very difficult to obtain—or by a competition,
-to which only three classes are admitted. They must come either from—(1)
-Certain endowed schools in England and Wales, or (2) Public elementary
-schools in the London School Board district, or (3) Certain parishes
-which have hitherto exercised the right of presentation. As (1) and (2)
-represent the classes which are best provided, and least in need of the
-benefits of a cheap boarding-school, and (3) is, by its nature, very
-restricted, it is not strange that it has hitherto proved impossible to
-fill even the 140 available places, though there are thousands of girls
-in rural districts to whom a school of this kind would prove a priceless
-boon. There seems a curious irony about offering such nominations to the
-Bedford Modern School where girls are receiving an excellent education
-for £4 a year, and taking no thought for those less favoured places,
-which, because they have no endowment of their own, are therefore shut
-out from one that they could use. Of course all this is only temporary,
-but the transition stage seems a very long one. As far as girls are
-concerned, the chief needs seem to be the establishment of several cheap
-boarding-schools, the election of some women on the council of almoners,
-and a change in the present system of electing scholars. Let us hope
-that when the reforms come at last, they may prove to have been worth
-the waiting.
-
-Besides these eight chief endowments, there are many others of which
-girls have now received a share. There are now in England and Wales over
-eighty girls’ endowed schools of a secondary type, though the
-distribution is curiously uneven; _e.g._ the West Riding of Yorkshire
-has nine, while Surrey has only one. Much has been done, and much
-remains to be done, but it is well that every kind of experiment should
-be tried, so that the newer schemes may be improved by the experience of
-the older ones.
-
-Endowed schools are technically supposed to be of three grades,
-according to the age at which the pupils usually leave. For the first
-the limit is eighteen or nineteen; for the second, sixteen or seventeen;
-for the third, fourteen or fifteen. All admit them at seven or eight.
-There is something peculiarly English about this arrangement, which, on
-paper at any rate, appears needlessly wasteful. The natural division
-seems the American one. Here there are three successive grades,
-organically connected, by which a child may go through his whole school
-career, passing, as it were, from the kindergarten at one end to the
-university at the other. This arrangement of schools, all free, and
-meant for all the children of the community, is in harmony with the
-American democratic idea, but would be impossible in the midst of
-English class prejudice. Still even our social exclusiveness does not
-require such extreme differentiation, and experience shows that a system
-of three parallel lines, distinguished chiefly by breaking off at
-different points, is not altogether necessary. The problem, as it
-presents itself for girls, is not, however, the same as for boys. Boys’
-schools of the highest grade naturally prepare their pupils for the
-university, and as most of them are boarding-schools, they are exempt
-from considering local needs. The first public schools for girls were
-day schools. At the time of the first Endowed Schools Act, university
-education for girls had hardly made any way. Girton was just struggling
-into existence, the other colleges were but a dream of the future.
-London still withheld its degrees. What girls needed most was a sound
-general education given cheaply in day schools. Hence the low fees fixed
-by the Girls’ Public Day School Company, and the still lower ones
-charged at the endowed schools of the second and third grades, which at
-that time met the most crying want. By 1883 ten of these third grade
-schools in London were educating over two thousand girls. Among them
-were the Greycoat Hospital at Westminster, and the Roan School,
-Greenwich, and others that have since extended their sphere of work up
-to the second grade limit.
-
-The course of events during the last few years has necessitated these
-and many other changes. The Elementary Schools Act of 1870, and the
-spread of Higher Grade schools, while largely removing the need for the
-third grade, have necessitated some means of transition from the primary
-to the secondary school. On the other hand, the rise of women’s
-colleges, technical institutes, etc. and the increasing number of girls
-who, whether from choice or necessity, expect to earn their own living,
-necessitates a levelling-up of schools, and a closer connection with
-places of higher education. Direct connection with the primary schools
-on the one hand, and the women’s colleges on the other, is now a
-necessity. Many of the Charity Commissioners’ schemes have attempted to
-supply this. The Roan School at Greenwich is a good instance. It was
-founded in 1643 out of money left by John Roan to clothe and educate
-poor children, and reorganised in 1873, the income of £2000 being
-divided between 350 boys and 320 girls. There is a special fund for
-foundation exhibitions for elementary scholars, and others are admitted
-on passing an examination, at half-fees—£3 instead of £6. Of the total
-number of pupils, about two-fifths come from the elementary schools.
-Thus the work of the two is brought into very close connection, and the
-Roan School includes in itself both second and third grade functions. It
-provides for the upward passage by exhibitions, many of which are held
-at Bedford College, or in Wales.
-
-Scholarships of both kinds are also given by the Skinners’ School at
-Stamford Hill. Some of the entrance exhibitions are restricted to pupils
-from elementary schools, others are awarded by open competition. The two
-leaving exhibitions, of the value of thirty-three and thirty guineas
-respectively, are tenable for four years, at any place of advanced
-education approved by the governors. The school fees range from £6 to
-£10. The work of the Sixth Form leads to the higher certificate of the
-Joint Board or the London Matriculation, both of which serve the
-purposes of a leaving and entrance examination. This school might
-therefore be regarded as a combination of the three grades. Similar work
-is done by the Mary Datchelor School at Camberwell, the Aske’s School,
-Hatcham, and several others. Such schools, with a definite connection
-upward and downward, are among the chief educational needs of the day.
-Those now at work seem to be always full, and they draw their pupils
-from a class that look forward to a career of steady work. Clerks, civil
-servants, teachers, typists, telegraphists, milliners, nurses; these,
-and many others, occur in the lists of old pupils’ occupations. A useful
-general education, either as an end in itself or as a basis for higher
-or technical education, is given, and these schools have taken the place
-of the third rate private schools, which was all that had previously
-been offered to middle class girls. The expression of opinion by the
-Royal Commissioners, in 1895, that ‘a second grade school, which
-prepares for the local University College is often more suitable for a
-certain section of the population than a first grade school linked to
-Oxford and Cambridge,’ applies, _mutatis mutandis_, to girls as well as
-boys. For both, a part of the highest work must be supplied by
-boarding-schools.
-
-But when all the endowments hitherto made available are considered, the
-share of the girls is still far too small. In some counties there is
-hardly anything available for them. Against this disparity must be set
-the benefactions of recent years, many of which are specially meant for
-girls and women. The foundation of the City of London Girls’ School, by
-William Ward, in 1881, with an endowment of £20,000; the Pfeiffer
-Charity of £59,000, for the benefit of women’s education, the numerous
-scholarships given by city companies, the establishment of Holloway and
-Westfield Colleges, and of many other foundations for both sexes, belong
-to the twenty years between 1875 and 1895. If girls have lacked much in
-the past, they are inheriting the present. As the Charity Commissioners
-remarked, when reviewing a record of a quarter a century: ‘As to one
-particular branch of educational endowments, viz. that for the
-advancement of the secondary and superior education of girls and women,
-it may be anticipated that future generations will look back to the
-period immediately following upon the Schools’ Inquiry Commission, and
-the consequent passing of the Endowed Schools Act, as marking an epoch
-in the creation and application of endowments for that branch of
-education, similar to that which is marked for the education of boys and
-men by the Reformation.’
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI
- THE WOMEN’S COLLEGES
-
-
-The chief gain that this half-century has brought to women’s education
-is their admission to the universities. It is the key-stone of the arch,
-without which the rest of the fabric could have neither stability nor
-permanence. The schools look to them for their teachers and their
-standard, and gain thereby an element of fixity hitherto lacking. If
-boys’ education may be blamed for excessive conservatism, that of girls
-has suffered from extreme mobility. Since girls’ schools led nowhere,
-and acknowledged no outside guidance, their aim was perpetually
-changing, according to the ever-varying dictates of sentiment or
-expediency. Independent and unorganised, they lacked all connection with
-past and future; and it is this that the universities are now giving
-them.
-
-Apart from its intrinsic importance, this reform is remarkable for the
-speed and completeness with which it has been accomplished. Thirty years
-ago it had hardly been seriously contemplated; now eight of the ten
-universities of Great Britain teach their students without distinction
-of sex, while two others admit them to lectures, examinations, and many
-other privileges. All this has not been brought about without hard work
-and persevering effort; and it would be vain to seek the origin of all
-the separate forces that, acting and re-acting on one another, have
-produced this result. Many were the workers, and the honours of the
-pioneers must be shared, but among those who led the way a chief place
-belongs to Miss Emily Davies. From the first she realised that the
-reform in girls’ education must begin at the top. To quote her own
-words: ‘The incompleteness of the education of schoolmistresses and
-governesses is a drawback which no amount of intelligence and goodwill
-can enable them entirely to overcome. It is obvious that for those who
-have to impart knowledge the primary requisite is to possess it; and it
-is one of the great difficulties of female teachers that they are called
-upon to instruct others while being inadequately instructed themselves.
-The more earnest and conscientious devote their leisure hours to
-continued study, and no doubt much may be done in this way; but it is at
-the cost of overwork, often involving the sacrifice of health, to say
-nothing of the disadvantages of working alone, without a teacher, often
-without good books, and without the wholesome stimulus of
-companionship.’[14]
-
-But, important as was the improvement in the education of the teachers,
-Miss Davies had a wider aim in view for the college she meant to found.
-It was to bring a really liberal education within reach of all women,
-apart from any special professional aim. Girls, as well as boys, should
-have opportunities given them to carry on their studies in congenial and
-stimulating surroundings, unhampered by the cares of earning and
-unhindered by conflicting duties. To them, too, the college life was to
-bring that joyous spring-time of youth, friendship, and unfettered
-delight of study and leisure which had hitherto been withheld from them.
-Such was the generous purpose in the minds of a few men and women who
-were trying to fire others with their own enthusiasm.
-
-Even at the time of the Schools’ Inquiry Commission this question had
-been mooted, and a memorial had been sent up pointing out the want of a
-system of ‘instruction and discipline adapted to advanced students,
-combined with examinations testing and attesting the value of the
-education received.’ The report of the Commission and the discussion it
-aroused helped to give publicity to the proposal, and at last it was
-resolved to test the feasibility of the scheme by actual experiment. In
-1867 a committee had been formed to consider the possibility of founding
-a college ‘designed to hold in relation to girls’ schools and home
-teaching a position analogous to that occupied by the universities
-towards the public schools for boys.’ It was resolved to try an
-experiment on a small scale, and proceed further as funds became
-available. At Hitchin, near Cambridge, a small house was hired for the
-six students who presented themselves, and in October 1869 they began
-the work prescribed to candidates for degrees by the University of
-Cambridge. Insignificant as these beginnings may seem, they were of
-momentous importance in the history of women’s education. The founders
-of this, the first women’s college in England, had to choose once for
-all between a women’s university, with its exclusive studies and
-degrees, and admission to the great universities of the country. The
-question of a women’s university debated and vetoed in 1897 had really
-been finally settled in 1870, when the first lady students requested and
-received permission to be examined in the papers set for the Previous
-Examination.
-
-The prospectus of the new college issued in the autumn of 1869 contained
-this clause: ‘The Council shall use such efforts as from time to time
-they may think most expedient and effectual to obtain for the students
-of the College admission to the examinations for the degrees of the
-University of Cambridge, and generally to place the College in
-connection with the University.’ This ambitious programme thus early
-laid down for the infant College must have provoked many smiles; and
-looking back now after the lapse of nearly thirty years, we hardly know
-whether to wonder most at the confidence placed by the founders in the
-hitherto untried abilities of girls or at the success which so
-abundantly justified their anticipations.
-
-It was thus made clear from the outset that the new college was to be no
-self-centred institution, but was to derive its teaching, inspiration,
-and standard from Cambridge, provided always that the University were
-willing to accept the new responsibilities thus proposed. For this end
-it seemed desirable to make an informal experiment, and through the
-kindness of the individual examiners five of the students were submitted
-to the test of the Previous Examination. All were successful; four
-attained the standard required for a First Class, and one that of a
-Second. Two years later three students entered for Tripos Examinations
-in the same informal manner, two passing in classics and one in
-mathematics. Thus three years after the opening of the College three of
-its students had fulfilled all the conditions required by the University
-of Cambridge for a degree in Honours. That was a sufficient answer to
-the doubters; the founders had justified their action. Henceforth the
-future of the College was fixed.
-
-Meanwhile vigorous efforts were being made to raise money for the
-permanent building to be erected in or near Cambridge. This was no easy
-task. Generous donations for the needs of women were at that time
-unknown. The _Quarterly Review_ recommended ‘simplicity of living and
-the strictest economy’ as alone suitable for women who might have to
-earn their own living, and desired to combine with this ‘training in
-housekeeping, regular needlework ... such cultivation as will make a
-really good wife, sister, and daughter to educated men.’ Against such
-selfish and confused notions it was difficult to contend. As Miss
-Shirreff wrote at the time: ‘Never yet have a company of women been able
-to scrape together funds for an object specially their own, be it club,
-or reading-room, or hospital, or, as now, a college.’ It is pleasant to
-realise that this is no longer true, and that the writer of these
-despairing words lived to see the change she had helped to bring about.
-
-The money came in, though slowly. Madame Bodichon generously gave the
-first thousand pounds, and among the earliest subscribers was George
-Eliot. Lady Stanley was another who gave liberal aid. The subscription
-list gradually grew longer; a piece of land was secured at Girton, near
-Cambridge, and building began. In 1873 it was ready for occupation, and
-henceforth became the home of the Ladies’ College, now incorporated as
-Girton College, with Miss Davies installed as Mistress. As the numbers
-increased, fresh additions were made to the building, but the aim and
-work of the College remained unchanged. Students were prepared for the
-Ordinary and Honours Degree Examinations by means of lectures given at
-Girton, and, as these were gradually opened to women, by attendance at
-some of the professorial and intercollegiate lectures in Cambridge. They
-were informally examined with the same papers as were set to the men,
-and in every detail of preliminary test, length of residence, etc. they
-conformed to the rules laid down by the University for its members. In
-lieu of the degree, which could not be conferred upon them, they
-received from the College a ‘degree certificate,’ and year by year fresh
-proofs were given of the general efficiency of the College and its
-students. In this way informal connection with the University was
-combined with formal adherence to its regulations. Thus matters
-continued till 1881.
-
-Side by side with the beginnings of Girton, another movement had been at
-work. This was largely due to the North of England Council, which by
-promoting examinations for women over eighteen, had been establishing a
-fresh link between the University of Cambridge and the education of
-girls. A Cambridge committee established courses of lectures in all the
-subjects of examination. These naturally attracted many students from a
-distance, and the same persons who had organised the lectures, soon had
-to face the problem of housing the audience. Mr. Henry Sidgwick, to
-whose generous and unfailing assistance women owe so much, invited Miss
-Clough to come and take charge of a house of residence for women
-students. This house—No. 64 Regent Street—became the germ of Newnham. As
-the numbers increased, removal to larger premises became necessary, and
-Merton Hall was taken. When this too had to be abandoned it was resolved
-to build. Funds were raised by the Newnham Hall Company, and eventually
-this was amalgamated with the association which had charge of the
-lectures, and the two were incorporated as Newnham College. This
-development from small beginnings, under the Principal’s able management
-with the constant help and sympathy of Mr. and Mrs. Sidgwick, has now
-been fully made known through Miss A. B. Clough’s interesting biography
-of her aunt. Newnham has seen some changes of policy and programme since
-its first beginnings in 1870, but its true aim, to advance the education
-of women at Cambridge, has always remained the same.
-
-Since Newnham originated in a house of residence for girls preparing for
-the Higher Local Examination, this was naturally the goal set before the
-first students; but very early in its history some few who were more
-ambitious or better prepared, found this aim insufficient, and began,
-like the Girton students, to study for the degree examinations. The
-Higher Local, at first the goal, gradually receded in importance, and
-became a preliminary instead of a final, but it was not made compulsory
-to follow the Cambridge curriculum exactly, and in those early days
-great latitude in choice of subjects, examinations, length of residence,
-etc. was allowed to Newnham students.
-
-Thus matters continued till 1880, when special attention was called to
-Girton by the distinguished success of one of its students, who was
-declared by the examiners in the mathematical Tripos to be equal to the
-eighth wrangler. There was now a ten years’ record of good work to show,
-and the time seemed opportune for bringing about a more formal
-connection with the University. A memorial was drawn up and presented,
-which called attention to the ‘repeated instances of success on the part
-of students of Girton and Newnham Colleges, in satisfying the examiners
-in various degree examinations at Cambridge,’ and praying the Senate to
-‘grant to properly qualified women the right of admission to the
-examinations for University degrees, and to the degrees conferred
-according to the result of such examinations.’ This was signed by 8500
-persons; other petitions to the same effect were received, and as a
-result a syndicate was appointed to consider the matter. Their report
-advocated the formal admission of women to the Honours examinations of
-the University, and the publication of a separate class-list, indicating
-the position of each in the general list. They did not, however,
-recommend conferring degrees on women, nor did they advise admitting
-them to the Ordinary Degree examinations. The recommendations were
-embodied in three Graces, passed by the Senate on February 24, 1881, a
-red-letter day in the annals of College women. These are the most
-important:—
-
-‘1. That female students who have fulfilled the conditions respecting
-length of residence and standing which members of the University are
-required to fulfil, be admitted to the Previous Examination and the
-Tripos Examinations.
-
-‘2. That such residence shall be kept—(_a_) at Girton College; or (_b_)
-at Newnham College; or (_c_) within the precincts of the University,
-under the regulations of one or other of these Colleges; or (_d_) in any
-similar institution within the precincts of the University which may be
-recognised hereafter by grace of the Senate.
-
-‘3. That certificates of residence shall be given by the authorities of
-Girton College or Newnham College or other similar institution hereafter
-recognised by the University, in the same form as that which is
-customary in the case of members of the University.
-
-‘4. That except as is provided in regulation 5, female students shall,
-before admission to a Tripos Examination, have passed the Previous
-Examination (including the Additional subjects), or one of the
-examinations which excuse members of the University from the Previous
-Examination.
-
-‘5. That female students who have obtained an Honour certificate in the
-Higher Local Examination, may be admitted to a Tripos Examination,
-though such certificate does not cover the special portions of the
-Higher Local Examination, which are accepted by the University in lieu
-of parts or the whole of the Previous Examination; provided that such
-students have passed in Group B, (Language): and Group C, (Mathematics).
-
-‘6. That no female student shall be admitted to any part of any of the
-examinations of the University who is not recommended for admission by
-the authorities of the College, or other institution, under whose
-regulations she has resided.
-
-‘7. That after each examination a class-list of the female students who
-have satisfied the examiners shall be published by the examiners at the
-same time with the class-list of members of the University, the standard
-for each class, and the method of arrangement in each class being the
-same in the two class lists.
-
-‘8. That in each class of female students in which the names are
-arranged in order of merit, the place which each of such students would
-have occupied in the corresponding class of members of the University
-shall be indicated.
-
-‘9. That the examiners for the Tripos shall be at liberty to state, if
-the case be so, that a female student who has failed to satisfy them,
-has in their opinion reached a standard equivalent to that required from
-members of the University for the ordinary B.A. degree.
-
-‘10. That to each female student who has satisfied the examiners in a
-Tripos Examination, a certificate shall be given by the University
-stating the conditions under which she was admitted to the examinations
-of the University, the examinations in which she has satisfied the
-examiners, and the class and place in the class to which she has
-attained in each of such examinations.’
-
-This was followed in 1882 by permission to pass the examinations for
-degrees in Music.
-
-The Colleges and their students thus received formal acknowledgment from
-the University, and the status then conferred remains unchanged to this
-day. Two attempts have since been made to induce the University to carry
-its concessions to their logical issue, and confer degrees on women.
-That of 1887 came to an untimely end, as it was not even considered by a
-syndicate; the events of 1897 belong to recent history, and are too
-fresh to allow a proper estimate of their significance. The facts are
-these. In 1896 four memorials were presented to the Council, asking for
-the nomination of a syndicate ‘to consider on what conditions and with
-what restrictions, if any, women should be admitted to degrees in the
-University.’ The syndicate was appointed, and reported in favour of
-conferring ‘the title of the degree of Bachelor of Arts’ by diploma upon
-women, ‘who, in accordance with the now existing ordinances, shall
-hereafter satisfy the examiners in a final Tripos Examination, and shall
-have kept by residence nine terms at least; provided that the title so
-conferred shall not involve membership of the University.’ This seemed a
-very moderate proposal, since it only involved a formal acknowledgment
-of privileges already conferred, but somehow the University took fright.
-Perhaps it now for the first time realised what had already been done,
-and determined to allow no more concessions; perhaps an element of
-jealousy was beginning to play a part among the younger members who had
-appeared in the same class lists as the women, and not always in the
-highest places; certain it is that while the best weight and learning in
-Cambridge were in favour of the proposals, numbers were ranged on the
-other side; and the voting resulted in a majority of more than a
-thousand against the proposal. In estimating this result it is well to
-remember that the women’s colleges had met with far more rapid success
-than even their founders had anticipated. They had produced a Senior
-Wrangler and a Senior Classic, and a formidable list of first classes in
-these and other Triposes. It was no longer possible to put aside their
-achievements with the old contemptuous formula, ‘very good considering.’
-The movement had succeeded beyond all hope or fear, and while its true
-friends remained staunch, many of the indifferent now ranged themselves
-among the open enemies. Events had moved too fast for the rearguard of
-public opinion to keep up with them. At any rate the refusal was
-decisive, and matters settled down once more to the _status quo_ of
-1881.
-
-Anomalous as is their position, the students of Girton and Newnham have
-many and great advantages. For a comparatively low fee they receive all
-the advantages of a University education; they enjoy the manifold
-privileges that belong to residence in Cambridge, they may attend nearly
-all professorial and very many college lectures, their own colleges also
-provide excellent lecturing and coaching; and they may enter for any of
-the Tripos Examinations, and for those that lead to the degrees of Doc.
-and Bac. Mus. They have the advantage of life in beautiful buildings,
-with plentiful opportunities for recreation, exercise, and social
-intercourse, while the very fact of belonging to Girton or Newnham
-confers a certain prestige which is an advantage professionally and
-socially. However much we may desire the degree, and regret its
-indefinite postponement, it may yet safely be said that nowhere else can
-women obtain such advantages as at Cambridge. No anxiety need be felt
-about the future of the colleges. The success of their students, the
-influence their ‘graduates’ have had on the teaching profession, and the
-good work done by them in other fields, have amply justified the new
-departure. If success has come too quickly, public opinion may lag
-behind a few years longer. Meantime the work goes on.
-
-At this period of their history it is no longer necessary to describe
-the colleges. Everybody who knows Cambridge is familiar with them. Both
-have increased greatly since their first beginnings. Girton has added
-fresh wings and a tower; changed its entrance and built a library which
-is full to overflowing. The trees have grown up around it and offer
-pleasant shade to summer tea-parties and afternoon loungers, the
-‘woodland walk’ that encircles the grounds is gay at almost all seasons
-with pretty blossoms and flowering shrubs. Newnham has enlarged its
-first (Old) hall and built two new ones, called by names that will ever
-be held in honour, Clough and Sidgwick Halls. One library has been
-outgrown, and another—a generous gift—has been lately added; a road has
-been diverted allowing an addition to the grounds, and a fresh approach
-made under a tower gateway with beautiful iron gates presented by old
-students in memory of their first Principal. Girton has once more
-outgrown its accommodation, and is appealing for building funds. The
-colleges are growing both outwardly and in their aims. Not the least
-hopeful feature is the number of ‘graduate’ students who continue their
-studies in Cambridge or at one of the foreign universities, or devote to
-research or social problems that leisure and freedom from responsibility
-which women possess in a greater share than men. The founders have been
-abundantly justified in their resolve to establish no mere
-training-school for governesses, but to offer a wide and liberal
-education to all.
-
-There are some differences in the arrangements of the two colleges. At
-Girton each student has two rooms, at Newnham one. The Girton fees are
-£105 per annum including coaching and examinations; at Newnham they are
-£75, but these items are not in all cases included. Girton supplies cabs
-for students who attend lectures in Cambridge; Newnham, being in the
-town, is within a walk. Both require every one who has not taken an
-equivalent, _e.g._ the higher certificate of the Joint Board, to pass an
-entrance examination. Both colleges award scholarships, though scarcely
-sufficient to meet the many demands from girls whose parents cannot
-afford the payment of full fees. Miss Welsh, one of the early Hitchin
-students, is now mistress of Girton; Newnham has a Vice-principal for
-each of the halls, and a Principal over the whole. In this post Mrs. H.
-Sidgwick succeeded Miss Clough, when the true foundress of Newnham died
-in 1892.
-
-There is a good deal of resemblance between the Cambridge colleges and
-the Oxford halls, though these latter have a different history. As early
-as 1865 a scheme for lectures and classes at Oxford had been organised
-by Miss Smith, and remained in operation for several years. In 1873
-another similar scheme was set on foot by a committee of ladies, with
-Mrs. Max Müller as treasurer, and Mrs. H. Ward and Mrs. Creighton,
-followed by Mrs. T. H. Green, as secretaries. The outcome of this was
-the Association for the Education of Women, organised in 1878, its
-object being ‘to establish and maintain a system of instruction having
-general reference to the Oxford examinations.’ Here as at Cambridge the
-next step was to found halls of residence to accommodate students from a
-distance. Two of these, Somerville and Lady Margaret, were opened in the
-same year, 1879; since then two more, St. Hugh’s and St. Hilda’s, have
-been added. The great difference, however, between the arrangements at
-the two Universities is that the Oxford Association, instead of
-amalgamating with the halls, has continued an independent existence,
-taking the lead in all matters concerning women’s education. Most
-associations of this kind were temporary bodies, which dissolved when
-the college or school for which they were working was established, or
-when the particular institution with which they were connected had
-opened its doors to women. But the Oxford Association has increased in
-importance with the development of the colleges, and has become a Board
-of Studies for their students, and a means of communication between them
-and the University. One of its functions is to organise lectures, to
-which members of the University not infrequently request and obtain
-admission. It also undertakes the negotiations with the various
-professors and colleges that admit women to lectures, and it is thanks
-to its exertions that they may now attend under certain regulations
-lectures at almost every college in Oxford. Similarly their admission to
-university examinations is the work of the Association. In fact, it acts
-almost as a feminine department of the University, since it has to
-sanction the establishment of halls, make itself responsible for the
-studies and discipline of its students, and generally establish their
-connection with the University. This connection received its formal
-acknowledgment in 1893, when the Dean of Christchurch was appointed to
-represent the Hebdomadal Council on the Council of the Association, and
-a room in the Clarendon Building was lent it as an office.
-
-There are some other technical differences between the position of women
-at Oxford and Cambridge. The latter directly acknowledges the women’s
-colleges, the former in theory knows nothing of its women students, but
-leaves the Delegacy for Local Examinations to arrange for their
-examination. The delegates are allowed for this purpose to use the
-papers set by the University examiners for men, and, of course, the
-examinations are conducted simultaneously and under exactly the same
-conditions. Women may enter for every examination—whether Pass or
-Honours—leading to the B.A. degree, and it is this Delegacy which lays
-down the special conditions. In all cases a Preliminary examination is
-compulsory and in some an Intermediate, but neither the Delegacy nor the
-University demands that they should conform to the regulations imposed
-on men in regard to duration of study, preliminary examinations and
-residence. This has led to greater freedom in work; but, as often
-happens, this greater liberty has proved somewhat detrimental. It was
-difficult to gauge the value of work done under such conditions, since
-some students would end a four years’ course with Moderations and others
-at once begin working for the Final Schools. Then there were some
-special examinations for women, which by that very restriction failed to
-win even the prestige they deserved, and an impression, not quite
-unfounded, spread abroad, of a certain vagueness in the Oxford work,
-which lessened its value in the eyes of the general public. There was no
-real gain in making a selection from a course that had been carefully
-planned out by the University for its members, and as this anomalous
-state of things had really been brought about by the gradual opening of
-the examinations, which made the regular course at first inaccessible to
-women students, there seemed no reason for continuing it when once this
-difficulty was removed. Oxford women got less credit often than was
-their due, simply because some little preliminary formality had been
-omitted.
-
-In order to remedy this, and put the whole work on a firmer basis, the
-Association decided to institute a system of diplomas for those of its
-students who have taken the full course required of members of the
-University. This certificate is awarded only to students who have
-entered their names on the register qualifying for it, have kept their
-residence after date of entry, and passed the examinations of the B.A.
-course in the order and under the conditions as to standing prescribed
-for members of the University. Another diploma is also offered to those
-who have passed a course of three examinations approved by the council.
-Though equivalent to the B.A. diploma as regards difficulty of
-attainment, there appears to be little demand among recent students for
-this alternative course; and it will probably be regarded as a survival
-from the days when, the University examinations being only partially
-open to women, substitutes had in some cases to be devised. Certificates
-are also awarded to those students who have resided not less than eight
-terms, and have obtained a class in an Honour Examination of the
-University or of the Delegates of Local Examinations. These diplomas and
-certificates offer a definite incentive to regular study, and serve at
-once to show the value of the work done in each case.
-
-At Oxford, as at Cambridge, an attempt has been made to win complete
-acknowledgment for women students by the conferment of the degree. An
-appeal was made to the University in 1895. The question came to the vote
-in 1896, and here, as afterwards at Cambridge, the proposal was thrown
-out by a considerable majority. Oxford women, like their sisters at
-Cambridge, must therefore wait a while longer for complete recognition.
-The attempt here may have been a little premature, since, owing to the
-late opening of the examinations and the latitude allowed to students,
-there were at that time very few who had fulfilled all the necessary
-conditions. Still the reason of the refusal was probably identical in
-both cases, and indicated a deep-rooted prejudice that must be overcome
-before further steps can be taken. Meantime the institution of the
-degree-certificate is giving fresh impetus to the work, and attracting
-larger numbers to the colleges.
-
-Of these Somerville and Lady Margaret were founded almost
-simultaneously, but with somewhat different aims, the former being
-undenominational, the latter distinctly Church of England. Both were
-intended as halls of residence for Association students, but in 1881
-Somerville was incorporated as a college ‘to provide for the residence
-of women students’ as well as ‘for the instruction of women students and
-for the delivery of lectures to such students’; it was not, however,
-till 1894 that the term ‘college’ came into general use. Like the
-Cambridge colleges it has grown from small beginnings; it has been
-enlarged four times, not on one plan but by the addition of fresh
-buildings, so that it does not present the appearance of a connected
-whole. But standing in pleasant grounds among fine old trees, this very
-medley gives it a certain charm. It can now accommodate over seventy
-students, besides the Principal, secretary, and four resident tutors.
-Many of its old students have gained honourable positions for
-themselves; indeed the Principals of two leading women’s colleges,
-Holloway and Bedford, were chosen from the ranks of old Somerville
-students.
-
-Lady Margaret was founded by the Bishop of Rochester and others, and has
-adhered to its original plan of supplying residence to Church members of
-the Association. It undertakes no part of the instruction, but makes use
-of the Association’s tutorial and lecturing staff. For some years the
-numbers continued small, but as they gradually increased it became
-necessary to construct an additional hall. Part of this, the Wordsworth
-building, was occupied in 1896, when the numbers went up to forty-nine,
-and the council are now appealing for additional funds with which to
-build a chapel and the central block, to contain the library and
-permanent dining-hall. A pretty thatched boat-house on the Cherwell is
-an attractive feature of the grounds, and Lady Margaret is proud of its
-rowing club. The Principal is Miss Wordsworth, daughter of the late
-Bishop of Lincoln and great-niece of the poet. The hall takes its name
-from Lady Margaret Beaufort, that renowned patroness of learning, and
-there is a cast from her effigy in the tiny college chapel.
-
-In close connection with Lady Margaret is St. Hugh’s. It was founded in
-1886 by Miss Wordsworth to provide a more economical residence for women
-students. By a system of sharing bedrooms and using common
-sitting-rooms, somewhat lower fees became practicable for those who
-could not afford the ordinary terms. The plan does not seem to have
-proved very successful, and St. Hugh’s has developed into a small
-independent hall for twenty-five students, on the same lines as Lady
-Margaret, but with a graduated system of fees according to the room
-occupied. Like Lady Margaret it is conducted according to the principles
-of the Church of England, with liberty for other denominations. It also
-uses the tutorial staff of the Association. All students are expected to
-read for some University examination unless specially exempted by the
-Council. The Principal is Miss Moberly, daughter of the late Bishop of
-Salisbury.
-
-The youngest of the Oxford halls is St. Hilda’s. It was founded by Miss
-Beale in 1893, and meant in the first instance for students passing on
-from Cheltenham to Oxford. This exclusive character has, however, been
-abandoned, and it is now formally recognised under the rules of the
-Association for the Education of Women. It still receives the greater
-part of its students from Cheltenham, though there is nothing now to
-exclude others. As yet the numbers are very small. The Principal is Mrs.
-Burrows.
-
-Of these four institutions, Somerville, the largest and most
-distinguished, is the only undenominational one. All four have the
-combined bedroom-studies, with common dining-halls, libraries, etc.
-Out-door games, debating societies, college clubs, etc. are as popular
-as at Cambridge. All the colleges require an entrance examination or an
-alternative, and all give scholarships according to ability. The fees at
-Somerville (including board, lodging, tuition and lectures) range from
-£78 to £90 according to the room occupied. At Lady Margaret they are
-£75, exclusive of tuition, which involves another £20 or £25. At St.
-Hugh’s the inclusive terms range from £70 to £90; at St. Hilda’s as at
-Lady Margaret, there is a charge of £75, which does not include tuition.
-
-Besides those who reside at the halls other women are frequently
-attracted to Oxford. For these, too, the Association makes provision.
-Those who avail themselves of the lectures and direction of the
-Association, but do not reside in a hall, are registered as home
-students, and are placed under the care of a Principal and a committee
-of the Council of the Association. They are required to reside, with the
-Principal’s approval, in a house sanctioned by the committee, and to
-conform to certain rules corresponding to those laid down for hall
-students. The Principal performs some of the functions of a tutor.
-Students call upon her at the beginning and end of each term, and submit
-to her their lists of lectures before sending them in to the office. The
-home students are doubtless able to pursue their studies more
-economically. The tuition fees seldom exceed £25, and board and lodging
-may be had for 25s. a week and upwards. As Oxford terms rarely exceed
-eight weeks it is possible by very careful management to keep expenses
-down to £50 to £60. As a matter of fact a large proportion of these
-students are daughters of Oxford residents. The arrangement is also a
-convenient one for foreigners who come to Oxford for a short time only.
-Many come in this way from America, after taking a degree in one of
-their own colleges. French, German, Russian, Roumanian, Danish, Swedish,
-and Norwegian students have at different times resided in Oxford,
-working at English language and literature, for the teaching diplomas of
-their own country. By helping these the Association can considerably
-increase its sphere of usefulness, and without disturbing the work of
-the halls it introduces a wider outlook into the lives of the students.
-At the same time it is open to home students to take the regular course,
-and several of them do so. The committee only registers those who take
-up a systematic course of study, extending over at least three terms,
-but even those who come for a shorter time can attend its lectures and
-profit by its help.
-
-By these varied means the Association is able to draw together all the
-agencies for women’s education at Oxford; in 1897 the number of students
-on its books was 202, and there is every reason to expect a considerable
-increase now that the institution of the degree-diploma has given a
-fresh impulse to the work. The steady flow from our girls’ schools to
-both Universities proves that the colleges have won appreciation through
-the whole of the country. Happily many of the founders are yet among us
-to enjoy the fruits of the labours. Girton and Newnham, Somerville and
-Lady Margaret, bear eloquent testimony to the truth that the dreamers of
-visions are often those who see furthest and best.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII
- ADMISSION TO UNIVERSITIES
-
-
-The position of women at Oxford and Cambridge is so anomalous as to
-require a good deal of explanation, and indeed it is sometimes said that
-the only real grievance these students have is the difficulty of making
-people understand what they may and what they may not do. There is no
-such difficulty when we come to the newer universities. Here the course
-has been one of steady progress, and one after another all the barriers
-have fallen.
-
-London was the pioneer in this reform, and its exceptional position made
-it an excellent field for experiment. A mere examining and
-degree-conferring body, the London University was not obliged to face
-those difficult questions of residence, teaching, and discipline which
-had to be considered elsewhere. It was natural that women who desired to
-obtain professional qualifications without being compelled to seek them
-outside their own country, should apply to London for help. As early as
-1856 Miss J. M. White had addressed a letter to the Registrar, inquiring
-whether a woman could become a candidate for a diploma in medicine.
-Counsel’s opinion was taken in the matter and proved adverse. In 1872 it
-was again raised by Miss Elizabeth Garrett (now Mrs. Garrett Anderson)
-who requested admission as a candidate for matriculation. She was
-refused on the same ground. Since it appeared that the University had
-not power to accede to these requests, a memorial was drawn up begging
-it to seek for such modifications in its charter as would enable it to
-admit women to examination. The motion was brought before the Senate,
-and lost by the casting vote of the Chancellor. With success so nearly
-attained the advocates of the change determined not to let the matter
-drop, and after a while a modified proposal was made. It was thought
-that a special examination for women might meet the case, or at any rate
-serve as an experiment in what was then a very new field. The first was
-held in May 1869, and followed the lines of Matriculation with some
-modifications. As an isolated examination of no special difficulty and
-leading nowhere, it did not attract large numbers, and it became more
-and more clear that what women needed was not so much a special course
-of study as—to quote the words of the Calendar—‘to have access to the
-ordinary degrees and honours, and to be subject to the same tests of
-qualification which were imposed on other students.’ The result of this
-conviction was that in 1878 it was decided to accept from the Crown ‘a
-supplemental charter, making every degree, honour, and prize awarded by
-the University accessible to students of both sexes on perfectly equal
-terms.’ The charter, however, declared that no woman should be a member
-of Convocation until Convocation should itself pass a resolution
-admitting them. In 1882, almost as soon as there was any woman eligible,
-this resolution was passed, and henceforth both sexes were placed on an
-absolute equality in their treatment by London University.
-
-There is no need to dwell on the success of this new departure. The
-London degrees have been eagerly sought by women, and they have won
-distinguished places in the class lists. Among its graduates London
-numbers over fifty female M.A.’s, six D.Sc.’s, one D.Lit., to say
-nothing of many hundred B.A. and B.Sc., as well as all the medical
-degrees. Class lists show no special division into masculine and
-feminine studies, since women have won high honours in classics, and men
-in modern languages. Even on Presentation-Day special allusions to the
-lady-graduates are seldom made in the speeches; it is no longer
-considered a matter of surprise that women should hold their own
-intellectually. The London class lists with their rigid equality have
-proved to demonstration the equality of the sexes as far as concerns the
-domain of examination. And at the particular moment when this was done,
-it was the greatest service that could be rendered to the cause of
-women’s education, since it settled once and for all the question of
-making special conditions for them.
-
-But throwing open the examinations and degrees of London was only an
-indirect assistance to their education, since the University examines
-all who come, but asks no questions as to how or where they gained their
-teaching. There was one institution already in existence which was only
-waiting for this new impulse to enlarge the scope of its work. Bedford
-College had been gradually developing from humble beginnings into an
-institution of first-class educational importance. In 1874 it had been
-removed from Bedford Square to its present premises in York Place, Baker
-Street, and here it has been gradually expanding, adding another house,
-building on at the back, supplying now one laboratory now another, until
-it has reached its present condition of efficiency, taking its place as
-the leading women’s college of London. Its success is probably due to
-the progressive action of its council, ever ready to realise new needs
-and meet each fresh demand as it arose. Recognising the transformation
-which the opening of the London degrees must effect in women’s
-education, they at once proceeded to open classes in the subjects of the
-examinations. At the first Matriculation Examination to which women were
-admitted, five Bedford College students presented themselves, and all
-took Honours. In due course classes for B.A. work were added, then
-B.Sc., then M.A., and in all these Bedford College students acquitted
-themselves well. The college had now won an honourable place among
-university colleges, and in 1894 it was included among the list of those
-entitled to a share of the annual grant of £15,000 to university
-colleges in Great Britain. From this source it received £700, since
-increased to £1200, and it now receives also an annual grant of £500
-from the London Technical Education Board, for the further equipment of
-the laboratories and development of practical work in science. This is a
-speciality of Bedford College. Its laboratories for biology, botany,
-chemistry, geology, physiology, and physics meet every requirement.
-
-The college is still open to girls who attend only single courses, but
-the majority enter as regular students, and work either for a London
-degree or the alternative college course. Bedford has also added other
-departments of study to the ordinary curriculum. It has an art school, a
-training department for teachers, and a special hygiene course, for
-which certificates are conferred. And finally it has developed, as far
-as its accommodation will permit, into a residential college. The
-old-fashioned dormitory boarding accommodation has been abolished in
-favour of students’ rooms in the bed-study fashion so familiar at
-Newnham and Oxford, and the general management has been placed in the
-hands of a Principal. Miss Emily Penrose, the first to fill this post,
-has now become Principal of Holloway, and her place is taken by Miss
-Ethel Hurlbatt, late Warden of Aberdare Hall.
-
-Bedford College, true to its undenominational principles, has never
-introduced religious instruction into its curriculum. It is not
-unnatural that a wish has been expressed in some quarters for a
-residential college, which should prepare its students for London
-degrees and at the same time take cognisance of their religious
-training. It was for this end that Westfield College at Hampstead was
-founded in 1882. Its benefactor was Miss Dudin Brown, who made over to
-trustees the sum of £10,000 ‘for the establishment of a college for the
-higher education of women on Christian principles.’ The Principal is
-Miss Maynard, one of the early students of Girton, who has introduced
-into Westfield many of the arrangements of the parent college. The
-two-room plan, which has found too few imitators, is the rule here.
-Inclusive fees, as at Girton, are £105 a year. The conditions for
-admission are similar. There are three entrance scholarships, open to
-girls who have passed the London Matriculation in Honours or in the
-first division.
-
-The college began its work in hired houses at Hampstead, but building
-soon became necessary. It is pleasantly situated in that most attractive
-of the London suburbs, and combines some advantages of both town and
-country. Though it has no laboratories of its own, students can easily
-reach those of Bedford College to which they have access; and similarly
-it is easy to supply from London such teaching as cannot be undertaken
-by the resident staff. Westfield students take high places in the class
-lists, and it supplies an important addition to the London colleges.
-
-In enumerating these we cannot omit Holloway, for though far beyond the
-borders of the metropolis, it is more and more assimilating its teaching
-to the London work. Such was not, however, its original purpose. Among
-those who attended the meeting in 1867 to consider the foundation of a
-women’s college, was Mr. Thomas Holloway, and at one time it was hoped
-he would prove a benefactor to it. But Mr. Holloway preferred the idea
-of an independent college unconnected with a university, like Vassar and
-others in the United States, and his wishes were thus expressed: ‘It is
-the founder’s desire that power by Act of Parliament, Royal Charter, or
-otherwise, should ultimately be sought, enabling the college to confer
-degrees on its students after proper examination in the various subjects
-of instruction.’ With this end in view he chose a beautiful site near
-Egham, and built upon it a most elaborate and fully equipped college,
-which should some day develop into a women’s university. Nothing was
-spared that could contribute to the comfort and well-being of the
-students. Each has two rooms; and the magnificent dining-hall, museum,
-picture-gallery, etc. prove that no pains were spared to make the new
-college attractive as well as efficient. For all that, it was viewed at
-first with some misgivings, for it seemed to lack a definite aim. It was
-formally opened by the Queen in 1886, and in the following year Miss
-Bishop was appointed Principal, but students came in slowly. A liberal
-provision of scholarships, and the beauty and healthy situation of the
-college did much to dispel the first misgivings, especially when it
-began to appear from results that the teaching too was of the best. The
-founder had himself directed that until the power to confer degrees
-should have been obtained ‘it is intended that the students shall
-qualify themselves to take the degrees at the University of London or
-any other university of the United Kingdom whose degrees may be obtained
-by them, or to pass any examination open to them at any such university,
-which may be equivalent to a degree examination.’ In accordance with
-this permission the first students were prepared for the London degrees,
-and also for the examinations of the University of Oxford, which under
-present conditions are open to all comers, since the delegacy takes no
-cognisance of residence. Holloway students may therefore, if they
-please, present themselves for examination in Moderations and Final
-Schools just as if they were residing at the Oxford halls. They cannot,
-of course, obtain the Association’s diploma, and miss the advantage of
-the Oxford lectures.
-
-On these lines the college worked for ten years, when circumstances made
-it necessary to reconsider its position. At both Oxford and Cambridge
-the degree had been refused, and it seemed desirable for the friends of
-women’s education to come to some decision on their future policy. Once
-again the scheme of a women’s university was raised; and Holloway
-College took the lead in calling a meeting to discuss the question.
-Opinions were invited as to the future action of the college, and three
-propositions were made: (1) That Holloway College should, in accordance
-with the founder’s will, seek powers to confer its own degrees. (2) That
-a Federal University should be founded, to include in its jurisdiction
-all the women’s colleges. (3) That Holloway should associate itself more
-closely with London, and seek admission into its teaching University
-when this should be founded. The discussion showed a strong consensus in
-favour of this last proposal, and it is probable that henceforth the
-work of Holloway College will be chiefly directed towards the London
-courses. If so, it will be safe to predict for it a brilliant future.
-Its healthy situation, delightful grounds, beautiful buildings, and
-large endowment, with the prospect of receiving full recognition for
-work done, will attract large numbers; indeed with Holloway, Bedford,
-and Westfield for their own, London women have little left to desire.
-Whatever they may lack elsewhere fullest measure is dealt to them here.
-
-Nor are they even restricted to their own special colleges. The classes
-at University College are open to all who care to attend; indeed this
-was one of the first, if not the very first, of our English colleges to
-try the co-education experiment. After experimenting by holding some
-classes for women separately, and admitting them temporarily to others,
-the professors decided in favour of joint classes, and the result was
-the opening of all except the departments of Medicine and Engineering.
-The results proved altogether satisfactory, and this end has been helped
-by the appointment of a lady-superintendent, who holds the same position
-towards the women students that a vice-dean does to the men. No woman is
-admitted as a student except upon her recommendation, and upon
-production of satisfactory references. In this way their special
-interests are safeguarded, and girls far from home may always secure
-friendly advice and guidance. Further, there is a special residence
-provided at College Hall, Byng Place, where students may have some of
-the advantages of college life while pursuing their studies at
-University College, or the Woman’s Medical School close by. With Miss
-Grove as Principal, and Miss Morison, superintendent of the women
-students, as Vice-Principal, it offers a bright and cultivated home to
-its inmates, and keeps up the collegiate idea by admitting only such as
-have already passed Matriculation or an equivalent examination, and are
-pursuing a regular course of study. The fees for board and residence
-vary, according to the room occupied and the length of the term, from
-£51 to £90 the session.
-
-To give a complete list of the institutions that prepare students for
-the London degrees, would be impossible, since it is open to any person
-in any place to hold such classes. A few work for them at the ladies’
-department of King’s College, but on the whole the work of this branch
-is more on the lines of miscellaneous lectures and general culture. Some
-schools, _e.g._ the North London and the Bedford High School, also carry
-on their pupils beyond Matriculation to the Intermediate examinations,
-or even further. The Ladies’ College, Cheltenham, provides instruction
-for the full Arts course. Most of the provincial university colleges
-have London degree classes, and many candidates, who cannot get oral
-teaching, make use of the University Tutorial and other correspondence
-classes.
-
-A new development on fresh lines is supplied by the Polytechnics. In
-most of these, whether in London or other large towns, classes are held
-in all the subjects of the London examinations with particular
-assistance for Science. With fully equipped laboratories, a large staff
-of teachers, and considerable funds at their disposal, the Polytechnics
-may yet become formidable rivals to the other London colleges. Some
-regret this new departure, and believe that such institutions would be
-better employed in confining themselves to their original function, the
-encouragement of handicraft; on the other hand, a system of cheap local
-colleges is so valuable to large numbers that it is not likely to be
-abandoned. Some place must be found in the new organisation of the
-London University for these institutes, if they themselves desire it;
-but perhaps we shall see, instead of this, a federation of these great
-science and handicraft schools into some fresh University of their own.
-
-The example set by London in 1879 was soon to be imitated. Only a year
-afterwards a new University was founded, and the principle of including
-women was at once adopted. The charter of Victoria University distinctly
-stated that its degrees and distinctions might be conferred ‘on all
-persons, male or female, who shall have pursued a regular course of
-study in a College in the University, and shall submit themselves for
-examination.’ The degree is somewhat on the lines of the London, but
-attendance at certain prescribed courses of study is required. These
-courses must be continued for three years at least. Hence admission to
-the Victoria degrees really depends on the action of the individual
-colleges, which are quite unfettered by the University. These are—(1)
-Owens College, Manchester; (2) University College, Liverpool; (3)
-Yorkshire College, Leeds.
-
-The first of these had been in existence as a men’s college some years
-before the establishment of the University, and it has not seemed
-anxious to make changes in its original constitution. It became
-necessary to organise a special department for women, in connection with
-which they still receive some of their instruction. But the teaching for
-the higher examinations, _i.e._ those beyond the Victoria Preliminary,
-is received in the ordinary college classes. As a matter of fact, men
-and women are taught together in nearly all the B.A. and B.Sc. classes;
-and the Preliminary, like the London Matriculation, belongs to school
-work, and has no proper place in a college curriculum at all. Owens
-still follows the old plan, now almost everywhere discarded, of offering
-special certificates to women on easier terms; but for these there is
-little demand.
-
-Since University College, Liverpool was not incorporated till 1881,
-_i.e._ after the constitution of the University, it was natural that it
-should follow its lead in the recognition of women, but this was not yet
-full and ungrudging. The charter says: ‘female students may be admitted
-to attend any of the courses of instruction established in the college,
-subject to such restrictions and regulations as statutes of the College
-may from time to time prescribe.’ At present the regulations stand thus:
-‘Female students may be admitted to the classes of the College, except
-those of the Medical School, under regulations to be framed by the
-Senate and approved by the Council.’ In theory, therefore, University is
-a men’s college that admits women. In fact, with the exception of the
-medical classes, the two are pretty much on an equality. Men and women
-are admitted on the same terms to the day and evening classes;
-throughout the regulations the words ‘his or her’ are used. Rules apply
-to both sexes alike. Hitherto the college has been of use chiefly to
-Liverpool residents, and for such it was doubtless intended, but it is
-just about to extend the sphere of its usefulness by opening a Hall of
-Residence for Women. The fees for residence are to be £40 to £55 per
-annum. College tuition fees are about £20 to £25. The total expenses
-would therefore be a little less than at Newnham. Liverpool can hardly
-offer the attractions of Cambridge, but the hall should prove useful for
-girls in the North who do not wish to go too far from home, or to whom
-the right to use the degree letters is of some special value. And since
-Cambridge and Oxford can by no means attempt to accommodate the whole of
-the ever-increasing contingent of women students, it is well that there
-should be many and varied opportunities of study offered them elsewhere.
-
-At the Yorkshire College, Leeds, all the classes are open to women as to
-men, and all have been attended by them except the purely professional
-ones and the medical school. This college chiefly supplies local needs,
-as far, at any rate, as girls are concerned; for its specialities, such
-as coal-mining, dyeing, leather, and textile industries, etc. naturally
-do not appeal to women. It is to a great extent a technological college,
-receiving assistance from the Clothworkers’, Skinners’, and other city
-companies. But it has also an Arts department, where students can be
-prepared for Victoria or London examinations, and this is of great use
-to boys and girls who pass on from their respective schools.
-
-The last of the English Universities to admit women was Durham. As
-compared with Oxford and Cambridge, it is a recent foundation, since it
-received its charter in 1837. Since one of its most important faculties
-is Divinity, it seemed a less suitable field than others for feminine
-study, but a change was effected by the foundation, in 1871, of the
-Newcastle College of Science, in connection with Durham, which admitted
-students of both sexes to scientific and medical classes. It then became
-important to win the University hall-mark for the women, and after a
-while Durham was induced to apply for the necessary powers. In 1895 it
-received a supplementary charter, giving power to confer degrees on
-women in all faculties except divinity. With this exception, women are
-admitted as members of the University on the same terms as men. All
-lectures are open to them. Male students reside for the most part in
-college as at Oxford and Cambridge; the women studying at Durham are
-therefore at present unattached members. This state of things will be
-remedied as soon as a regular women’s college is opened at Durham;
-special scholarships for women are already offered, to attract larger
-numbers. At Newcastle, which at present receives the majority of the
-women students, a hostel has been opened for them. The number of lady
-graduates is as yet of necessity small.
-
-It is significant of the steady advance of public opinion on the subject
-of women’s education, that the youngest of all our universities is the
-one to do them fullest justice. It is the proud boast of the University
-of Wales that its charter contains the following clause: ‘Women shall be
-eligible equally with men for admittance to any degree, which the
-University is, by this our Charter, authorised to confer. Every office
-hereby created in the University, and the membership of every authority
-hereby constituted, shall be open to women equally with men.’
-
-The University of Wales is a federation of three constituent colleges,
-all much older than the University itself, and they in their turn
-represent aspirations which the fable-loving Cymry trace back to hoary
-days of antiquity. Caerleon-on-Usk, they tell us, was the precursor of
-the present _Prifysgol Cymru_; and when in the ninth century Alfred the
-Great determined to found the comparatively modern University of Oxford,
-it was to Wales he sent for professors. When, in 1893, the royal seal
-was set to the charter of the Welsh University, it symbolised the
-revival of ancient and departed glories.
-
-However little faith we may attach to some of these tales, one thing is
-certain. The aspirations which expressed themselves in the foundation of
-Aberystwyth College had dwelt among the people for many generations. At
-last, in the early fifties, it was resolved to found a University
-College for Wales, but the problem whence to obtain the funds was not
-easy to solve. Appeal was made for voluntary contributions, and they
-came, some large, some small, all giving according to their means. Still
-it was not till twenty years after the first suggestion that the college
-came into being. In 1872, when Aberystwyth was opened, Girton had
-already made its first start at Hitchin, and the house of residence,
-that was to develop into Newnham, had been opened at Cambridge; but
-these beginnings were too small to attract general attention, and the
-new college became, as a matter of course, an institution for male
-students only. There was nothing to forbid the admission of women, it
-was simply a thing no one had contemplated; and when, at last, in 1883,
-a few women students did present themselves, no one thought of shutting
-the door on them. When the college charter was conferred in 1889, it
-simply recognised the fact of their presence by the clause: ‘Female
-students shall be admitted to all the benefits and emoluments of the
-College, and women shall be eligible to sit on the Governing body, on
-the Council, and on the Senate.’
-
-Prosperity did not come all at once to Aberystwyth. It had at first to
-struggle against two great evils: lack of funds, and the insufficient
-preliminary training of its students. Appeal was made for Government
-help in both directions, and the result of frequent representations was
-the appointment, by the Lord President of the Council, of a departmental
-committee, to inquire into the whole state of Welsh education. In 1881
-this committee reported that a case had been made out for Government aid
-to both secondary and higher education in Wales, and recommended the
-establishment of two colleges, one in North and one in South Wales, and
-the eventual foundation of a Welsh University. A grant of £2500,
-afterwards increased to £4000, was at once made to Aberystwyth; in 1883
-the South Wales College was founded at Cardiff, and in the following
-year the Northern College was begun at Bangor, each receiving an annual
-grant of £4000. Both, from the first, opened their doors to women.
-
-For the first ten years the colleges directed their courses of study
-towards the degrees of the University of London. Their students did
-well, but the desire for their own University and their own degrees
-never faded from the minds of Welshmen. A few eager spirits met again
-and again in conference, then followed meetings of educationalists all
-over the principality, and in 1891 the main lines of a university were
-laid down by public conference, details were discussed by a
-representative committee, referred back to the conference, then to the
-colleges, and the sixteen Welsh county councils; lastly, the press and
-the general public were called upon for an opinion, and then the scheme
-was laid before the President of the Council. If ever there was a
-national University, the Welsh may claim to have established one. In
-November 1893 the royal seal was affixed to the charter, and in June
-1895 the University held its first Matriculation Examination.
-
-The degree course of the University of Wales is a complicated one, and
-is by no means planned so that he who runs may read. It has a twofold,
-or rather a threefold aim. The University not only takes cognisance of
-residence, but also lays down very careful directions as to the manner
-in which students shall obtain their knowledge. Not only does it demand
-a three years’ course in a constituent college of the University, but it
-also prescribes the nature of the courses, and the number of lectures to
-be attended. After Matriculation, which must be passed in five subjects,
-three compulsory, and two optional, and may be taken in one year or in
-two, the regulations require each student to pursue not less than ten
-courses, of which one must be in elementary Logic, and one, at least, a
-course of Latin or Greek. Apart from the Logic, the nine courses must be
-chosen in not less than three, or more than six departments. The
-possible courses are designated according to their degree of difficulty,
-as intermediate, ordinary, and special; four, at least, must be of
-higher grade than intermediate. In order to distribute them evenly over
-the whole term of residence, no candidate may take more than four in any
-one year, or more than seven in the first two years. A course is held to
-include not less than eighty lectures, and the corresponding
-examination; and since, in most subjects, the intermediate course must
-be pursued before the higher ones are attempted, every student has to
-attend some very elementary lectures before proceeding to anything at
-all like university work. As sixteen is the college age of admission,
-this arrangement is probably intentional; the colleges are meant to
-continue school work for one year at least, and gradually lead the
-student on to more arduous labours.
-
-Since the colleges are independent institutions, they have a good deal
-of freedom in the organisation of their work, and may, if they please,
-submit new schemes for the consideration of the Senate, the other two
-colleges, and the University Court. Without the sanction of all these
-they cannot attempt any innovation. The superior stress laid on the
-actual instruction rather than on the ensuing examination is emphasised
-by appointing the three professors of each subject as examiners, with
-the help of one outside person, who must be some one of distinguished
-attainments and authority.
-
-Thus the University of Wales proceeds on lines which, though new to us,
-bear considerable resemblance to the plan of many American colleges,
-where the number of hours to be spent weekly in the lecture-room counts
-as part qualification for the degree, and the examinations are spread
-out over the whole term of residence, and not concentrated into one or
-two supreme efforts. Of course this greatly relieves the strain, and it
-is too soon to say whether the degree will at all lose in prestige from
-the numerous efforts made to clear the student’s path of thorns. It is
-probably the best system for Wales, where the Intermediate schools only
-profess to keep their pupils till seventeen, and there is nothing to
-prevent able students from competing for scholarships, which shall
-enable them to continue at Oxford or Cambridge the studies begun in one
-of their own colleges. Eventually it is probable that facilities will be
-offered for doing advanced work without forsaking their own country.
-
-Even before the establishment of the University, the colleges attracted
-many women students from England as well as Wales. All three are
-pleasantly situated in healthy spots, and the cheapness of both teaching
-and living helped to attract many girls. It thus soon became necessary
-to consider the question of a mixed university, which had no residential
-colleges to simplify the problem. Soon it became clear that, where young
-people of both sexes were very frequently thrown together, it was
-desirable in the interests of all concerned to exercise some sort of
-control. A hall of residence for the women seemed the best way out of
-the dilemma, and it had the advantage of drawing them away from lonely
-and often uncomfortable lodgings, and giving them some of that feeling
-of corporate life which is valued so highly at the older universities.
-Still it is noteworthy that, to make the plan a success, residence has
-had, under certain conditions, to be made compulsory. The first attempt
-at Aberystwyth was a failure, but in 1887 another house was taken, and
-compulsory residence required. This arrangement seemed to attract
-students; in the following session their numbers increased, and
-continued to average about forty, till in 1891 it was resolved to build
-a large new hall. The numbers then again went up, and have already
-reached 175. Alexandra Hall was opened with much state by the Princess
-of Wales in June 1897. It can accommodate 200, a number which must soon
-be reached.
-
-Neither Bangor nor Cardiff can boast such numbers, but in both the
-hostels are doing well. At Bangor, after a few years’ experiment, it was
-decided to make residence compulsory for all girls under twenty-one. The
-hall and college were brought into close connection by the appointment
-of a lady, who was also an officer of the college, to act as
-superintendent of all the women students. Permission is given to women
-to reside in any house which, in the judgment of the Principal and
-Lady-superintendent, provides hostel conditions of supervision. At
-Aberdare Hall, Cardiff, there is compulsory residence for women who do
-not live in their own homes. At all three halls the fees are very low,
-forty guineas being the usual annual payment for board and residence,
-and £10 for the composition tuition charge. At Bangor and Cardiff there
-are also a few cubicles, for which the charge is only thirty guineas.
-This plan hardly appears to answer, nor does it seem desirable to let
-the standard of comfort fall below a certain minimum. There is a talk of
-abandoning it.
-
-In estimating the numbers at these colleges, we must remember that they
-do not represent only students in Arts and Science. All three have
-established day training-departments, and to these students, too, the
-halls are open, as well as to those who attend the Cardiff Cookery
-School. In attempting to put the training for domestic economy and
-elementary school teaching on the same footing as university work, Wales
-is acting in accordance with its democratic traditions, and trying also
-to induce a higher class of students to take up the elementary teaching.
-The experiment is certainly worth making, and it will be interesting to
-watch its success. English high school girls who wish to take up
-elementary teaching might here combine their training and their work for
-the Welsh degree in a three years’ course.
-
-With the help of the wardens of halls and the ladies’ committees, the
-colleges are able to face the complications of joint clubs and societies
-for both sexes. All these involve some special regulations, in regard to
-the composition of committees, the return from evening meetings, etc.
-but the difficulties have not proved insuperable. It would hardly be
-going too far to say that the women’s halls of residence have saved the
-situation in Wales, and made this most complete example of co-education
-possible. It is not surprising that they are being adopted elsewhere.
-The advocates of educational equality for the sexes, even where the
-instruction is given to both together, have assuredly no desire to
-complicate or revolutionise social relations, nor yet to confer full
-liberty on those who are hardly emerged from the schoolgirl stage. For
-both sexes the residential arrangement seems on many grounds desirable,
-and while congratulating the women on their pleasant halls of residence,
-we can but hope that the male students may not be left out in the cold
-much longer, without the chance of learning for themselves the true
-meaning of collegiate life.
-
-The opportunities for advanced study open to women have indeed increased
-and multiplied at a rapid rate during the last few years. Beyond the
-northern boundary we find all the Scottish Universities have admitted
-them freely to membership, and if we cross St. George’s Channel, the
-Royal University of Ireland—like London, only an examining body—takes no
-note of sex, and even Trinity College, Dublin, is making some tentative
-essays in the teaching and examining of women. This represents what has
-been done in our own islands, but the same movement has been going on
-simultaneously all over the world. Thanks to Mr. M. E. Sadler,[15] we
-are now in a position to compare the position of women at a hundred and
-thirty-nine different Universities. Questions were sent to the
-Universities of Great Britain and Ireland, the continent of Europe, the
-United States of America, Canada, India, and Australia. ‘It appears,’
-says Mr. Sadler, ‘that at a hundred of these, the distinctions between
-men and women students are, if any, comparatively unimportant; at seven
-Universities women students are admitted, by courtesy or special
-permission, to some lectures and examinations; at twenty-one others
-women are, by like favour, admitted to some of the lectures; and at
-eleven Universities they are not admitted at all.’ Of the exceptions
-five are in Germany, three in Russia, one in Ireland, one in Belgium,
-one in the United States. France and Italy are specially remarkable for
-their generous recognition of women, and Germany, long obdurate, is
-making constant fresh concessions; but intending students should study
-the special conditions of the one they wish to attend, since many of the
-regulations are most complicated.[16]
-
-This general advance all over the civilised world is the chief gain this
-half century has brought to women’s education. Though each country has
-proceeded on its own lines the movement has unconsciously been an
-international one. That gives it a strength which will make it
-permanent.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII
- BOARDING AND PRIVATE SCHOOLS
-
-
-Once more our chronicle takes us back to 1867. A new era was then
-inaugurated, that of girls’ day schools. Not that these were anything
-new; small cheap day-schools for girls abounded, but the majority of
-them were bad. With fees ranging from £3 to £10 a year, and pupils of
-every variety of age, a little simple arithmetic will prove that the
-mistress had not sufficient funds at her disposal to pay for suitable
-premises and adequate teaching, to say nothing of winning a modest
-competence for herself. From all parts of the country came condemnation
-of these small, cheap schools. The opinions about boarding-schools were
-by no means so unanimous. They were censured for the excessive attention
-given to accomplishments, the insufficient education of the teachers,
-and their neglect of physical training; but these were faults common to
-nearly all the schools of that day, and not characteristic of
-boarding-schools as such. A careful perusal of the Commissioners’ report
-leads to a far more favourable impression of boarding than day-schools,
-due, probably, to their being less hampered for funds. But the general
-public is influenced by impressions rather than facts; and certainly an
-impression did gain ground that a day-school was in itself a good and a
-boarding-school an evil.
-
-Unquestionably the reformers were right in first turning their attention
-to the former. Large schools of this kind were easier to organise, and
-really made for efficiency and economy, that much desired combination,
-which in this case is not, as so often, a mere contradiction in terms.
-The establishment of high and endowed schools has brought a good
-education within reach of thousands of girls who could by no other means
-have obtained it. The extinction of the small, cheap boarding-school
-which for the past century had been struggling to give the lower middle
-classes a poorer imitation of the poor education given elsewhere to
-their social ‘superiors,’ is a thing no one can seriously deplore.
-Painless extinction is, unhappily, impossible. The suffering which such
-changes bring in their train is to be deplored, but the article itself
-may be relegated to the class of those that ‘never will be missed.’
-
-The new day-schools met a real want, and success came to them at once.
-It was natural they should attract the first relays of the ‘graduates’
-that the women’s colleges were beginning to send out. Thus they were the
-first to introduce improved teaching, and for a while they were supposed
-to have a monopoly of it. In the prevailing dearth of good mistresses
-they were able to get first choice; now, after the lapse of thirty
-years, the supply exceeds the demand, and a good teacher is attainable
-by any school of any grade that can satisfy the very moderate demands of
-university women.
-
-The high schools started with a very definite principle—the combination
-of school teaching with home influence—doubtless the ideal for all
-girls, supposing that each side duly fulfils its share of the
-obligation. But now, in 1898, it is curious to note how far the high
-school has travelled in twenty-five years. The original scheme of
-morning-school, from nine to one, and afternoon preparation for a few
-girls who had no quiet room at home, still prevails in theory, but
-_quantum mutatus ab illo_ can best be realised by tracing a day’s
-routine in school. First come the morning lessons, usually five in
-number, with the short break for play or drill, then the school dinner,
-to which over fifty girls sometimes sit down; again a short interval
-before the afternoon classes, music lessons and preparation, which
-usually go on till four, though girls who have no special duties at the
-time may be found at play in the playground. Still later, if it be
-summer, there may be an adjournment to the school field, often at a
-considerable distance. Not till darkness sets in can it be said that the
-day’s school life is over; and the elder girls still have some lessons
-to prepare before bed-time. A healthful, well-filled happy day is behind
-them, but where does the home influence come in? The girls might as well
-be weekly boarders for all the share they have in the real life of home.
-Saturday may see a cricket practice or a work party, or a school
-committee, or a sketching expedition, or a match with some distant
-school. Sunday alone belongs to the home. The numerous clubs, charities,
-old girls’ meetings, etc. fill up all the time the girls can spare from
-their lessons. Girls who do not live quite near frequently become
-day-boarders, though the word is not used, and take dinner, and
-sometimes even tea, at school. In some few cases the school even
-undertakes to supply medical supervision and the general direction of
-the pupil’s health, thus relieving parents of one more responsibility.
-In fact the day-school is well on the road to become a boarding-school,
-and the establishment of boarding-houses more or less loosely connected
-with it is a further step in the same direction.
-
-How far these schools have travelled from their original intentions
-becomes evident if we refer back to a controversy on school hours that
-took place in 1880 in consequence of some strictures passed by Mrs.
-Garrett Anderson on the arrangements in the High Schools. She considered
-the strain of the four hours’ morning excessive, and proposed reducing
-it, introducing afternoon school and a considerable interval for outdoor
-games between the two. This was met with general opposition by
-headmistresses. Day-schools, it was said, could not be expected to
-provide dinner, it was most undesirable for girls to return from school
-as late as four or five on cold winter afternoons, teachers could not be
-expected to undertake so much afternoon work, while the strongest
-opposition of all was made to the games. Miss Buss pointed out that the
-mixture of classes which was unobjectionable as long as girls only met
-at lessons where talking was forbidden, or in the short intervals which
-were largely devoted to lunch and drill, might cause serious
-difficulties if the whole day were spent in school. She also thought the
-games would be a difficulty; only rough girls would take part in them,
-and the rest simply lounge about.
-
-How wrong these predictions have proved we all know. Girls’ athletics
-have made startling progress during the last ten years; cricket and
-hockey, seemingly rough games, have found favour with the most feminine
-of girls; the school dinner is a regular institution, and is accompanied
-by pleasant chat about practices, matches, election of club officers,
-etc. A new feature, never contemplated by the promoters, has entered
-these day-schools; and, oddly enough, is doing more than anything else
-to bring back to favour the once despised boarding-school.
-
-Those that now originated were of a new kind, at least for girls;
-schools where the boarding-houses form part of the regular organisation,
-and the whole life and development of the girls is under the charge of
-the mistresses. Something of the sort had already been done at
-Cheltenham, and doubtless the College owed much of its success to its
-boarding-house system. Although a general English education, which is
-wanted by all alike, can be supplied in any town capable of supporting a
-large day-school, the very special teaching wanted by a few girls
-working for scholarships or specially advanced examinations causes a
-severe strain on the resources of a moderate-sized school, is impossible
-for financial reasons in a small one, and quite inaccessible to those
-girls with country homes from whom a considerable proportion of college
-students is drawn. Hence there arose a new type of school.
-
-The first of this kind originated in Scotland, at St. Andrews. It was
-founded in 1877 by a local company with a view to educating their own
-daughters; but arrangements were at once made for taking boarders, and
-these were placed under the immediate charge of the head-mistress. As
-the numbers increased, other houses were taken and placed under charge
-of senior mistresses; and as more and more girls were attracted from a
-distance, the boarding element began to predominate. With Miss Lumsden,
-one of the ‘Girton pioneers,’ as first head-mistress, and Miss Dove,
-another student of Hitchin days, as her successor, the school very
-quickly settled down into lines very closely resembling those of a boys’
-public school. The boarding-houses became an integral part of the
-institution, the school-house being under the charge of the
-head-mistress, and the others under the senior assistants. In this way
-the staff of the school was strengthened by the encouragement thus
-offered to women of ability to remain in the school instead of seeking
-their promotion elsewhere. The boarding-houses are also valuable in
-ensuring regular attendance and proper home preparation, since the
-day-girls, being in a minority, cannot introduce those lax ideas of
-attendance which are in some places unfortunately the result of the much
-vaunted home influence.
-
-The numbers in the school are limited to 200. The admission age is
-thirteen or fourteen, no girl can be admitted who has turned seventeen.
-All must pass an entrance examination, graduated according to age, but
-always including a certain amount of Arithmetic, English, Latin and
-French. A school of 200 girls, all between thirteen and nineteen, and
-all with a sufficient preparatory training, can genuinely concentrate
-its efforts on higher teaching. The classes become easier to group, and
-with a large staff which allows of careful subdividing, all the ordinary
-hindrances to progress are removed, and a school is enabled to work
-under the best possible conditions. It can, if it is desired, make a
-speciality of certain branches of study. At St. Andrews classics take an
-important place; of the present staff five have passed the Classical
-Tripos. Among the honours won by old pupils are first classes in
-Classical Moderations and Final Classical Schools at Oxford, and in the
-Classical Tripos at Cambridge. The school distinctly aims at a literary
-curriculum, with the higher certificate of the Joint Board to fix the
-standard, and Oxford or Cambridge as the goal for those girls whose
-education is to be continued.
-
-St. Leonard’s School, as it has been called since it acquired the old
-buildings and beautiful grounds of the ancient St. Leonard’s College, is
-organised with a school-house and seven boarding-houses, each under the
-charge of a mistress. With all the girls under the control of the
-head-mistress it is possible to carry out the prefect system, and, by
-giving a good deal of responsibility to the Sixth Form, remove that
-element of excessive supervision which was often a harmful element in
-the old-fashioned boarding-school. Each house constitutes a small
-community, with its separate dining-room and study, where each of the
-elder girls has a small writing-table and bookshelf. Some rules prevail
-in all, _e.g._ that no work shall be done before breakfast or after 8.30
-P.M. School hours are from 9 to 12.30 every day, with special subjects
-in the afternoon. After dinner about one and a half hours are given to
-games under charge of a special mistress. There is a playground of
-sixteen acres, which comprises cricket-field, golf-course, lawn and
-gravel tennis-courts, large hockey-courts and fives-courts, etc. The St.
-Leonard’s girls are renowned for their skill in games.
-
-With a school thus organised the life of the girls is made easier. There
-is no conflict of aims; in term-time the school claims its due, in
-holidays the home. Whether this is theoretically the best plan is an
-academic rather than a practical question, but it is undoubtedly
-beneficial to the studies and health of the girls. A mistress who is
-intimately acquainted with the work of every Form can check overwork
-more effectually than the most anxious mother, who is incapable of
-judging from that school point of view which looms so large in the young
-girl’s mind. Loyalty and public spirit, developed by this joint life of
-small communities within a large one, are important factors in forming
-character, and the general atmosphere of alternate work and play without
-the excessive excitement of home gaieties and the distraction of
-domestic interests unquestionably facilitates study. Whether the gains
-to character really outweigh the advantages of the family life depends
-so entirely on the arrangements and atmosphere of each particular home,
-that it is impossible to give any general opinion. At any rate results
-seem to show that this class of school is one of the chief needs for
-girls at the present time. A good deal of attention had been drawn to
-St. Leonard’s School in England, and in spite of the distance many girls
-were in the habit of journeying northwards three times a year for the
-sake of sharing in its advantages. At last a number of educationalists
-decided to establish a school of this kind in England, and induced Miss
-Dove, who had now placed the Northern school on a thoroughly
-satisfactory basis, to organise a similar one in the South. The
-Education Company, Limited, was formed, with a council of which the
-Master of Trinity became president. It was fortunate enough to secure
-for its first school the beautiful house and grounds of Wycombe Abbey.
-Situated in lovely country, with thirty-six acres of its own, and the
-rest of the park stretched all about it, the old trees, the historic
-memories and dignified surroundings help to shed over the school some of
-that feeling of tradition and veneration for the past, which all girls’
-institutions must of themselves lack for some time to come.
-
-The school resembles St. Leonard’s in its organisation, with some slight
-differences. There are no day pupils and, as the Abbey is itself capable
-of accommodating a hundred girls, it is divided for school purposes into
-four divisions, technically known as ‘houses.’ Each house is in the
-special charge of its tutor, and has its own sitting-room and
-dormitories, and its table in the dining-room. The house-colour is
-carried out in the cubicles; cretonnes, bed-spreads, tiles, etc. being
-red, blue, green, or yellow, according to the special house in which the
-dormitory is situated. All this prettiness serves as an attractive
-background for hard work and healthy play. It is pleasant to find the
-modern school catering for all the sides of a girl’s nature.
-
-It very soon became necessary to build, and with the help of the new
-houses two hundred can now be accommodated. Beyond this it is not
-proposed to go; but should the system prove as popular in England as in
-Scotland, it is probable that the Education Company might open more
-schools. The conditions of admission, entrance examination, etc. are the
-same as at St. Andrews. Physical exercise plays an important part, and
-about two hours every day are given up to games or country walks, which
-groups of girls are allowed to take together. Each term has its own
-special game; lacrosse is the favourite in the autumn, hockey in winter,
-and cricket in summer. The heavy work of the day is thus broken up into
-two parts, and Wycombe, unlike the majority of girls’ schools, does not
-rigidly divide these into morning classes, afternoon preparation.
-Lessons and study hours alternate during the day. This is an attempt to
-relieve the strain of the long morning, against which many voices are
-again being raised. Physical and manual training come in for a share of
-attention, two hours a day in the upper, and three in the lower school.
-Under these headings come drawing and painting, part-singing,
-practising, dancing, gymnastics, carpentry, gardening, and needlework.
-All these are taught by expert teachers, and are treated as an integral
-part of the general education. In the upper forms six hours a day are
-given to actual study, in the lower only five. As this includes
-preparation, and the day is so fully occupied that there is not much
-chance of stealing odd half hours for work, it will be interesting to
-see whether this short allowance, with the help of careful arrangement
-and healthful surroundings, will prove sufficient to prepare girls
-adequately for college. It is too soon to ask for results, but if this
-plan succeeds, a problem which engages much attention at present will
-have been greatly helped towards solution.
-
-Another school that is doing useful work, as what our American cousins
-would call an ‘experiment station,’ is the one at Brighton now known as
-Roedean. It was founded in 1885, by the Misses Lawrence, with three
-distinct aims: (1) to give a due importance to physical education and
-outdoor games in every girl’s life; (2) to regulate the school
-discipline in such a way as to develop trustworthiness and a sense of
-responsibility in the pupils; (3) to give girls a sound and careful
-intellectual training. The order in which these are stated indicates the
-growing importance attached to physical training and public spirit, and
-explains the lines on which what might be called the reformed
-boarding-school is proceeding.
-
-This Brighton school is just about to take a fresh departure. It has
-raised money by shares for a new building on a magnificent site between
-Brighton and Rottingdean. The new premises consist of a convenient
-school-house and four separate boarding-houses connected by covered
-passages with the central building. Something of college methods is to
-be brought into school by giving each girl a separate bedroom, while the
-eight seniors in each house are to have a study as well. Here they may
-give their Saturday tea-parties, entertain their friends, and learn to
-take the responsibility of their own little domain. The special
-characteristics of the school are the large amount of responsibility
-given to the girls and their success in games, of which they are not a
-little proud. The curriculum resembles that of a high school, with more
-scope for individual tuition, and most of the teachers are graduates.
-Wimbledon House School, as it was called before the change in site
-necessitated a change in name, was one of the pioneers in bringing about
-the newer view of girls’ education. These views are being widely
-adopted. The increased freedom, the more active life, the great stress
-laid on the _corpus sanum_ as one means of developing the _mens sana_,
-are all part of the new order of things, and a recognition that the
-wider life led by the women of to-day needs its own special preparation.
-
-A new school of a similar kind has been started at Aldeburgh, and is
-being carried on in temporary premises at Southwold on the East Coast.
-It is proposed to acquire a site here or in some other part of Suffolk,
-and raise money for building by means of a company. The plan is similar
-to the Brighton one: a school-house and boarding-houses under the charge
-of teachers, with plenty of freedom and individual responsibility for
-the girls. The daily hour and a half of outdoor exercise, the adoption
-of hand and eye training in the regular curriculum, and the medical
-inspection of the girls by a lady doctor, are among the more modern
-methods that distinguish it.
-
-In their fundamental aims there is a close resemblance between these
-schools. They represent a fresh break with the past. The false ideal of
-showy accomplishment had already given way to the worthier aim of
-thoroughness and a more serious mental development. With the
-intellectual aims came a change too in the moral. The larger life of the
-day school of itself promoted more freedom and a greater sense of
-responsibility in the girls, but their moral training was divided
-between the school and the home, and sometimes suffered from a lack of
-co-operation between the two. As Mrs. Sidgwick pointed out, when laying
-the foundation stone of the Roedean buildings:—‘Boarding-schools have a
-wider function, a more responsible task than day-schools. They have to
-care for pupils in play-hours as well as work-hours; they have, far more
-than day-schools, to superintend their development in matters moral and
-physical as well as intellectual.’ It is therefore largely in
-boarding-schools that the newest ideas can be worked out. The worst
-feature of the old boarding-school was the excessive supervision, and
-the deceit and silliness it engendered. _Punch’s_ immortal direction,
-‘Go and see what Baby’s doing, and tell her not to,’ might stand as the
-rule of conduct in many a seminary for young ladies. The atmosphere of
-suspicion engendered the very faults it was intended to obviate. The
-giggling boarding-school miss was a type it was not desirable to
-perpetuate. What was wanted was something that should prepare girls for
-life and its responsibilities, as boys were prepared at public schools.
-This term ‘a public school’ is curiously difficult to define, though we
-all know pretty well the meaning attached to it in England. It has
-perhaps been best described as ‘one where the government is administered
-in a greater or less degree by the pupils themselves.’ The true ‘public
-spirit’ could only develop as the schools became centres of something
-besides study. With the increase in their sphere of action the high
-schools have fostered its growth; to bring it to its full perfection
-must be the task of the modern boarding-school.
-
-Another, and an essentially practical advantage of boarding-schools, is
-the facilities they offer for differentiation. We are coming to realise
-that all schools cannot teach all things, unless indeed like Cheltenham,
-they are really a number of different schools under one head. While many
-new subjects have been drawn within the sphere of a girl’s curriculum,
-the old still keep their place. The only escape from smatter and
-overstrain lies in a wise selection, and a girl’s general education may
-gain almost as much by the exclusion of some subjects as by the
-inclusion of others. With the constant increase of science schools,
-technical institutes, special endowments for science, etc., selection
-and differentiation are rapidly increasing in one direction, and it
-becomes essential to provide elsewhere against the complete neglect of
-the literary side. This the boarding-school may do without inflicting
-any injustice, since it does not profess to supply all the local needs.
-Up to the age of fourteen there can be no thought of specialising; by
-that time most parents have some general idea about their daughter’s
-probable future and special inclinations. If it is a question of a
-definite career, the choice becomes easier, because confined within
-narrower limits.
-
-Yet after all, when we have reviewed in our minds all the careers open
-to women, and the great social changes due to their entering the lists
-with trained instead of unskilled labour, the fact still remains that,
-at any rate in the upper and upper-middle classes, the majority of women
-do not earn their own living. As Hannah More reminded us long ago, their
-profession is to be that of ‘wives, mothers, and mistresses of
-households,’ and to this we must now add the duties of a philanthropic
-and public character that social position brings with it. What is
-commonly called ‘a life of leisure’ may be an exceedingly busy life, and
-nowhere do the advantages of mental training, habits of accuracy, and a
-disciplined will tell to more advantage than in promoting the happiness
-of others. Most of these girls must receive any education, beyond the
-early part which a private governess can undertake, in boarding-schools,
-if only because the leisured classes to which they belong seldom live
-near enough to towns to make use of day-schools. To quote a very able
-and experienced schoolmistress:—‘The demand for private schools and for
-the individual attention which girls require has been increased by the
-habits of modern life among the upper and upper-middle classes. From my
-own personal knowledge there are many parents who spend nearly the whole
-year away from home or in entertaining a “house party” when they are at
-home. There is really no place at home for the poor girls who have not
-“come out.” What the parents seek for them is a school that can supply
-the place of a home, where they can receive individual attention,
-cultivation, training, and be prepared for society.’ She might have
-added that, even when there is a place at home for them, they may gain
-considerably by spending part of two or three years away from it, amid
-the more studious atmosphere and the numerous interests characteristic
-of these modern boarding-schools.
-
-The reform in teaching unquestionably began in the public schools, but
-the best private schools have not been slow to bring themselves into
-line. Within the last few years several have been either founded or
-taken over by ladies who have studied at Oxford or Cambridge, or such as
-have occupied posts as heads or assistants in high schools, and have
-been drawn into the line of progress, while older institutions have held
-their own by the introduction of modern methods. Thus, while the old
-boarding-school was specially condemned for its stuffy rooms, inadequate
-dormitory accommodation, insufficient food and crocodile form of
-exercise, the new one, with a rather lower fee, devotes special care to
-buildings, bedrooms, diet, games, and gymnastics. Here are a few
-quotations from prospectuses:—‘There is a large playground at a short
-distance from the school, in which are five lawn-tennis courts and space
-for cricket, hockey, croquet, and other games.’ This school has a
-certificated trained nurse and a sanatorium specially fitted up for
-illness. The Principal was for many years assistant mistress at a large
-high school.
-
-‘There are gardens with tennis-lawn, a gymnasium, a fives-court, an
-isolation ward and a playing field at a short distance from the house.
-Arrangements are made for riding and cycling.’ The Principal is a
-distinguished graduate of one of the women’s colleges.
-
-‘The buildings have been certified by a sanitary officer, and are fitted
-with every modern convenience. Arrangements have been made for cricket,
-tennis, and other healthful games, which are greatly encouraged.’
-
-‘The house stands in its own grounds of fourteen acres, which include
-garden, shrubbery, tennis-courts, and recreation field.’
-
-These are samples taken at random.
-
-Closely connected with regard for healthful conditions is the endeavour
-to avoid overstrain, and this has led to a not unnatural reaction
-against the excessive burden of outside examination. We find such
-sentences as ‘particular care is taken to prevent over-pressure.’ ‘For
-the younger or weaker of the party we provide extra half hours of rest
-or recreation in the garden.’ ‘There is no cramming for examinations,
-and the object set before each girl is to do her daily work as well as
-she possibly can from an honourable sense of duty,’ etc. It is often
-stated that pupils can be prepared for university or other examinations
-if desired, but although some few private schools of this type
-distinctly aim at the certificate of the Joint Board, the majority work
-on more general lines, while ensuring a high standard of efficiency by
-submitting the school annually to inspection by university examiners.
-The fees in schools of this grade vary from about £90 to £135 per annum,
-with so-called ‘extras.’ These are reduced in the more modern
-institutions to such subjects as piano, violin, and dancing, which
-require individual instruction, while the more old-fashioned include
-languages, even French, under this heading. But both terms and curricula
-in private schools are adapted to special cases, and it is impossible to
-generalise on them. For girls, as for boys, the statement made by the
-Secondary Commission is probably correct, that ‘the large private
-schools, usually with boarders, are the private schools which do most
-for secondary education. They are often conducted on lines similar to
-those of public schools; but they are less bound by heredity, and the
-larger scope for experiment which they afford has, there is reason to
-believe, contributed to noteworthy improvements of methods.’
-
-Probably this class of school is in greater demand than ever before; but
-though there are not a few who can enjoy its benefits, it must always be
-a luxury for the rich, while there has been no corresponding improvement
-in the cheaper type of boarding-school. To provide board, lodging, and
-tuition, at fees ranging from £30 to £50, is a difficult problem, and
-can hardly be solved without the infliction of some suffering or
-injustice. Yet even these fees are beyond the reach of many whose homes
-are far away from towns. There is urgent need for some scheme of
-boarding-houses (not self-supporting) in connection with the cheaper
-endowed schools, and the application of some public money to the
-establishment of a few large boarding-schools in different parts of the
-country. Private effort cannot meet these cases.
-
-Private day-schools involve a much smaller risk, and in these large
-numbers of well-educated women are now at work. In a place too small to
-support a high school, schools of this kind often supply all needs; but,
-oddly enough, they seem to flourish best where they exist side by side
-with good public schools. Bedford is an instance of a town well supplied
-with both. Sometimes the head-mistress takes a few boarders, and is thus
-enabled to provide better premises. The fees range from about £12 to £30
-per annum, and the curriculum is not unlike that of a high school,
-though the more expensive subjects, such as certain branches of science,
-are often omitted. The Junior and Senior Local Examinations and those of
-the College of Preceptors are a good deal used by these schools, and
-help to keep up a standard, where a regular external examination is not
-practicable. Small, cheap day-schools still abound, though happily in
-nothing like the old numbers. Even these have undergone some
-improvement, though rumour maintains that _Mangnall’s Questions_ and
-_Child’s Guide_ may still be found here, if we only dig deep enough. The
-lowest class of private school is attended by children who ought to be
-in the public elementary schools. The extinction of these, which is
-rapidly proceeding, can only be hailed with general satisfaction.
-
-Much has been said of late about the necessity of finding a place in any
-general system of education for private schools, but surely their proper
-function is so clearly defined that there is no fear of a day dawning
-when they are no longer needed. A further increase in cheap public
-day-schools may lessen the numbers, and it is hardly to be expected that
-in ten years’ time the present conditions, under which 70 per cent. of
-our girls who are receiving secondary education are in private schools,
-shall still prevail. The true function of the private school is to offer
-an educational luxury to those who can pay for it, and on these lines,
-without coming into competition with public school work, it is likely to
-develop. The more public schools are established in a district, the
-greater becomes the field for first-grade private schools. This is well
-illustrated by the case of the United States, where the universal
-diffusion of the public schools seems to favour the growth of private
-ones. They can charge high fees, because the public schools are always
-available for those who cannot afford these. They can try experiments
-and adopt new methods, because they are not subject to the rigid
-direction and supervision to which public schools are liable. A great
-deal of the preparation for college falls to them, and they enjoy a very
-different reputation and position from the Prussian private schools,
-which are obliged to adopt the same ‘code’ as the public. Cheap schools,
-to be efficient, must receive help with their finances; such help can
-hardly be given to private schools while they retain the freedom which
-is one source of their strength. It is probable, therefore, that they
-will more and more become schools for the well-to-do classes only. There
-must be some suffering involved in the changes which the near future is
-likely to bring, even if local educational authorities do all in their
-power to minimise this, and eventually the lower class of private school
-will probably go to the wall. But not till the Anglo-Saxon nature has
-undergone a complete transformation will there cease to be a place in
-England for private enterprise; and private schools, even though they
-may be deemed a luxury, will still rank among us as a necessity.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX
- THE TECHNICAL INSTRUCTION ACTS
-
-
-On June 24, 1890, a curious scene took place in the House of Commons.
-The Customs and Excise Bill had been dragging its weary way in
-committee, and making very small progress. The question under debate was
-the disposal of a residue of £350,000, available from the new duty on
-beer and spirits. This Mr. Goschen proposed to apply to compensating
-publicans whose licenses should be refused, but the Government did not
-care to press the point in face of opposition in the country and small
-majorities in the House. Mr. Goschen therefore proposed to shelve the
-matter till the next session, merely ‘ear-marking’ the money for the
-purpose indicated. Thereupon Mr. Healy got up on a legal point, and
-reminded the House that the Budget Bill, which had already become law,
-expressly stated that the duties in question were to be dealt with in a
-particular way, and that the proceeds were to be appropriated ‘as
-Parliament may hereafter direct by any Act passed in the present
-session.’ Under these circumstances, he asked, had they power to
-postpone that appropriation? The Speaker thought they had not, and his
-ruling prevailed. The result was the acceptance, on August 1, of Mr.
-Acland’s proposal to apply the money in England ‘for the purposes of
-agricultural, commercial, and technical instruction, as defined in
-Clause 8 of the Technical Instruction Act, 1889,’ and in Wales either
-for technical instruction or for purposes defined by the Welsh
-Intermediate Education Act.
-
-This sudden turn of affairs took the country by surprise. The county
-councils, to whom this money was assigned, were now expected to devote
-to educational purposes the money and energy which were to have gone to
-the extinction of licenses. From these events date the educational
-functions of the county councils. It was this ‘whisky-money’ which gave
-the impetus to technical education, a term which had been defined by the
-Act of 1889. Prolonged agitation throughout the country, due to the fear
-of foreign competition and the rumours of superior education given to
-the mechanics of other countries, had led to the appointment in 1884 of
-a Commission to consider the question, and to their report the Technical
-Instruction Act of 1889, and the amending Act of 1891, were due.
-
-Among the recommendations of the Commissioners were the following:—
-
-1. That steps be taken to accelerate the application of ancient
-endowments, under amended schemes, to secondary and technical
-instruction.
-
-2. Provision by the Charity Commissioners for establishing in suitable
-localities, schools or departments of schools, in which the study of
-natural science, drawing, mathematics, and modern languages, should take
-the place of Latin and Greek.
-
-3. Giving power to local authorities to establish, maintain, or
-contribute to the establishment of secondary and technical schools and
-colleges.
-
-Following these lines, the Act defined technical instruction as
-‘instruction in the principles of Science and Art, applicable to
-industries, and in the application of special branches of Science and
-Art to specific industries or employments.’ It was not to include
-teaching the practice of any trade or industry, but it might include any
-branch of instruction (including modern languages, and commercial and
-agricultural subjects), which were at any time sanctioned by the Science
-and Art department of South Kensington. The means of doing all this was
-a penny rate which local authorities were permitted to raise. Unaided
-this could not have done much, and very few places took advantage of
-this power, until the Local Taxation Act of the following year changed
-the whole aspect of affairs.
-
-The movement in favour of technical education was one that had been
-slowly gathering force. At first, as so often happens, the blame for the
-unsatisfactory state of things was laid at the door of the elementary
-school. It was pointed out that the education given there was not
-sufficiently practical; drawing was little taught, and that little
-badly, while science fared even worse. Modelling was almost unknown,
-manual instruction had scarcely been heard of, ‘the pen was the only
-industrial weapon that boys intended for handicraftsmen were taught to
-use,’ and, except needlework, domestic subjects for girls were terribly
-neglected. This was true enough, but it was absurd to suppose that a
-remedy could be found in the schooling given to children under twelve.
-Such benefit as might be derived from a change in their curriculum was
-quite inadequate for the end in view. The real need was for a longer
-school life, with technical training based on a proper foundation of
-general knowledge. Hence the National Association for the Promotion of
-Technical Education adopted into its programme: ‘the development,
-organisation, and maintenance of a system of secondary education
-throughout the country, with a view to placing the higher technical and
-commercial education in our schools and colleges on a better footing.’
-It was doubtless for a similar reason that the Act excluded from its
-benefits scholars receiving instruction in elementary schools.
-
-The money thus provided almost by accident, became a new and valuable
-source for endowing secondary education; and on all hands claims of the
-most varied kind were made on it. Administered by bodies of non-experts,
-who had to learn their business by doing it, much of it was misapplied;
-mistakes, often of a ludicrous character, were made, and there was some
-excuse for those producers and consumers of spirits who thought the
-money would have been better applied in relieving the tax. But in spite
-of repeated appeals by specially interested persons, Parliament kept
-firm in the matter; the money must be given to County Councils, and they
-must learn to use it. How well many of them have learnt can best be
-realised by a series of visits to the polytechnics of London and the
-large provincial towns, to the laboratories constructed in public
-schools, to the ambulatory dairy classes in village schoolrooms, to the
-beautifully equipped laundries, kitchens, and dressmaking schools all
-over the country.
-
-Long before these Technical Instruction Acts were passed, isolated
-action had been taken. The Regent Street Polytechnic, long known as
-_the_ Polytechnic, was already in full work. It originated in a Young
-Men’s Institute, privately founded by Mr. Quentin Hogg, with the large
-aim of providing a place where a young man could develop all the sides
-of his nature, and ‘find a reasonable outlet for any healthy desire,
-physical, spiritual, social, or intellectual, which he possesses.’ For
-some years the Institute flourished in Long Acre, and it happened that,
-just when increased accommodation became necessary, the old Polytechnic,
-long the home of Pepper’s Ghost, the diving-bell, and other joys and
-terrors of our young days, came into the market. It was at once secured,
-and the result was an unprecedented rush for membership. Mr. Hogg, who
-was the life and soul of the Institute, made a point of himself seeing
-every boy on joining, and on the first night in Regent Street, he began
-to interview new members at five o’clock. There he was kept at his desk,
-unable even to get a cup of tea, till a quarter to one in the morning,
-and by that time a thousand new members had been enrolled. With such
-encouragement, it was possible to try fresh experiments, and for the
-first time trade-classes and workshop practice were added to the
-programme. The Polytechnic thus became a pioneer in technical work. The
-London Trades Council in 1883 recommended its system of trade teaching
-to the London trades; members of the Technical Instruction Commission
-gave it their warm commendation.
-
-Meantime other institutes were growing up. If Mr. Hogg claimed that the
-Polytechnic began its labours when he took two crossing-sweepers into
-the Adelphi arches, and made them the nucleus of a ragged school, the
-People’s Palace had an even more romantic origin. It was inspired by the
-picture, in _All Sorts and Conditions of Men_, of the Palace of Delight,
-of ‘the club of the working-people,’ where ‘we shall all together
-continually be thinking how to bring more sunshine into our lives, more
-change, more variety, more happiness.’ Here, even more than at Regent
-Street, the recreative side was to the fore, and the main feature was
-the Queen’s Hall, in which public entertainments were organised. It had
-a chequered career, and finally was saved to the East End by the
-liberality of the Drapers’ Company. Since then the educational side has
-been more fully developed, but apart from the recreative, which is
-absolutely independent of the East London Technical College. This is an
-unusual condition, since, as a rule, the Polytechnics, mindful of their
-double origin, aim at being centres of both work and play. They have a
-tendency to fall into two classes: those that began as social clubs, and
-added the classes to their programme, and those that began with classes,
-and then encouraged the students to form clubs for literary, athletic
-and recreative purposes.
-
-The greater stress laid on the educational side by the more recent
-institutions was due to two causes. In 1883 the London Parochial
-Charities Act gave the Charity Commissioners powers to deal with certain
-sums, which had been left by benefactors long deceased, for purposes
-which had actually ceased to exist. It was lucky that this sum of money,
-which may be capitalised at over three millions, became available for
-public purposes at the very time when all this stir about technical
-education was taking place. The Regent Street Institute was chosen as a
-model. London was mapped out into twelve districts, and a Polytechnic
-was to be supplied for each, on condition of local aid supplementing
-certain sums which were offered conditionally. It was not long before
-this proposal brought munificent private donors into the field. The
-Marquis of Northampton and Lord Compton gave a site of the value of
-£30,000, Earl Cadogan gave ground of the value of £10,000; others gave
-less, according to their means. Eleven of these Polytechnics are already
-in existence; Paddington alone is waiting for the private benefactors
-who shall establish the claim to public help. The second impetus came
-from the Technical Education Board of the London County Council. The
-metropolis had been slow in following the lead of other counties, and it
-was not till 1892 that it resolved to apply its share of the whisky
-money to purposes of technical education. But when it did move it did so
-in good earnest. The Council conferred full executive power on a Board
-consisting of twenty of its own members, thirteen representatives of
-other bodies and two experts, one being a woman, co-opted by the Council
-itself. The bodies thus represented are: the London School Board, the
-City and Guilds of London Institute, the London Parochial Charities
-Foundation, the Headmasters’ Association, the National Union of
-Teachers, and the London Trades Council. Mr. Sidney Webb was elected
-chairman, Dr. W. Garnett was appointed secretary and organiser, and the
-superintendence of the domestic economy work was given to Miss Ella
-Pycroft. The Board has been most successful in its work, and a very
-complete scheme of technical instruction in London is being gradually
-evolved. Since the Board’s work is educational it is natural that this
-side has been specially emphasised in those Polytechnics which have been
-founded since its establishment, _i.e._ those at Battersea, Chelsea,
-North London and the City.
-
-The help given by the Board to Polytechnics may be thus stated:
-
-1. Equipment grants made from time to time for specific purposes.
-
-2. A fixed contribution of £1000 a year.
-
-3. Three-quarters—not exceeding £500 a year—of the principal’s salary.
-
-4. 10 per cent. on the fixed salaries of the teachers.
-
-5. 1d. for each hour’s attendance of each student.
-
-6. 15 per cent. on all voluntary subscriptions and donations from
-private sources.
-
-Provided that the total payment to any Polytechnic under 2, 3, 4, and 5
-does not exceed £3000, and under 6 does not exceed £2000.
-
-The Polytechnics are really subsidised from five different sources:
-private generosity, city companies, ancient and hitherto misapplied
-charities, part of the proceeds of the ‘beer and spirit tax,’ grants
-from the South Kensington Department.
-
-Dreary as are such enumerations of names and figures, there is a special
-interest attaching to this particular set. The aggrieved ratepayer is
-apt at times to point to these splendid buildings as an example of the
-way in which his hard won money is being squandered, quite regardless of
-the fact that those papers he abhors have never contained any appeal for
-money for this purpose. London has never levied a technical education
-rate, thanks to these other sources of income which have given her
-citizens so much without any sacrifice on their part. The beer and
-spirit money has acted the part of a fairy godmother to London men and
-women.
-
-It was made clear from the outset that both sexes were alike to benefit,
-and thus the Polytechnics have become what our American cousins call
-‘co-educational.’ But the needs of men and women are not always the
-same, and the special wants of women were considered in the
-establishment of a domestic economy side, though they are not limited to
-this. Practically the whole field of education beyond the elementary is
-open to county council action, provided no aid is given to institutions
-with a definite religious bias or conducted for private profit. The only
-subjects distinctly excluded by the Acts are classics and literature.
-The money is therefore available for purposes of—(1) definite Trade
-instruction; (2) day and evening classes in Science, both theoretical
-and applied, and Domestic Economy; (3) secondary education of a modern
-character.
-
-Under these two last headings great things have been done for girls and
-women. In spite of the recent introduction into the elementary school
-code of such subjects as cooking and laundry, it is becoming more and
-more clear that the brief time allotted to the Standards is not too much
-for a grounding in general subjects, and that after this should come the
-preparation of a girl to be useful at home or to earn her living by
-domestic work. The elementary school girl is too young, the high school
-girl too busy, to gain much from the wedging of a little domestic
-teaching into the mass of the ordinary school work. Nor is a cookery or
-a laundry lesson once a week of much use in giving the necessary skill
-and practice. Domestic work wants continuous and consecutive practice,
-for the acquisition of that ‘touch’ and ‘knack’ on which so much
-depends; and the domestic economy schools come in here to supply what is
-really wanted.
-
-This type of school did not originate in London, though it has taken
-very firm root there. Some very interesting experiments had been made in
-other parts of the country, notably Yorkshire, before Battersea, the
-Borough, and Regent Street Polytechnics in 1894 opened their domestic
-economy schools, with fifty-four scholars nominated by the Technical
-Education Board, and the addition of a few paying pupils. This example
-was soon followed by the other Polytechnics, and the Board now elects
-386 scholars annually, who are distributed among nine schools. The
-course lasts five months, and during this time the scholars receive free
-tuition, two free meals daily, and the material required for making
-dresses or other garments. They attend from 9.30 to 12.30 and 2 to 4.30
-every day except Saturday. During that time they get a continuous and
-thorough training in cookery, needlework, dress cutting and making,
-laundry work and housewifery, with some gymnastics and singing. In
-addition to these scholarships second courses of five months’
-instruction, with the opportunity of specialising in one particular
-branch, are now awarded to eighty-four scholars each half-year. The
-first course is not meant to train a cook or a dressmaker, but any girl
-who wishes to qualify herself for such a post gets a capital chance of
-testing her own abilities and inclination, and there are further
-opportunities of training open to her, if she desires them, in the
-second course or at the National Training School of Cookery. Last year
-four girls were apprenticed in good dressmaking firms on leaving the
-school.
-
-Mrs. Pillow, lately employed by the Education Department to prepare a
-special report on the teaching of Domestic Economy, gives an account of
-the work of these schools. She says: ‘Housekeeping and cookery are
-treated as part of the everyday life of the girls, and not merely as
-school lessons. The girls cook the meals which they are to eat; they
-learn to measure and fit themselves for the dresses which they are
-taught to make, and they are instructed in laundry work in such a way
-that they can quite well apply their knowledge to the “family wash” in
-their own homes. The cookery syllabus contains dishes which are well
-within the reach of the working man earning an average wage; the using
-up of odds and ends, bones, crusts, and cold vegetables, scraps of meat,
-etc. receives attention, and the utensils and stoves provided for the
-girls are similar[17] to those found in the majority of artisans’ homes.
-
-‘The laundry work is taught on simple and common-sense principles, the
-only extra aid to speed and efficiency being a wringer and mangle, and,
-as these are now so frequently found in the homes of the more thrifty
-housewives, it is well that the girls should be taught to use them
-properly. The processes of steeping, washing, boiling, rinsing, blueing,
-wringing, drying, folding, mangling are all thoroughly taught. The
-washing of flannels and woollens, a part of laundry work which is
-frequently very badly done by laundry women, receives special attention,
-and starching and ironing are exceedingly well done by the girls at the
-conclusion of their course of training.
-
-‘The girls are taught the market value of foods. In some of the schools
-special arrangements are made for this. At Battersea they are taken out
-to purchase meat, greengrocery, etc. When the girls cannot be taken out
-to market, they are sometimes allowed to purchase from the teacher in
-charge of the stores. They are taught to compare prices, to judge of the
-freshness and quality of commodities, to expend a given sum to the best
-advantage in the cheapest market, and how to prepare and cook their
-meals in the shortest time possible.’
-
-The fee for the complete course is £1, 10s., or 7s. 6d. per month, and
-this includes the cost of all books and materials. The greater part of
-the pupils come from the elementary schools, but surely they are not the
-only girls who need such teaching. Many pupils leave the high schools at
-fourteen or fifteen to live at home in somewhat straitened
-circumstances. To them such a training as this would indeed be a boon.
-It would even be worth the sacrifice of the last six months at school,
-since they must in any case leave without getting the best it can
-afford, the teaching in the fifth and sixth forms. Girls attending
-second grade schools, who naturally leave early, would find these
-domestic economy courses an admirable means of transition between school
-and home life; while those, whose bent lies in this direction, can go on
-to the training schools, and either become teachers of these subjects,
-or earn a living by their practical application. In fact, the domestic
-economy school is fast helping to raise the home arts into their proper
-educational place, as affording one among many suitable careers for
-women, no longer the Cinderella among occupations, who sits among the
-ashes, because the prince has not yet come to claim her. The neglect of
-the middle class to use these schools is another instance of their
-proverbial apathy; meantime, these good things are ready for them as
-soon as they will take the trouble to grasp them. Of course there is no
-reason why such teaching should be given free, except to a minority.
-
-Even more widespread than these day-schools are the evening classes in
-the same subjects. These are found throughout the country, in towns at
-technical institutes, in villages in little classes taught by
-peripatetic teachers, who are sent from place to place by the county
-councils. In fact, ‘county council dressmaking’ has become such a
-feature, that it might be taken for a special system of cutting and
-fitting. The persons for whose benefit this instruction is given are
-young women who have left school, wives, and mothers of families. If
-experience has taught them their own deficiencies, they have now the
-opportunity of making up lost ground. Cookery, dressmaking, and nursing
-often attract large numbers. The teaching has no professional purpose.
-It is simply ‘for home use,’ as the Germans say, and has its place in a
-wide scheme of general education, which includes training the hand as
-well as the mind.
-
-This village work must, to some extent, be desultory, while, in the
-large town institutes, it can be made more systematic. Its value is
-considerably affected by the construction of the board which controls
-it. A council which places experts on its technical education committee
-generally does better than one that simply adds education to its other
-manifold functions. Women are able to sit on these committees, and it is
-of great importance, for the more feminine side of the work, that they
-should be appointed in larger numbers than has hitherto been the case.
-
-The female element is represented at some of the institutes by the
-appointment of a lady-superintendent of the women’s department. This is
-the case in the London Polytechnics, where the women’s work is very
-fully equipped. At Battersea, which may be taken as typical, the
-subjects taught in this department are: cookery, needlework, dress
-cutting and making, millinery, fancy needlework and embroidery, laundry
-work. In most of these subjects pupils can be prepared for the
-examinations of the City and Guilds of London Institute. The fees are
-low, and the courses carefully graduated. There is an interesting class
-in ‘homekeeping,’ intended for students whose occupation prevents them
-from getting the necessary knowledge of housekeeping during the day.
-This includes such items as spring cleaning, ordinary household duties
-and daily routine, and is probably of special use to that large class of
-housekeepers who, having learnt their own deficiencies from bitter
-experience, can value this opportunity of remedying them. Another useful
-course is elementary political economy, which includes value and
-distribution of wealth, rent, wages, and other similar problems. This
-instruction, to which both mistress and maid might listen with profit,
-can be had by Polytechnic members for 1s., and for 1s. 6d. by outsiders.
-Members may also join a reading circle and a first-aid class; they can
-use the beautiful gymnasium, and refresh their cramped limbs with
-musical drill. All this, with the social advantages which are manifold,
-is within reach of those girls and women who are lucky enough to live in
-the neighbourhood of a Polytechnic, and have some free evenings to spend
-there.
-
-Institutes of this kind are fast being brought within reach of all
-dwellers in towns. The municipal schools of Manchester and Brighton need
-hardly shrink from comparison with those of the metropolis. In fact,
-when we look at the sumptuous equipment of such schools, we are tempted
-to exclaim that Cinderella has indeed left the ashes, and ascended into
-her palace. But these glories are not hers by sole right. The men’s
-department (of mechanics, engineering, etc.) is far larger than the
-women’s, and besides these two, where the sexes are of necessity kept
-apart, there are numerous classes where they meet on common ground. At
-Battersea the art department is open three days and five evenings a
-week, and the general scheme includes a thoroughly practical knowledge
-of designing, drawing, painting, and modelling, especially in its
-various applications to trades and industries, as well as life classes,
-and the commoner features of such schools. In the commercial school,
-arithmetic, book-keeping, typewriting and shorthand are taught, as well
-as French. There are classes in pure and applied mathematics, and every
-branch of science is taught with such advantages in the way of
-laboratories and appliances, as no private or self-supporting
-institution could attempt to supply. Most Polytechnics are centres for
-University Extension, some have fine gymnasia, some have swimming-baths;
-nearly all have a long list of social, athletic, and recreative clubs.
-In fact, a well-equipped Polytechnic is a kind of popular University,
-which provides for all the needs of its members, though with some
-neglect of the literary side. This, too, might be supplied by the
-omission or insertion of a few words in an Act of Parliament. The
-Polytechnics and Technical Institutes would thus at once be transformed
-into the most completely equipped and endowed scheme of secondary and
-higher education in this country.
-
-With such resources at their disposal, it is natural that Technical
-Instruction boards and Polytechnic governors should have gone a step
-further, and tried to utilise their spacious premises and admirable
-teaching staff for the ordinary purposes of a day-school. Experiments on
-these lines are being tried in several places. It is thought that by
-establishing such schools, the polytechnic both gives and receives; if
-it helps the schools by allowing them to use its premises and staff, it
-is helped in turn by the training given to a number of boys and girls,
-who will some day be properly equipped to profit by the more advanced
-instruction in the evening. The school is largely a feeder for the
-polytechnic, and will help in time to raise the standard of its work. As
-such it should be judged rather than as an independent experiment in
-secondary education.
-
-A joint school for boys and girls need excite no surprise in an
-institution that started at once as ‘co-educational.’ But unfortunately,
-in schemes of this kind there is always a tendency to let the girls come
-off second-best. This certainly applies to the arrangement of an
-‘Organised Science School,’ which is the scheme usually adopted, both on
-account of its bias in favour of the scientific side and the power it
-confers to earn grants from South Kensington. Probably the admission of
-girls was to some extent an afterthought. The Battersea school had been
-open over a year before girls were admitted as an experiment. The
-present numbers are about one hundred and thirty, of whom two-thirds are
-boys. The average age of the junior division is fourteen, and of the
-senior fifteen. The fees are £1 a term, including books and stationery.
-The school hours are 9.30 to 12.30, and 2 to 4.30, five days in the
-week. The work of the three divisions is arranged thus:
-
-1. Mechanical Division. Mathematics, five hours; Mechanics, three and a
-half hours; Physics, three and a half hours; Drawing, four hours;
-English subjects, four hours; French, two hours; Manual training, four
-and a half hours; Drill, one hour.
-
-2. Science Division. Mathematics, five hours; Mechanics, two and a half
-hours; Physics, three and a half hours; Chemistry, four and a half
-hours; Drawing, three hours; English subjects, four hours; French, two
-hours; Manual training, two hours; Drill, one hour.
-
-3. Elementary Division. Mathematics, five hours; Physics, three hours;
-Chemistry, two and a half hours; Drawing, three hours; English subjects,
-five hours; French, three hours; Art, two hours; Manual training or
-Domestic Economy, three hours; Drill, one hour.
-
-Its aim is described as the imparting of ‘a thoroughly sound secondary
-education, with special provision for the study of pure and applied
-science, manual training, workshop practice and domestic economy.’ This
-school is interesting apart from its curriculum, owing to the efforts
-made by Mr. S. H. Wells, Principal of the Polytechnic, who acts as
-headmaster, to make it ‘secondary’ in the full sense, and introduce some
-of the _esprit de corps_ and out-of-school life which are such marked
-features in boys’ ‘public’ and girls’ high schools. The school is
-divided into forms with a form-master; ‘each form meets in its form-room
-for call-over before school opens for the day, after which they assemble
-for prayers, which are read by the Principal. These are confined to a
-few verses of Scripture and the Lord’s Prayer; and exemption from
-attendance is granted when requested by the parent, although only two
-such requests have been made. In matters of discipline the students have
-been taught to realise that having ceased to be children they should
-have given up childish things; they are present to work not to play, and
-their duty to their parents and themselves calls them to take every
-advantage of the opportunities afforded; in a word, they are not
-expected to commit acts against discipline—they are trusted.’ Mr. Wells
-further tells us that ‘senior students are told off every day to
-ascertain the chief events recorded in the newspapers, and to record
-them on a blackboard, which all the school are expected to read, to be
-afterwards questioned on the event in their English classes. In the same
-way a record is made of daily weather observations. All boys are
-required to wear the school cap, and the habit of “capping” the teachers
-outside the school is willingly adopted. Each term sees its “drill
-competitions” between the different forms for a shield presented by the
-Principal, its inter-form cricket or football matches for a challenge
-cup presented by the masters, and matches between the masters and
-school. The end of term sees its gymnastic displays or concerts with
-acting and recitals, to which parents and friends are invited. Three
-school captains are elected each term, the method being that they are
-proposed and seconded, and voted for by the whole school. The captains
-have authority outside the class-rooms, and their position is readily
-and loyally acknowledged.’ The girls have their games among themselves,
-though now and then they play a boys’ team at hockey. They have their
-own captain, and are assembled for call-over by a mistress, who has a
-general control over them, and is always ready to help them with advice
-and sympathy. Women, of course, give the lessons in cooking, etc., which
-are the feminine counterpart of manual training; else all the teaching
-is in the hands of men. The intellectual results appear to be
-satisfactory, and here, as in other co-educational institutions the
-girls are quite able to hold their own in class. Of the moral and
-hygienic results it is far more difficult to judge. Whether girls
-between fourteen and sixteen would not be better under the care of a
-woman, whether they do not miss some of that moral influence which can
-only be exercised by a form-mistress who also takes part in the
-teaching, are questions that must come up in the near future, should
-there be any disposition towards co-education in this country. As yet it
-has generally been adopted rather from motives of economy than on
-grounds of principle. Institutions like those at Battersea, Chelsea, and
-Wandsworth are boys’ schools to which girls are admitted; although, as a
-matter of fact, at Chelsea the girls outnumber the boys. The amount of
-time given to science would never have been allotted had the real needs
-of girls been considered. It is an interesting experiment, but it will
-not do much towards solving the problem of Modern Schools for girls.
-
-Even more one-sided in its aims is the type of school which the Surrey
-County Council is starting. This county is specially deficient in girls’
-schools of a middle grade, though it contains several good proprietary
-high schools, and the technical committee is therefore applying some of
-its funds to the supply of this want. The Wimbledon school is the first
-attempt of the kind, and must be regarded as still in an experimental
-stage. Girls who enter are supposed to have attained to the requirements
-of the Sixth Standard, but in a district where there are no Board
-schools even this is not always attainable. Hence there are many gaps to
-fill up, before a proper foundation is laid for the new studies. It is
-supposed that girls will stay for four years, and should they do so, a
-most valuable experiment might be made in devising a ‘modern’
-curriculum, essentially adapted for girls. Hitherto in this first year’s
-work the course of study is exceedingly meagre; neither science nor
-literature is taught; there is a little English history and geography,
-but the bulk of the time goes to shorthand, book-keeping, commercial
-arithmetic, cooking, laundry and dressmaking. All excellent things, but
-surely this is not sufficient intellectual fare for these
-twelve-year-old children. Another two years at general subjects would
-help to lay a really good foundation on which the special work could be
-built up; and it is probable that the shorthand and double entry, and
-even the puddings and clear-starching, will not suffer in the end for
-this little delay at the beginning. This kind of work is none the better
-for being spread out over so many years. It cannot, like the more
-intellectual subjects, be perpetually presenting fresh developments,
-which give it the charm of novelty. There seems some danger lest, in
-trying to elevate the status of the domestic and commercial arts, we
-should forget that they cannot satisfy all sides of our nature. Girls
-want something different from the science school, but it must not be a
-purely utilitarian training. In the true modern school they will learn
-subjects of daily utility; but just because so much time is given to
-these, there must be special prominence for all that makes for culture.
-To the Spencerian dictum that education must prepare for the business of
-life, we should add Aristotle’s wise admonition, that it should teach
-the right use of leisure. Keeping both these in view we may yet discover
-the ideal ‘Modern School.’
-
-It would not be fair to blame technical education boards because they
-have not yet solved this difficult problem. Their experience in
-education is still new, and as far as schools are concerned their best
-work has been done in subsidising those that already exist. On this
-large sums are now being spent. To be exact, we may state that during
-the year 1896–97, sixty-three councils, (forty-two county, and
-twenty-one county borough) gave direct or indirect assistance to three
-hundred and twenty-eight secondary schools to the amount of £144,871,
-2s. 2d., this sum including the scholarships and exhibitions granted to
-pupils proceeding to or from secondary schools. How much of this goes to
-girls does not appear, certainly not half, but at any rate enough to
-make a very appreciable difference to their education.
-
-Of course, this help is not given unconditionally. It usually implies
-the representation of the local authority on the governing body of the
-school, the application of the entire subsidy to purposes of technical
-education, and observance of the clauses abolishing religious tests.
-Some counties have special requirements, without which no subsidy can be
-given. _E.g._ Cheshire demands:
-
-(1) That drawing shall be taught to every pupil except any whose
-exemption may be approved by the committee. (2) That at least two
-science subjects shall be taught to all pupils over ten. (3) That one
-modern language shall be taught, and regular instruction given in some
-commercial subjects. (4) That each student shall receive instruction for
-at least three hours a week in mathematics. (5) That the pupils shall be
-annually examined, and at least twenty-five per cent. of them sit for
-the examinations of the Science and Art Department, or such other
-examination as the Technical Instruction Committee may from time to time
-approve.
-
-Other counties are less rigid in their demands. In London, where endowed
-schools for girls have been greatly helped with grants, some special
-condition often accompanies a subsidy. Thus the Owens girls’ school at
-Islington received £300 ‘to be expended in fitting up the new laboratory
-and art-room,’ the Central Foundation school was charged to spend its
-grant on fitting up another room for work in practical physics and
-appointing an assistant science mistress. At the Camden school the board
-provided an Arts and Crafts room, where cookery and dressmaking are
-regularly taught; at the James Allen’s school, Dulwich, a laboratory has
-been built, and a subsidy given for an assistant science mistress. Such
-subsidies, even when given for a specific purpose, help the whole school
-indirectly, since they set free money from the general funds for the
-benefit of what cannot be included in that elastic term ‘technical
-education.’
-
-Perhaps the chief benefit yet conferred by county councils on secondary
-education is the gift of scholarships. It has been left to the technical
-instruction committees to frame that ‘ladder’ of which so much is heard
-on educational platforms. Thanks to a system of graduated scholarships,
-it is now possible for an intelligent boy or girl to pass from a primary
-to a secondary school, and thence even to the university. Of course this
-has been done before now, but never on such a large scale. Since each
-county is a law unto itself, a girl’s chances depend greatly on the
-place where she happens to live. A girl living in Bedfordshire has no
-county council scholarships open to her, but the Harpur Trust schools at
-Bedford receive girls with scholarships from other counties. A Surrey
-girl has a good chance of winning a scholarship, but, owing to the
-dearth of girls’ public schools in that county, she may not be able to
-make the best use of it. Happily, there are many parts of England where
-both schools and scholarships are available, and there will soon be
-more, if one of the difficulties in the way of the girls’ ‘ladder’ is
-removed, by the recognition of proprietary high schools as public
-institutions at which scholarships can be held. This is now being done
-in some places, to the great advantage of the scholars.
-
-Some counties, _e.g._ Derbyshire, Durham, and Yorkshire, have a very
-complete system of scholarships, accompanied by maintenance grants,
-without which they would in many cases be useless. There are few
-counties that do nothing in this way. The London Technical Education
-Board regards its scholarship scheme as the basis for nearly all its
-work. ‘The award of junior and intermediate county scholarships
-necessitates such grants to secondary schools as will enable them to
-make proper provision for the technical training of the scholars.
-Similarly, the award of intermediate and senior county scholarships
-compels the Board to see that the training afforded in institutions for
-higher education is suitable for scholars of seventeen years of age and
-upwards.’
-
-The Board gives three classes of scholarships:—(1) Junior county
-scholarships, intended chiefly for pupils of public elementary schools
-working in the fifth or higher Standards, tenable for two years and
-renewable. Of these six hundred are given annually, and fifty are open
-to candidates from other than elementary schools, whose parents have an
-income below £150. These scholarships give their holders free education
-at any approved secondary or upper standard school, with money payments
-of £8 for the first year, and £12 for the second.
-
-2. Intermediate county scholarships are open to boys and girls under
-sixteen who come from any school, secondary or upper standard. They give
-free education to the age of eighteen or nineteen, with money payments
-rising from £20 to £35 a year. The income limit is £400. They are
-tenable at public secondary schools and places of higher learning.
-
-3. Senior county scholarships. These are few in number, and intended to
-provide for specially promising students a training of university rank.
-They give free education at a college or technical institute, with money
-grants of £60 a year, and are tenable for three years. Here, too, the
-income limit is £400.
-
-In 1896–97 London had a thousand junior scholars in fifty secondary, and
-two hundred and ninety-four in thirty-six upper standard schools. Of
-this total four hundred and eighty-five are girls. The intermediate
-scholars, of whom there were a hundred and eighty, were in the following
-institutions: three university colleges, five technical and science
-colleges, one training department of a polytechnic, fourteen first-grade
-public secondary schools, twenty-one second grade public secondary
-schools. Sixty-two of these scholars were girls. Of the senior scholars
-only two were women. They pursued their studies at Holloway and the
-Central Technical Colleges.
-
-All this is, of course, in addition to the special scholarships for Art,
-Science, Domestic Economy, etc., which come more directly under the
-heading of ‘technical.’
-
-If we turn away from these lists of names and figures to consider how
-wide a field has been covered by this work in London and the provinces,
-we cannot but be struck by the developments of these eight years. A
-system of universities for the people has been started, technical and
-commercial education have received an enormous impetus, secondary
-instruction has been brought within reach of large numbers by whom it
-was hitherto unattainable, numbers of already existing schools have been
-placed on a firm financial basis, and throughout the special needs of
-women have been considered. With better building and plumbing, better
-cooking and washing, we certainly may hope for more creature comforts in
-the good time coming. But this is a small thing compared with the
-brightening of homes by the gift of those higher pleasures, without
-which it has been truly said that life is not truly life at all.
-
-Surely whisky-drinkers need not grudge the extra sixpence which has done
-all this!
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X
- STATE AID FOR GIRLS
-
-
-While private effort in the form of companies, endowments, and
-individual enterprises was building up a complete, though unorganised,
-system of girls’ education, another system totally unconnected was being
-gradually developed by aid of the State. For a long time the two were
-regarded as parallel, with no possible point of contact, except such as
-might be artificially established by means of scholarships. Now we are
-beginning to think that we may have mistaken the direction of the lines,
-and that there are some points of connection between the Board School
-and the High School pupil.
-
-This change is due to the growing conviction that the education of its
-citizens is a matter of which a State should take cognisance. Far behind
-Germany in its adoption of this principle, England did at last wake up
-to the necessity of educating all her citizens. Whether out of
-self-defence, to ‘educate our masters,’ as Mr. Lowe bade us do, or, as
-Plato would have counselled, to make the men and women of the State as
-good as possible, the idea of universal education has at last gained a
-hold in this country. Very slowly, and with immense opposition on the
-part of the classes who regarded learning as their own peculiar
-privilege, and were jealous of any intrusion in what they considered
-their private domain. But they were powerless to hinder; when once the
-little flame was kindled, no force could avail to extinguish it. From
-the moment that one generation educated in the new schools took their
-place as voters, the system was secured. The democracy soon realised
-that education was a levelling agency, and that it was their interest
-both to maintain and improve it.
-
-It is difficult for those who are familiar with our elementary education
-to realise how recent is its establishment in England, and how still
-more a matter of yesterday the full use of the opportunities offered.
-England was the last of the great European countries to accept the
-doctrine of the responsibility of the State for education. Schools for
-the poorer classes were for a long time either non-existent or a matter
-of local, largely denominational, effort. The first grant of public
-money to schools was made in 1832, when, without any previous
-legislation on the subject, the sum of £20,000 for this purpose appeared
-in the Estimates. Seven years later this was increased to £30,000, and
-by an order in Council a special committee of the Privy Council was
-established, with its own staff of officers to supervise the work. This
-was the first beginning of the Education Department. Thus gradually,
-almost imperceptibly, the State was beginning to intervene in education.
-When in 1858 the Duke of Newcastle’s Commission was appointed to inquire
-into the whole state of popular education, it found that much had
-already been done, but the great need was for some systematic control.
-The result of its findings was the celebrated Revised Code of 1861,
-whose main provisions were:—
-
-‘1. That a school must be in approved premises.
-
-‘2. That each child must make a certain number of attendances.
-
-‘3. That children must pass individual examinations in reading, writing,
-and arithmetic.’
-
-Thus originated the much praised and much abused system of ‘payment by
-results,’ about which so many a contest has waged.
-
-Up to 1870, the whole system had grown up out of administrative
-machinery, without direct intervention of the legislature. Voluntary
-effort originated the schools, Treasury grants assisted them. The
-Education Act of 1870 was intended, to quote the words of its author,
-Mr. Forster, ‘to complete the voluntary system, and to fill up gaps.’
-Its object was not so much to create schools as School Boards. Where
-voluntary effort was, by inspection, proved insufficient, a district
-could be called upon to elect a School Board, with power to raise a
-rate. A subsequent Act, by establishing school attendance committees for
-non-School Board districts, completed the system of local control; and
-the 1880 Act made attendance compulsory on all children up to ten (since
-altered to eleven), and forbade the employment of any children between
-ten and thirteen who had not reached a standard to be fixed for each
-district by its own local authority. Those who could not reach this by
-fourteen might claim the dunce’s privilege.
-
-The School Boards found plenty of work before them. For some years they
-were chiefly occupied in drawing into the schools the great masses of
-the entirely uneducated; and the three R’s, which was all they could aim
-at, came to be regarded in many quarters as the ultimate aim of
-elementary school instruction. But this was a temporary stage, which had
-to be gone through before the red-brick school-house had become a
-regular feature of town and village throughout the kingdom. Education
-was compulsory till the age of ten; children who passed through all the
-standards would remain at school till about twelve or thirteen. For the
-masses that might be sufficient; for a select few it was either too
-little or too much. It served to kindle in their minds a love of
-knowledge, and to reveal a special inclination for intellectual
-pursuits, without offering the means of satisfying it. Gradually the
-need of building a second story on this lower edifice became manifest. A
-subject much debated during the last few years is the question whether
-this should be planted on the top of the primary building, or provided
-by special avenues leading from the elementary schools to existing
-secondary institutions. But while educationalists were discussing
-matters in the abstract, the necessities of the case were compelling the
-existing schools to build their own top story. When the Secondary
-Education Commission of 1894 came to discuss the best methods of
-establishing continuation schools, they found that a considerable number
-were already at work in different parts of the country. The change had
-come about little by little. Clever children had passed through the
-standards at an age when it was impossible or inadvisable to set them to
-work; it was natural that the school should be unwilling to turn them
-away. Thus originated an ex-sixth standard, and gradually the pressure
-of the Boards upward brought about the extension of the parliamentary
-grant to a new standard—the seventh—in which more advanced subjects of
-study received recognition. Thus while the obligatory subjects still
-remain reading, writing, and arithmetic, with needlework for the girls
-and drawing for the boys, the optional and specific subjects—of which,
-however, no child may take more than a very limited number—now range
-over several sciences, languages, and mathematics, as well as what are
-popularly called technical subjects. The great mass of schools are still
-obliged to confine themselves to elementary work; but with the
-introduction of other subjects into the code, a new element has entered
-the schools, and has without doubt ‘come to stay.’ The next development
-after the seventh standard was a system of ex-standard classes, which in
-large schools could be worked without a great addition to the staff. In
-particular, the instruction of the pupil-teachers introduced some more
-advanced classes; and as time went on, parents who had themselves
-enjoyed the benefits of education showed themselves more and more
-willing to leave their children at school as long as the school was
-willing to keep them. In this way the ex-seventh standard developed into
-the Higher Grade Elementary school.
-
-This name belongs properly to two different types of school. The Higher
-Grade proper begins at the fifth standard, and gives an education for
-three or four years beyond the seventh. But the term is also applied to
-a school which includes all the standards, and gives more advanced
-instruction to a small number of pupils who remain after passing through
-these. The latter is the kind usually found in London; the former is
-popular in large manufacturing towns, especially in the north, and it is
-this which is stepping in to fill an important gap in the secondary
-system of the country.
-
-These schools mark the existence of a new and vigorous educational
-impulse arising from below. They are a natural, though apparently
-unexpected, development of the elementary school, which, according to
-the words of the Act, is one ‘at which elementary education is the
-principal part of the education there given.’ Since the great mass of
-children do not go beyond the fifth standard, it is convenient in large
-towns to draw into a single school all who propose to continue their
-education, and by a systematic course of further study to encourage them
-to stay on as long as possible. Thus a secondary school has grown up so
-naturally and quietly on the top of the elementary, that many persons
-are hardly aware of its existence.
-
-This sudden addition of a four years’ advanced course would obviously be
-impossible without funds, and the Education Department is officially
-unaware of the existence of any pupils beyond the seventh standard. The
-good fairy who steps in here is none other than that much abused South
-Kensington Department of Science and Art. This department, which, justly
-or unjustly, has come to be regarded as a red-tape-bound machine for
-examining and conferring grants by a sort of automatic process, has only
-of late years been brought into connection with day-schools. Though its
-grants began as early as 1837, their object was chiefly to encourage
-evening classes, and make cheap instruction possible for those men and
-women whose occupation or income shut them out from the ordinary means
-of education. An examination which could be used for the purpose of
-earning income naturally became popular; and in spite of protests from
-many quarters, in particular from some artists, who regarded the system
-of drawing-teaching as mechanical and cramping, there has been little
-diminution in its popularity as a money-producing agency. The
-establishment of technical institutes gave it a fresh impulse, since the
-adoption by these of the South Kensington examinations gave a welcome
-addition to the institute’s funds; and as the money for this purpose is
-supplied by annual votes in the Estimates, and not by a rate, it
-provokes none of that opposition which a local rate for any object, no
-matter how desirable, is sure to encounter.
-
-The connection between South Kensington and the day-schools has grown
-little by little. The grants were originally meant for evening-schools,
-but there appeared no reason why day-schools should not also earn it,
-provided they were willing to send in their pupils for the evening
-examinations, which for some years were the only ones held. As early as
-1872, the department had devised a regular scheme of instruction for
-schools that systematically followed its courses. Under certain
-conditions, schools under local management, approved by the department,
-might be registered as ‘Organised Science Schools.’ A certain class
-stamp was given them by requiring that the pupils should as a whole
-belong to the ‘industrial classes,’ the £400 income limit being used to
-define the term. Payments were made for success in examination: for
-Science, £2 for a pass in an elementary subject; £2, 10s. and £5,
-respectively, for a second or first-class in an advanced stage; and £4
-and £8 for a second and first in honours. Extra grants were made for
-certain subjects. No payment was made unless at least twenty-eight
-lessons had been given to the class, or unless at least twenty had been
-attended by the individual pupil. Payments on similar principles were
-made for Art. The Organised Science School could also claim an
-attendance grant, which made it a more profitable undertaking. In
-return, a school was bound to allot fifteen hours a week to subjects
-taken under the department. As a matter of fact most schools gave more.
-There was money in Science, Mathematics and Drawing. Geography, History,
-Languages and Literature were unremunerative. They must go to the wall.
-
-Such was the course which, originally designed for evening students, was
-gradually gaining favour in day-schools. A child who passed beyond the
-standards must still earn money for his school, and this could only be
-done by means of these South Kensington grants. Hence the wide diffusion
-of the Organised Science School, in spite of its too early
-specialisation, and the undue stress laid on grant-earning.
-
-This arrangement marked the triumph of red-tape and apotheosis of the
-examination system. The narrowness of the curriculum made it unsuitable
-for many boys, and almost all girls. As attempts were made to adopt it
-more generally for the sake of the grant, condemnation became frequent.
-The obligatory fifteen hours’ Science were complained of; in 1895 new
-regulations reduced them to thirteen, and introduced a general _viva
-voce_ inspection, which was to take cognisance of literary subjects as
-well. Grants are still given only for Science and Art, but the other
-side is not wholly neglected. Ten hours must nominally be given to
-literary subjects, though this is held to include manual instruction for
-boys and cookery or needlework for girls. Less stress is laid on
-examination. In the elementary course, payments are made wholly on the
-results of inspection, and in the advanced course partly on inspection
-and partly on examination. The arrangements are extremely complicated,
-but they amount to—(1) an attendance grant on all students who have
-attended a minimum number of times; (2) a variable grant on each
-student; (3) grants for practical work; (4) payments on examination
-results in the case of advanced students of Science and Art; (5)
-payments for manual instruction, cookery, needlework, etc. Such are the
-means of financing a Science School (the term now adopted), and schools
-of this description are often found serving the purpose of continuation
-departments to elementary schools. Since 1897 examinations have also
-been held in the day-time.
-
-A higher grade school which systematically organises its upper
-department is divided into upper and lower school, the former under the
-cognisance of South Kensington, and the latter of the Education
-Department. A four years’ course in the upper school usually leads to
-matriculation. But although they are in a sense two distinct schools,
-they fit into each other as the primary and grammar schools do in
-America. The methods are the same in both, the organisation similar, and
-children pass from one to the other without that breach of continuity
-which makes the transition from the elementary to the high school so
-sudden, and often so unprofitable. It is this continuity which conduces
-so largely to the success of the higher grade schools, and accounts for
-the extraordinary rapidity of their growth. As many as seven or eight
-hundred pupils have been known to enter one of these schools on the
-opening day; three hundred of these had free places, the rest paid small
-fees.
-
-There are at present in England 169 Schools of Science, with an
-attendance of 20,879. What proportion of these are girls it is
-impossible to ascertain. A large proportion of these science departments
-are in higher grade schools. Although a higher grade school is not
-necessarily a science school, while science schools are sometimes found
-as departments of grammar schools or other institutions, the two are
-found in such frequent combination that the terms Higher Grade and
-Science School are not infrequently used as synonymous.
-
-Of these schools the best known is probably the one at Leeds so ably
-directed by Dr. Forsyth. It is established in a huge block of buildings,
-and has two divisions—one for boys and one for girls—with a central
-double staircase opening into long corridors, separated from class-rooms
-by glass partitions. Its class-rooms are large and airy; it is admirably
-equipped with apparatus, etc., and has a good playground for the boys,
-though the girls are restricted to the use of the roof. With its
-chemical laboratory for 120 students, its physical laboratory, large
-lecture-room, workshop, gymnasium, etc., its large staff, and 1800
-pupils, of whom about half are in or over Standard VII., it testifies
-with all the eloquence of material fact to the vigorous development of
-this new educational force. The nature of the work done in these
-propitious surroundings is best described in the Principal’s own
-words:—‘On a basis of elementary education it is intended to superadd a
-system of higher education which, at a moderate charge, will train
-pupils for industrial, manufacturing, and professional pursuits. This
-system of instruction will have its beginnings in the elementary school,
-but will be practically carried out in a three years’ course beyond the
-standards. It will embrace such courses as:—
-
-1. The Classical (or Professional), in which Latin, Mathematics,
-Science, and Drawing form the chief subjects.
-
-2. The Modern (or Mercantile), in which French or German, Commercial
-Geography, Mathematics, Science, and Drawing will receive most
-attention.
-
-3. The Scientific (or Technical), in which Mathematics, Science, and
-Drawing form the leading subjects.
-
-A school of this size can, of course, be broken up into a number of
-separate departments, since these numbers would, in any case,
-necessitate parallel classes, and the work of the upper school is
-greatly facilitated by carrying down such subjects as Latin, French, and
-Elementary Science as low as the fifth standard. This school takes
-pupils from the second standard. The fee throughout is 9d. a week. It
-contains a very important Organised Science department, but this only
-represents part of the work of the school. The curriculum of the girls
-differs but slightly from that of the boys. They take cookery and
-similar subjects instead of manual instruction, and calisthenics instead
-of gymnastics. At one time they were allowed to substitute botany for
-some of the mathematics, apparently with excellent results.
-
-Similar schools, though not quite so large, are in existence at
-Manchester, Cardiff, Gateshead, etc.—in fact, almost every large town in
-England now has, at least, one school of this kind. At Leeds boys and
-girls are separated in the standards, but work together in the upper
-school, where the proportion of girls is very small. At Cardiff the two
-schools are distinct and under different heads, but the highest
-(matriculation) class is mixed. The plan of putting boys and girls
-together under the headmaster in the upper school appears to be gaining
-ground. This seems a mistake, since in schools of this kind the needs of
-boys and girls are of necessity very different. As far as boys are
-concerned, the continuation school of the working classes is bound, in
-fulfilment of its twofold function, ‘to carry on education beyond the
-elementary stage without breach of continuity, and to fit children for
-their future occupation’; to lay the chief stress on science, mechanical
-drawing, and similar subjects, which may help the future artisan to take
-a higher place in his trade. For girls the position is different. In
-fact, science schools were never meant for them, but they gradually
-gained admittance for want of a corresponding school of their own. Some
-persons think it a good course for intending teachers; for the general
-run of girls it cannot be considered suitable. The most crying need for
-them just now seems complete separation from the boys’ department, and
-some other scheme than that of science examinations for purposes of
-financing. A girls’ continuation school can hardly be a place for
-specialising. With due allowance for all possible outlets for feminine
-energy, it still remains a fact that the great mass of women are likely
-to lead a more or less domestic life, and the special training for what
-has been called the trade of ‘home-making’ does not necessitate a four
-years’ course of arduous study. A girl’s future, too, is harder to
-anticipate. She may marry and keep house, or she may work for her
-living, or she may do both, either successively or simultaneously. What
-she needs is good all-round training; if along with this she can get
-some good practical and theoretical instruction in domestic economy so
-much the better. But cooking and washing must not absorb as much time as
-boys give to chemistry and physics, else we run the risk of disgusting
-our girls for ever with household work. It is absurd to confound a
-domestic art with a theoretical and practical science, for it can only
-to a very limited degree replace mental training. This a girl can get
-from a variety of studies. The more general her curriculum, the better
-will she be prepared for the very miscellaneous demands of her after
-life. A certain number will doubtless pass through the intermediate
-school to the university college, but this may be done without excessive
-specialisation, and the number who remain long enough to make use of
-such opportunities is likely to be much smaller in the case of girls
-than boys. If a fair proportion stay for two years after the seventh
-standard, we should be well satisfied. If the parents have made
-sacrifices in order to keep them at school till fifteen, it is time for
-the majority at any rate to be apprenticed for their future work, or
-make a place for themselves in their own homes. A girl’s preparation for
-life is not entirely to be sought at school; matriculation is not an end
-in itself, and a girl who has not sufficient ability to win a
-scholarship to a secondary school, or a special aptitude for teaching,
-will do better to turn her attention to more lucrative fields of manual
-or commercial work. The school that, failing to recognise this,
-endeavours to drive all its pupils through the same examination mill is
-neglecting part of its duty, and taking too narrow a view of education.
-A two years’ course is what the majority of girls need to fill the
-interval between the seventh standard and the age of apprenticeship. If
-we could give this to all, and something more to the few, the State
-would not be neglecting its daughters.
-
-Since under present circumstances these schools cannot be worked without
-some help from South Kensington, various experiments are being tried in
-organisation, to enable a school to earn some grant and yet pay more
-regard to the needs of girls than is usually done in higher grade
-schools. Some adopt the plan of Science Classes instead of Science
-Schools, registering for examination purposes the classes in science,
-drawing, etc., without offering up the thirteen obligatory hours on the
-altar of money earning. Unfortunately this plan is less advantageous
-from the pecuniary standpoint, and many a schoolmistress will declare
-with a sigh that there is nothing for it but to resort to the Science
-School. It is not so good for the girls, but it pays better.
-
-Some day, before too long, a Secondary Education Act may enable us to
-change all that. Meantime we must give to South Kensington the honour of
-stepping in when education was languishing for want of funds, and
-helping us to build the upper story for our board school boys and girls.
-This department, like the county councils which administer the Technical
-Instruction Acts, has no power to subsidise subjects outside its own
-lawful purlieus, nor can it, while we lack a recognised educational
-authority, award its money grants by other means than inspection and
-examination. Thus the intermediate school is being forced through the
-mill of ‘payment by results,’ from which the elementary school has at
-last escaped. Perhaps this was a necessary stage for both to pass
-through; and though some victims fell by the way and there was some
-injustice done, yet it served to establish the general standard of
-efficiency which has made the institution of more liberal methods in
-board schools possible. Similarly the stern South Kensington Department
-may help to establish a better system of science teaching through its
-careful inspection and insistence on practical work, and it may
-certainly claim to have ‘succeeded in doing what no other system could
-have done, carrying science instruction all over the country without
-ever raising any sectarian difficulty of any kind.’[18] The county
-councils and the Science and Art Department have become our most
-important educational authorities, for the very simple reason that they
-alone have money at their disposal. Both are limited in their operations
-in a manner that forces them to be unjust to some most important
-branches of study. Legislation can and must alter this in the immediate
-future. Meantime the result is to emphasise a class distinction between
-literary and scientific schools. In making science the distinctive mark
-of the lower-class school, the Department has brought about the somewhat
-anomalous result of degrading in the public estimation those very
-studies which it designed to elevate. An attempt is now being made to
-improve the prestige of the science school by raising the income limit
-to £500, in accordance with the new income-tax regulations, and
-including among schools acknowledged by the Department those ‘managed by
-a public company in the articles of association of which provision is
-made that no dividend shall be paid exceeding five per cent.’ Under this
-heading come the greater part of our best girls’ schools, and this
-regulation would place it in the power of the governors of these to turn
-a part of their school into a Science School, or to register separate
-classes with a view to examination and grant-earning. It would be a
-convenient way of adding to their income, but whether it is desirable to
-complicate the harmonious working of a high school by a plan of dual
-control and a very exacting system of outside inspection and examination
-seems very doubtful. Should it ever be largely adopted the chief gainers
-would probably be the private schools, which would alone be left free to
-take a wide view of the present and future needs of their pupils. There
-would be a curious irony in such an outcome of all the efforts to
-improve girls’ education by making it a public concern; but as long as
-there is no compulsion beyond the elementary stage, we may always reckon
-on a healthy reaction and a revolt against excessive red-tape. Britons
-never will be slaves, not even to a Department which helps them to
-educate their children more cheaply.
-
-While the higher grade school is designed to give more advanced
-instruction to those children from the elementary schools who can afford
-to postpone their working life till fifteen or later, it has also become
-necessary to do something for those whose occupations will not allow of
-continued day-time instruction. The Evening Continuation schools are
-intended to supply this want. The original night-school of olden time
-was one where the unlettered rustic or mechanic came to spell out his
-primer and laboriously manufacture his pot-hooks. Though election
-statistics show that the absolutely illiterate voter is gradually
-vanishing from the scenes, his complete extinction cannot be far off,
-and in catering for after-instruction the amount of schooling
-represented by three standards may as a rule be assumed. But in early
-days the school boards had to cater for a very ignorant class of evening
-pupils, and the work of the continuation schools was to a great extent
-parallel with that of the day-schools. For many years the codes insisted
-that pupils in night-schools earning grants should undergo examinations
-in the three elementary subjects—reading, writing, arithmetic. As the
-numbers who passed through the day-schools increased there was a
-corresponding diminution in evening attendances, and it became clear
-that the proper use of the evening-school was as a place of more
-advanced instruction. Accordingly in the 1890 Code the clause, that
-elementary education should be the principal part of the education there
-given, was omitted. In 1893 Evening Continuation schools received fresh
-stimulus and importance from an entirely new Code dealing with them
-separately. Its declared aim was to give ‘freedom to managers in the
-organisation of their schools’ by offering a wide choice of subjects
-with suggested syllabuses in some subjects. The aims of these schools
-were now declared to be twofold:—(1) to supply defects in early
-elementary instruction; (2) to prolong the general education of the
-scholar, and combine with it some form of interesting employment.
-
-The effect of this new Code was remarkable. The total number of scholars
-on evening-school registers increased from 115,000 in 1892–1893 to
-266,000 in 1893–1894. No less important was the change in the character
-of the work. To a great extent it has become secondary, although primary
-instruction is still necessary for many pupils, who are removed early
-from the day-school and have spent the interval in purely mechanical
-occupations.
-
-Evening-schools have to contend against several obstacles. Chief among
-them is the diminished fitness for receiving instruction after the
-fatigues of the day’s work. This seems to vary with different persons,
-and to be largely a matter of temperament, sometimes of habit. The
-majority of persons certainly work better in the day-time. Another
-difficulty is the irregular attendance due to the absence of compulsion
-and the lack of special inducements. Nothing but the intrinsic
-attractiveness of the class will induce most pupils to study any other
-subject than those practical ones, like shorthand, mathematics, etc.,
-which may help them to earn a better living. The framers of the Code,
-recognising this, suggested the introduction of popular elements in the
-shape of ‘lantern illustrations, music, manual work, discussion of some
-book which has been read by the class, field naturalist or sketching
-clubs, gymnastics or other employments of a more or less recreative
-character.’ ‘For many of these purposes grants cannot be given, but
-provided that the managers take care that at least one hour at each
-meeting is devoted to the teaching of the subjects mentioned in Article
-2 of this Code, and that the instruction is systematic and thorough,
-every arrangement for making the school attractive should be carefully
-considered.’
-
-The subjects recognised by the Code range from the elementary ones,
-practically the three R’s, over languages and sciences, commercial and
-miscellaneous subjects, drawing, domestic economy, cookery, laundry work
-and dairy-work, and needlework. Indeed, it would be hard to find a
-subject not included, always excepting literature, that step-daughter of
-English schools. Even this is now being taught under the London Board.
-
-The scientific and technical subjects bring the schools into competition
-with technical institutes, with the result that in some towns there is
-an undue rivalry between the various educational agencies. To obviate
-this, the Science and Art Department has drawn up a new regulation,
-recognising an organisation for the promotion of secondary education in
-any county or county borough in England as the local authority for
-administering the Science and Art grants in its own district. As many
-towns other than county boroughs have classes working for the grants of
-the Department, this arrangement is only partially helpful, and there is
-still much undue rivalry. Where this prevails it usually falls to the
-lot of the School Board to attract the younger and more casual students,
-a class that is not altogether welcome at the more serious Institute.
-
-Hitherto the work of the evening-school has been of necessity more or
-less desultory; and of the two agencies for prolonging the education of
-our working-class children, the higher grade school seems as yet to
-answer best. That the other plan has possibilities is proved by the
-example of Germany and the success of our own Polytechnic classes. A
-definite place for the evening-school may yet be found in our system.
-Meantime the school boards hold out the opportunities and invite, though
-they cannot compel, the multitude to come in. The improvement in the
-day-school will give a fresh impetus to the evening-school. This much at
-least it is safe to prophesy.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI
- THE INTERMEDIATE SCHOOLS OF WALES
-
-
-A land of mountains seems to be a land of ideals. Separated by the
-elementary forces of nature from many of the currents of life that flow
-beyond it, thrown on itself, its own resources and its past, it
-cherishes its individuality with a fervour unknown to the people of a
-plain. Even ruthless modernity, with its complex train systems and
-mountain-borings, serves but to invade its privacy, not to change its
-character. Patriotism is stronger, national feeling more tenacious, the
-practical side of life has man less firmly in its grip. The Welsh
-people, with their proud claim to represent the original inhabitants of
-the island, their long roll of story and legend, their ‘estranging’
-language, incomprehensible a few miles across the border, are still a
-race apart. Neither Saxon nor Norman, legislation nor intercourse, has
-ever been able to degrade them into a mere appanage of the English
-nation.
-
-Among the ideals long cherished here in vain by all classes, was that of
-a national system of education. It would not be fair to describe the
-country which produced the sweetest and best-trained singers in the
-United Kingdom, and could organise and carry out such elaborate musical
-and artistic competitions as those of the Eisteddfodd, as wholly
-uneducated, and yet until very recently it was undoubtedly lacking in
-schools and colleges. Like England, it benefited by the Education Act of
-1870, which brought instruction to the children of the wage-earners, but
-it was the class above these, the professional and commercial, whose
-means or whose patriotism forbade their sending their sons and daughters
-to England, that felt the deficiency most keenly. Drawn into the stir,
-which in England followed on 1870, Wales began to move on her own lines;
-numerous educational societies were started, conferences held, and every
-effort made to fan the feeble spark till it should have strength enough
-to kindle public opinion as well as private enthusiasm. The country was
-too poor to supply its own needs by voluntary effort. For that very
-reason it offered a useful field for experiment. Vested interests were
-not numerous; there were a few grammar schools for boys; but for girls
-only three endowed schools, and one proprietary, belonging to the Girls’
-Public Day-School Company. Private schools, mostly inefficient, filled
-some of the gaps, the rest remained empty.
-
-The last five years have wrought a transformation. Throughout the length
-and breadth of Wales, whether in large towns or small, there may be seen
-in a conspicuous spot, looking down on the place from some hill-top hard
-by, a grey stone building, which a large board informs us is the local
-County School. The pride with which the inhabitants point it out recalls
-American enthusiasm; to many it is the chief sight of the place. Here is
-the goal on which their hopes have been set for years; these school
-buildings testify to attainment. ‘_O fortunati quorum jam mœnia
-surgunt_,’ we are tempted to exclaim.
-
-This transformation has been brought about by the Welsh Intermediate
-Education Act of 1889, itself the outcome of that same departmental
-committee which recommended the establishment of a Welsh university. Its
-financial contribution, a half-penny rate, and a Treasury grant of
-corresponding amount, would in itself have been too meagre to produce
-much result, but when in the following year the Local Customs and Excise
-Act was passed, it contained a clause permitting Wales to use its share
-of the money for purposes of Intermediate as well as Technical
-instruction. In this way the public resources, _i.e._ the rate, the
-Treasury grant, and the technical money, could be administered in one
-fund, and for the general purpose of education, with no express
-exclusion of literature or culture. The tiresome restrictions, the
-overlapping of authorities, from which we are still suffering in
-England, were never to be introduced into Wales; its very poverty proved
-its salvation; there was a _tabula rasa_ on which no characters had been
-as yet inscribed. Both on account of its own needs, and as an untried
-field for operation, Wales was chosen as suitable ground for an
-experiment in secondary education, at the very moment when the
-institution of a fresh educational authority in England came to
-complicate existing conditions yet further.
-
-It is an accusation often brought against English education, that we
-have no system which looks well on paper. This cannot be said of Wales.
-The system there is perfectly simple. It applies to the whole country,
-and to girls and boys alike. The money is raised from three sources:—
-
-1. A half-penny rate—the County contribution.
-
-2. A Treasury grant, equal to the amount produced by the rate—the
-Treasury contribution.
-
-3. The local share of the money from the Customs and Excise Act—the
-Exchequer contribution.
-
-The educational unit is the county, and the governing body consists
-partly of members of the county council, representing the separate
-school districts, partly of members chosen by school boards, university
-colleges, etc. A very few are co-opted. Each school also has its own
-body of managers, chosen in somewhat similar fashion from local bodies,
-while the county council appoints one of the members sent up to it from
-each district to be its own representative on that particular governing
-body. The duties of the managers are chiefly confined to carrying out
-the provisions of schemes, and promoting healthy local interest in the
-school, for they have little power of initiative, and not always even
-the choice of a headmaster. All matters of essential importance, _e.g._
-whether the schools shall be separate for boys and girls, or mixed, the
-subjects of instruction, the salary of the headmaster, the limits within
-which fees may be charged, and the proportion of scholarships to be
-awarded, are laid down in advance in the county scheme, which can only
-be altered by appeal to the Charity Commissioners. The action of both
-county and district bodies is therefore confined within very narrow
-limits, too narrow, in fact, considering the experimental stage of the
-schools, and the unwisdom of crystallising initial mistakes into
-permanent form.
-
-These schemes were drawn up, subject to the approval of the Charity
-Commissioners, by the Joint Education Committees, which received their
-authority directly from the Act. They consisted in each case of five
-persons, three nominees of the county council, and two persons ‘well
-acquainted with the condition of Wales and the wants of the people.’
-Though the interests of girls as well as boys had to be considered, few
-if any women seem to have been on these committees, and it is difficult
-not to connect this omission with the injustice with which they have, in
-many cases, been treated. This was hardly intentional, but it should
-have been possible to negative at the outset every proposal for making a
-girls’ school a mere subordinate department of the boys.’ These
-committees were only temporary, to exist until the schemes could be
-floated, and the control handed over to the county governing bodies. But
-they led to the formation of a permanent board, not contemplated by the
-Act. Frequent meetings between groups of these committees, with a view
-to promoting uniformity of action, led to a series of general
-conferences at Shrewsbury, which, though not in Wales, is the most
-conveniently accessible point from north and south. At a series of
-meetings held here, it was decided to establish a central body, and call
-upon the Treasury to acknowledge it as the central authority for
-inspection and examination, and for the payment of the Government grant
-to the various counties. After the usual negotiations and delays, a
-scheme establishing the Board was approved by the Charity Commissioners,
-and became law in 1895. In this informal manner originated what has
-practically become the secondary education authority for Wales.
-
-The Board consists of eighty members, representative of various local
-and educational bodies: the Principals of the three Welsh colleges,
-twenty-one representatives of county councils, twenty-six of county
-governing bodies, five of headmasters and mistresses of intermediate
-schools, five of certificated teachers in public elementary schools,
-three of councils of university colleges, three of the senates, two of
-Jesus College, Oxford, six of the court of the University of Wales, and
-six co-optative members, three of whom must be women. The bulk of the
-work devolves on the executive committee of fifteen.
-
-The establishment of this Central Board marks the completion of the
-Welsh secondary system. It furnishes a link between all the counties and
-schools, and exercises over these that general supervision which, in the
-initial stages, had devolved on the Charity Commissioners. Since the
-subjects to be taught had been prescribed by the Act generally, and by
-the schemes specially, the duties of the Central Board were not so much
-to lay down a scheme of studies, as to see that the course already
-prescribed was duly followed, that each school was in a state of general
-and educational efficiency, and that the provisions of the schemes were
-observed. For these purposes they arranged a system of inspection and
-examination. The Act had defined intermediate education as ‘a course of
-education which does not consist chiefly of elementary instruction in
-reading, writing, and arithmetic, but which includes instruction in
-Latin, Greek, the Welsh and English language and literature, modern
-languages, mathematics, natural and applied science, or in some of such
-studies, and generally in the higher branches of knowledge,’ and the
-schemes fixed more precisely which of these were to be in each case
-compulsory. The Glamorgan scheme, which is in many respects typical,
-prescribes geography, history, English grammar, composition, and
-literature, drawing, mathematics, Latin, at least one modern language,
-natural science, vocal music, drill or other physical exercise, and such
-other scientific or technical subjects, including shorthand, as the
-school managers may determine. Scripture is not obligatory, but if
-included, it must be taught by a member of the staff. Some manual
-instruction must also be offered the boys, and a little cookery to the
-girls, but, as is inevitable, where the programme is already overloaded,
-this side of the work takes a very subordinate place. In all schools
-Welsh must be taught as an optional subject; in a stated few Greek may
-be introduced. But even without these additions, the compulsory
-curriculum is a very heavy one, when it is borne in mind that a large
-proportion of pupils come from the elementary schools, where the girls,
-at any rate, have been hitherto confined to reading, writing,
-arithmetic, and needlework, with possibly a little French and domestic
-economy. Even English history and geography are unfamiliar ground.
-
-The aim of the Welsh Intermediate, as of the English High Schools, is to
-give a liberal education cheaply in day-schools; but there is one
-essential difference between them. While the high school is an organised
-whole, leading the pupils by gentle gradations from the primary
-department to the lower school, and thence on to the upper, the
-intermediate school receives no pupils below the age of ten. Since the
-majority are between twelve and sixteen, they break up naturally into
-two classes, according as they have received their preliminary training
-at a public elementary school or elsewhere. This division is by no means
-so sharply defined in Wales as in England. Wales is both poor and
-democratic, and inclines to the doctrine, familiar in the United States,
-that no stigma should attach to attendance at a school supported out of
-the rates, since the parents do in fact contribute towards the expenses,
-though indirectly. Hence we find a mixture of class in both elementary
-and intermediate schools, which in England would be neither possible nor
-desirable. The omission of the primary department in the new schools is
-in fact deliberate. There is already one kind of school assisted out of
-public funds and accessible to all, and it is therefore not thought
-necessary to subsidise primary instruction in another set of
-institutions. The intermediate school is so constituted as to fit
-straight on to the elementary, and in each school a certain proportion
-of scholarships must fall to elementary pupils. In accordance with the
-opinion of many authorities that the transplanting from an elementary to
-a secondary school, always a difficult process, should not take place
-too late, the admission age and requirements are put low, and the
-intermediate school is supposed to branch off from the elementary at
-about the fifth standard. In Wales, where poverty and dearth of
-educational opportunities have induced many persons of middle rank to
-make use of the free public schools, the difference between the two sets
-of pupils is by no means so strongly marked as it would be in England,
-but even here schools have two different characters, according as one or
-the other of these elements predominates. In a district where the
-population is largely industrial, the lowest possible tuition fee is
-chosen, and the largest possible amount of scholarships given to
-elementary pupils. Thus one scheme requires that not less than ten per
-cent. and not more than thirty per cent. of the pupils in each school,
-shall hold scholarships, and at least half of the number awarded shall
-go to pupils from public elementary schools, but there is nothing to
-prevent the whole number from being so given. In fact, several schools
-have more scholarships than candidates for them. According, therefore,
-to the interpretation of the clause adopted, the elementary scholars in
-a school of a hundred may vary from five—the minimum, to thirty—the
-maximum. In the latter class of school, the fees are usually low enough
-to attract paying pupils from the elementary schools; hence these
-furnish a majority of the pupils, and the school becomes a continuation,
-often a finishing-school for elementary pupils, many of whom stay one
-year, sometimes only a term or two, to get what prestige they can from
-attendance at a school of a higher grade than the one to which they have
-been accustomed. Those that remain for two years or longer usually do
-well, if their health is strong enough to bear the severe strain.
-
-The other classification into separate and mixed schools is apt to
-coincide with this distinction. Of the eighty-four schools now in
-existence, there are twenty for boys and twenty for girls, while the
-remaining forty-four are mixed. This wholesale adoption of a principle
-popular in the United States, but regarded hitherto askance by England,
-in common with other European countries, is due, as in Scotland, to the
-force of necessity. It is not as a counsel of perfection, but as a means
-of economy, that the plan has been adopted in Wales. In a country
-intersected by mountains, and inadequately supplied with means of
-locomotion, where distances should, as in Switzerland, be counted by
-hours and not by miles, access to places that look near enough on the
-map is often exceedingly difficult; and it is useless to plant a large
-school-building in a central district in the hope of drawing in pupils
-from a radius of a few miles. The alternative lay between frequent small
-day-schools and a liberal sprinkling of boarding-schools. The former
-carried the day, on the ground that they were more equitable to
-ratepayers, and more democratic. In almost every county, the committee
-adopted the more expensive and troublesome plan of establishing and
-maintaining a large number of small schools, and most of the
-difficulties with which Welsh intermediate education has to contend are
-due to that decision. In some places there are schools of forty, or even
-less, difficult to finance and to organise. These might work for a year
-or two, but as pupils stayed on and began to range from the Fifth
-Standard scholar at one end to the Matriculation student at the other,
-with all the varying intermediate grades, failure became inevitable. One
-remedy in the case of those small schools which were not rich enough to
-provide a liberal staff for small classes, was to arrange from the first
-to mix the boys and girls, thus facilitating the grading by increasing
-the numbers in each class. In this way better results could be obtained
-with small means, at any rate as far as class lists and examination
-statistics were concerned.
-
-Owing to the difficulties of grading, this system is being gradually
-introduced in many places where it was not originally contemplated; but
-the typical Welsh school, according to the first plan, was the dual.
-This was to consist of two distinct schools, one for boys and one for
-girls, built side by side, in such a way that they might have assembly
-hall, gymnasium, laboratory, etc., in common, and by the economy thus
-effected in site, buildings, apparatus, etc., it was hoped that the
-efficiency of small schools would be maintained. Unfortunately, the
-advocates of this system went a step further, and arranged to complete
-their economies by appointing a single head for both schools, to take
-the superintendence of both boys and girls. Obviously this head must be
-a man. Though some schemes contain the words ‘headmaster or
-head-mistress,’ it is at once explained to feminine applicants that the
-words are a mere matter of form. Indeed, it would be far better to omit
-them. The most ardent advocates of women’s equality would hardly propose
-to give a mistress full authority over boys of twelve to seventeen.
-However excellent feminine influence may be in a boys’ school, no one
-wants to see it supreme there. Though paramount masculine influence in a
-girls’ school is anything but desirable, it seemed the lesser of two
-evils; and both custom and convenience pointed to the selection of a
-master. This initial injustice paved the way for many others. Though
-most schools appoint a senior mistress, who is supposed to have a
-general control over the girls, it is out of the managers’ power, when
-once they have made the headmaster supreme, to make her position one of
-any authority. Like all the rest, she is appointed by the headmaster;
-she has no place in the scheme, nor status in the school, except what
-may be given her by courtesy. She has no voice in choosing her
-assistants, nor in making the time-table; her position is often inferior
-to that of a second mistress in an English high school. This kind of
-dual school was a new experiment, and it cannot be pronounced a
-successful one. Where the two departments were kept distinct, except for
-an occasional interchange of teachers, the real difficulties of
-classification were not obviated; and one set of managers after another
-took the final step, availing themselves of the permission accorded in
-most schemes, to ‘make arrangements for boys and girls being taught
-together in all or any of the classes.’ The forms are then mixed
-throughout, and assigned in turn to men and women teachers. Here the
-senior mistress loses even her semblance of authority, and the school is
-under the supreme and undisturbed sway of the headmaster. What number of
-schools have already taken this final step is nowhere definitely stated,
-but, as far as can be ascertained, it appears to be a majority. It is in
-fact the logical outcome of the dual plan, and since the tendency of the
-change is to diminish the proportion of girls, we may look upon these
-schools as organised for boys, but admitting girls as well.
-
-The whole question of co-education is so exceedingly difficult that it
-is unfortunate that Welsh educationalists should have been compelled to
-add it to the number of complex problems with which they had already to
-deal. The small schools have necessitated this among other problems. Its
-warmest advocates do not deny that it makes discipline more difficult:
-constant supervision becomes necessary; boys and girls have to be kept
-apart out of class, and an attempt, usually doomed to failure, is made
-in some schools to control the walk home. The freer intercourse, the
-element of trust, and the bright out-of-school life, which in England
-have come to be considered as important a part of a secondary school as
-the Mathematics or Latin taught there, have little chance of development
-in the mixed school. That valuable moral impetus given by the direct and
-constant intercourse between the master and boys, mistress and girls, is
-missing. Thus they lose what is often the best effect of school life
-upon our boys and girls: the schools become places of mere instruction,
-not education; they are but elementary schools with advanced subjects in
-the curriculum; rivals, and not always successful ones, of the higher
-grade. Of course this is not solely due to the co-education scheme, but
-it has tended further to emphasise the social difference between the two
-classes of schools, and also to put women at a disadvantage in Welsh
-education, which could hardly have been contemplated by the original
-promoters. Yet now that this arrangement has been fixed by scheme and
-made fast by yards of red-tape, it must remain as it is, until some
-energetic band of reformers shall arise determined to end it. But that
-cannot be as yet.
-
-The second class, the distinct schools for boys and girls, resemble our
-English high schools; in fact Swansea, one of the most successful, was
-actually founded by the Girls’ Public Day-School Company, and taken over
-by the Intermediate Board. The money supplied by the county grant makes
-up for the diminution of the fees, and the work proceeds with little
-change. Cardiff is also organised on the lines of a high school, with
-the chief intellectual work in the morning, considerable attention to
-games and physical training, and a liberal allowance of teachers. In
-these separate schools the fees range from about £5 to £9, being
-slightly lower than those of the corresponding schools in England. The
-allowance of mistresses to pupils is adequate, the elementary scholars
-are a small proportion, not enough to set the whole tone of the school.
-In the mixed or dual school the fees are usually low, sometimes even as
-little as £2 per annum, scholarships are more numerous, and the
-sprinkling of scholars from other than elementary schools is very small.
-Both kinds of schools doubtless have their use, though their aims are
-very different.
-
-With all these varieties of organisation and character, the schools have
-a unifying influence in the general control of the Central Board, since
-all are subject to its examination and inspection. The latter is
-undertaken by the Chief Inspector, who visits each school in the course
-of the year, and reports specially on the following heads—
-
-1. Character, suitability, and capacity of school premises.
-
-2. School furniture and apparatus.
-
-3. Facilities for recreation and physical training.
-
-4. The relation between the administration of schools and the schemes
-under which they are established.
-
-5. The organisation of classes.
-
-6. The school discipline.
-
-7. Courses of instruction.
-
-If a school prove deficient in any of these respects, the managers
-receive a warning from the Board that future negligence will entail a
-diminution of the grant. This is a useful check, and a form of payment
-by result which can only do good, for it counteracts that uneconomical
-form of economy, which declines to spend on proper building and
-apparatus and salaries. An element of control which requires more
-careful exercise is the threat of a diminished grant, should a school
-fail to do well in the annual examination. This, which is conducted by
-the Central Board, was in the first place inspectional, and was meant to
-give the schools the necessary outside impulse. In order to carry out
-the principle of letting the examination follow the teaching instead of
-the teaching the examination, each school was invited to send up its own
-syllabus of work done, but this led to so much needless expense, since
-there were as many as fifty-three Latin papers set in one year, that
-some kind of uniformity became indispensable. The present regulations
-prescribe that only pupils who have been a full year in a school shall
-be presented for the written examination, and in at least five subjects.
-Forms which do not take papers are examined orally in one or other of
-the subjects studied during the school year. The scheme bears some
-resemblance to the school examinations of the Joint Board, but a new
-feature is the test in languages of ‘ability to read fluently,
-intelligently, and correctly, passages chosen from prepared and
-unprepared texts.’ The papers set are of varying grades of difficulty,
-and the schools choose which they will take. Thus in Latin there were
-seven papers set in 1898, of which the fourth is supposed to be
-equivalent to the standard of the Welsh Matriculation. Not many pupils
-are likely to go beyond this, since the schools are distinctly
-preparatory to the university colleges, which a matriculated pupil can
-enter. If this standard should in a few years be reached by a fair
-proportion of pupils in each school, the intermediate system can claim
-to be successful, for it will be accomplishing its avowed purpose, to
-carry its pupils from the Fifth Standard to the Constituent College of
-the University of Wales. For pupils who aim at the Welsh Matriculation
-these annual tests should be sufficient, but experience shows that there
-is a tendency to aim at results earlier in the school career; and the
-chaos of external examinations, from which many English schools are not
-yet completely emancipated, should be a warning to Wales to be wise in
-time, and from the beginning concentrate efforts on the same lines. This
-seems to be best effected by following the example of the Joint Board,
-and combining school examinations with the awarding of certificates. A
-scheme on these lines is now in course of preparation, and will probably
-come into operation in 1899. The subjects of the general examination are
-to be arranged in groups: _A._ Scripture and English; _B._ Mathematics;
-_C._ Languages; _D._ Science; _E._ Practical subjects. Within certain
-limits a choice is allowed from these five groups. Junior and senior
-certificates are to be awarded on papers of different grades of
-difficulty. The senior standard is to be carefully approximated to that
-of Welsh Matriculation, in the hope that the University may be willing
-to accept it as an equivalent. There should not be much difficulty about
-this, since the University Court is represented on the Central Board,
-and the Board in its turn on the Court, so that very close and
-sympathetic relations are maintained between the two bodies that have
-charge of the educational interests of the country. The next step would
-be to win acknowledgment for it as a substitute for the Medical and
-other preliminaries, and a further stage would be an Honours grade that
-might replace the higher certificate of the Joint Board as an admission
-examination to English colleges, and a substitute for the Previous and
-Responsions. Even this might in time be attained, and the Welsh Board
-would then have fulfilled its mission of making one school stage lead
-harmoniously and naturally to the next.
-
-Such is the scheme as it presents itself to the minds of the promoters,
-who look far away beyond the present troubles of small schools,
-irregular attendance, and inadequate funds, and see in the distant
-future the glorious fabric of their dreams: one system of schools for
-both boys and girls, leading them on step by step till they are ready to
-enter their own colleges, and thence, if more adventurously inclined,
-cross the border and ask the hospitality of the ancient English
-universities. The ladder in its widest acceptation is to be set up in
-Wales, so close to the home of every boy and girl that none may plead
-inaccessibility as an excuse for the failure to mount. And this system
-is to be worked by popular bodies, touching at one end the local
-schoolboard, at the other the university colleges, so that its
-foundations may be firm and lasting, ‘broad-based upon the people’s
-will.’
-
-Such is the ideal; how far is it reflected by the reality? Of actual
-results it is too soon to speak, since the oldest school is not yet five
-years old, and the numbers in them are so small that the whole
-eighty-four now in existence, including boys and girls, have not
-together as many pupils as the thirty-four schools of the Girls’ Public
-Day-School Company. There were many difficulties to be met. The ground
-was new and unbroken, the meaning of secondary education, except in so
-far as it was expressed by a higher grade school, was hardly understood
-by the mass of the people. Some schools won a too hasty popularity,
-owing to the impression that they were ‘finishing’ institutions for
-elementary scholars, hence the one-year or one-term pupils of whom so
-much has been heard. This mistaken notion will be but slowly dispelled,
-and it is not impossible that in a few years’ time, should the Central
-Board prove successful in its attempts to ‘level up,’ the number of
-schools may prove too large for the demand. Many boys and girls who must
-begin to prepare for their life work at fourteen or fifteen would be
-better off in a higher grade school than struggling to find their depth
-in these new waters. The elimination of these would prove no serious
-loss, and it would clear the ground for a fairer treatment of those
-pupils, whether from elementary or other schools, who are really able to
-profit by secondary education. The Welsh system cannot be considered
-complete while so many of the well-to-do and educated classes hold
-aloof, helping, it is true, with money and sympathy, but sending their
-children to be educated across the border. Who shall blame them for not
-offering up their own boys and girls as _corpora vilia_? Yet, until the
-schools can offer something to such pupils as well, they must remain
-one-sided.
-
-Still, with all its flaws, and they are not a few, the system has
-something to teach England. The love of knowledge, noted even in the
-days of darkness, the willingness to make sacrifices, evinced by gifts
-of land and money to new schools, the keen interest in their welfare
-felt by all grades of the community, and the absence of that class
-jealousy which tends to check the spread of popular education in
-England—all these we should do well to note, and copy if we can. Then we
-may be prepared to thank Wales for teaching us both what to do and what
-to avoid.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII
- 1898
-
-
-Such is in brief the story of the last half-century, 1848 to 1898.
-Looking back on what is in the main a line of progress, there seems now
-and then a check, here and there a retrograde movement under the guise
-of a new discovery. All this is inevitable, since we are but human. But
-taking the period as a whole, none can doubt that it marks a very real
-advance; and this end of a century seems a fitting time to pause and
-rest on our oars, while we survey the breakers through which we have
-passed; then once more set forth on our onward path, assured that there
-can be nothing worse before us than what is already behind.
-
-It is not only for girls’ education that the revival has come. A general
-awakening has passed over the country: men and women, boys and girls,
-rich and poor, the lady of leisure and the hard-working mechanic, all
-have had something brought within their reach that formerly belonged
-only to the few. Three years ago these gains were summarised in
-convenient form by the Royal Commission on Secondary Education,
-appointed ‘to consider what are the best methods of establishing a
-well-organised system of secondary education in England, taking into
-account existing deficiencies, and having regard to such local sources
-of revenue from endowments or otherwise as are available, or may be made
-available, for this purpose.’ Even now the country is waiting for
-legislation on the findings of that Commission. When we remember that we
-have really been waiting ever since 1867, we do not feel over-sanguine
-of results; but happily events have since then moved in many directions,
-and the Commission, before proceeding to recommendations for the future,
-was able to draw up a long list of reforms that had already come about
-and changed the whole face of education in England in less than thirty
-years.
-
-First in order of time stands the Endowed Schools Act, which did so much
-for boys, and rescued something from the spoils for the benefit of
-girls. Next came the Elementary Education Act, which brought primary
-instruction within the reach of every boy and girl in the land, and set
-a new machinery in motion destined to change the whole face of the
-country. In 1888 the institution of county councils provided that local
-authority which was to make a system of decentralisation in education
-possible, while the Technical Instruction Acts of 1889 and 1891 and the
-Local Customs and Taxation Act of 1890 at once brought these new powers
-into play, and originated a fresh set of educational institutions in the
-Polytechnics and other similar colleges. Lastly, the Welsh Intermediate
-schools, established by the Act of 1889, were providing an object-lesson
-in the organisation of secondary education.
-
-Besides this public work, the Commission had to take cognisance of the
-enormous changes in the education of girls, due to the wide diffusion of
-High Schools and the admission of women to the Universities. ‘There has
-probably been more change in the condition of the secondary education of
-girls than in any other department of education,’[19] say the
-Commissioners, and they also note that ‘the idea that a girl, like a
-boy, may be fitted by education to earn a livelihood, or, at any rate,
-to be a more useful member of society, has become more widely diffused.’
-Various other changes came under their cognisance: the gradual rise of
-Higher Grade schools, evolving themselves through inherent necessity
-with no impulse and little encouragement from without; the many attempts
-at what has been called Continuative education by means of evening
-classes; the help afforded to large numbers by University Extension; the
-improved status of the teachers; the various colleges established for
-their training, and the many educational societies which have grown into
-powerful forces during the last twenty years. After taking due note of
-all this, they declare that the time has come to weld these various
-organisms into one consistent whole. They anticipate no easy task. ‘The
-ground of secondary education is already almost covered with buildings
-so substantial that the loss to be incurred in clearing it for the
-erection of a new and symmetrical pile cannot be contemplated. Yet these
-existing buildings are so ill-arranged, so ill-connected, and so
-inconvenient, that some scheme of reconstruction seems unavoidable.’[20]
-
-This touches the key of the situation. The reconstruction must at any
-rate begin with adaptation, then the gaps may be filled with new and
-convenient edifices. However much such a plan offends our notions of
-order and logic, we do well to remember that every one of these
-structures, jerry-built though they may be, has grown up out of some
-real need; and before we propose to fit all their tenants into neat
-little model dwellings, it behoves us to be quite sure that such a plan
-would be as satisfactory in the working as it looks on paper. The mere
-fact that of the girls receiving secondary education in England seventy
-per cent., and of the boys thirty-eight per cent., are in private
-schools, often in towns where there are grammar and high schools with
-plenty of empty places, should make the advocates of ruthless innovation
-pause and stay their hand. The public must in the last resort determine
-what it wants, and though demand sometimes follows supply, the opposite
-process is a constant one. However much theorists may inveigh, according
-to their special prejudices, against higher grade or ‘private adventure’
-or any other kind of school, the fact of their successful existence,
-even in the face of rivals, shows that they do supply a want; and the
-only prudent course is to find them a place in our system.
-
-This has been fully recognised by the Commissioners, who wisely suggest
-proceeding on lines similar to those on which elementary education was
-at first organised. The local authority proposed in 1867 can now be
-easily constituted, since we have the county councils to supply a
-nucleus to which educational experts can be added, as is already done on
-some technical instruction committees and in the Welsh county governing
-bodies. The local authority would proceed ‘to inquire how far the
-schools within its area provide secondary instruction adequate in
-quantity and quality to the needs of each part of that area.’ In doing
-this, regard is to be had to proprietary and private as well as endowed
-and other public schools, and the report adds the following significant
-comment: ‘We are far from desiring to see secondary education pass
-wholly under public control, and into the hands of those who are
-practically public servants, as elementary education has done, and we
-believe that where proprietary or private schools are found to be doing
-good work, it would be foolish as well as unfair to try to drive them
-out of the field.’[21] Where the supply of secondary education is
-deficient in any part of the area, the local authority should have power
-to establish new schools.
-
-The functions of these authorities are therefore to fall under four
-heads—
-
-1. The securing a due provision of secondary instruction.
-
-2. The remodelling, where necessary, and supervision of the working of
-endowed (other than non-local) schools and other educational endowments.
-
-3. A watchful survey of the field of secondary education, with the
-object of bringing proprietary and private schools into the general
-educational system, and of endeavouring to encourage and facilitate, so
-far as this can be done by stimulus, by persuasion, and by the offer of
-privileges and advice, any improvements they may be inclined to
-introduce.
-
-4. The administration of such sums, either arising from rates levied
-within the area, or paid over from the National Exchequer, as may be at
-its disposal for the promotion of education.
-
-In this way these local authorities would receive large powers of
-supervision, but comparatively little coercive control, since ‘it is not
-so much by superseding as by aiding and focussing voluntary effort that
-real progress may be made.’
-
-The general guidance and direction of secondary education should be
-committed to a central authority, to include the various departments of
-Government now concerned with it.
-
-Further recommendations are: the consolidation of existing sources of
-revenue into one fund; and a generous scheme of scholarships for the
-poor, in preference to a general lowering of school fees.
-
-These main recommendations, as well as other subordinate ones, seem wise
-and moderate, fair to all classes, and consistent with their professed
-aim, ‘to draw the outlines of a system which shall combine the maximum
-of simplicity with the minimum disturbance of existing arrangements.’ A
-bill drawn up on these lines would probably meet with very general
-acceptation from all classes, except those persons, probably few, who
-are ready to subordinate the general good to their own private fads.
-Unfortunately Parliament has hitherto proved unwilling to give time for
-such a bill. The ill-fated Education Bill of 1896 dealt with secondary
-education as a sort of accessory to primary; and as, unlike the latter,
-it has not yet become a subject for party divisions and acrimonious
-controversy, it is not at present sufficiently interesting to the
-general run of politicians to call forth any special exertions on their
-part. The private bill brought in last session by Colonel Lockwood
-expressed the wishes of a large section of the teaching profession. It
-proposed to form one central educational authority under the Committee
-of the Privy Council on Education, by consolidating powers relating to
-secondary education possessed by the Charity Commissioners, the Science
-and Art Department, and the present Education Department, and to
-establish local secondary education authorities, to consist partly of
-members of the county council and partly of other persons with special
-educational experience. It also proposes registers of efficient schools
-and of persons qualified to teach in them. The ministerial bill
-introduced by the Duke of Devonshire into the House of Lords at the
-fag-end of the session merely proposed to bring together in one office
-the two departments of Science and Art and Education, under the control
-of one permanent secretary, and to create a Board of Education on the
-model of the Board of Trade. To this new department the supervision of
-endowed schools, under schemes framed by the Charity Commissioners, was
-to be transferred. The thorny questions of constitution of local
-authorities, raising of rates, etc., were left untouched. It was not
-proposed to carry the measure, merely to show the country before the
-vacation the lines on which the Ministry were inclined to proceed.
-Thorny as are many of the points under discussion, such as central and
-local authority, amalgamation of existing departments, etc., they are as
-nothing to the real difficulties that must follow when these matters of
-administrative machinery are settled. The inspection and grading of
-schools, the due consideration that must be shown to secondary education
-proper and to that part commonly known as technical, the proper respect
-for existing schools that are good and the ruthless elimination of such
-as are bad—in these lies the true crux of the situation, and under all
-circumstances some part of this work will probably fall to the local
-authorities. An enormous amount of responsibility must devolve on those
-who first take up the arduous task.
-
-One burning question, which ought to be settled for the whole country
-alike, is the relation between the grammar and high schools on the one
-hand, and the elementary schools on the other. Are we to have one upper
-department for both, or two? Some time ago the consensus of opinion
-seemed to be in favour of one; that was on the assumption that the
-proportion of children passing beyond the standards would be a small
-one. Some such idea seems to have been in the mind of the Duke of
-Devonshire when he spoke of ‘a sound system of secondary schools which
-will be open alike to the most promising children of the elementary
-schools and to the middle classes generally.’ But this view rests on the
-assumption that the primary departments of both sets of schools are very
-similar in their curriculum and methods. This is very far from being the
-case. ‘The elementary schools are not, under the present conditions in
-England, the common basis of secondary education, nor, though an
-increasing number of pupils proceed from them to secondary schools, are
-the public elementary schools the sole, nor, indeed, the chief channels
-through which pupils proceed in this country to day or boarding-schools
-of the secondary grades.’[22] The changes that would be necessary in the
-elementary schools would be so numerous and far-reaching, and the
-expense so enormous before they would be able to attract the great mass
-of the middle classes, that no one could seriously propose to abolish
-the primary departments in secondary schools, as long as parents are
-able and willing to pay the school fees. They are a necessity, and would
-have to be supplied by private adventure, as is done at Cardiff and
-other large Welsh towns, if a public system declined to acknowledge
-them. In the interest of what we might call the ‘secondary party,’ the
-primary department of the secondary school must be maintained. On the
-other hand, the teachers in Government schools seem equally unanimous in
-the view that their own special continuation schools are better suited
-to the mass of elementary pupils than the grammar or high school.
-Neither party seems anxious for the fusion, and so long as a liberal
-scheme of scholarships is maintained, it is possible to do full justice
-to those elementary scholars who can look forward to a school life
-sufficiently long to enable them to reach the highest classes of their
-new school. To allow pupils to enter upon an extensive and liberal
-curriculum, who are likely to be removed before its real meaning and
-unity has dawned upon them, is a thing we should never even contemplate,
-were our notions of curricula and grades of schools a little less hazy
-than they are at present in England. The board school child, who is sent
-at the age of thirteen by her proud parents to have a year’s finishing
-at a high school, is typical of the present confusion. There is really
-no more urgent problem before us than a scientific differentiation of
-schools.
-
-Still, whatever course legislation may take on this and other problems,
-whether funds are raised by fresh rate or merely by adding together
-existing sources of income, no matter what are the constitution and
-functions of the local authority, this, at least, we may rely on—the
-interests of girls will not be forgotten. For that we have to thank that
-little band of men and women who have laboured during this last half
-century in the face of prejudice, opposition, and indifference to remove
-the neglect with which England treated one half of her children. This
-much, at least, is established: no future educational legislation will
-omit to provide for women and girls. For this we have a pledge in the
-appointment of women on this last Commission, in their mention in every
-scheme for a new educational institution that now passes through
-Parliament, and their recognition on every new elective body
-constituted.
-
-We have gained, gained immensely. Still, we cannot blind our eyes to
-some evils the good has brought with it. The very acknowledgment of the
-right of girls to as good an education as their brothers has in some
-cases, happily rare, led, under the pretence of equality, to a
-subordination of the girls’ interests. Thus, some of the recent attempts
-to establish joint schools for both sexes, whether on the grounds of
-economy or the fanciful plea of imitating the family life in a large
-school of over a hundred children, does indirectly involve a fresh
-injustice. What the reformers asked for was a share in educational funds
-for girls and a better education for the teachers, that they might be
-qualified to undertake the very highest teaching in girls’ schools. The
-attempts recently made in some schools aided by public money to
-economise by teaching boys and girls together, abolishing the
-head-mistress and putting a headmaster over boys and girls alike, while
-arranging the curriculum and time-table to meet the needs of the boys
-and letting the girls do the best they can with it, is only a revival,
-under a new guise, of the old idea, that girls are not entitled to the
-same consideration as boys. Our modern reformers will not find their
-occupation gone while they have this old prejudice to combat. It is
-unjust to the teachers as well as to the taught. Hitherto it has been
-almost universally acknowledged that teaching was an occupation for
-which women were by nature specially suited. Is it really proposed to
-oust them from all but the lowest ranks, and reserve the prizes, the
-chief inducement to work, for men only? This is what must happen, should
-there be any wide spread of the mixed schools. With the disappearance of
-the head-mistress we should lose much of that moral training which has
-hitherto been regarded in England as no less important than the
-intellectual and physical. We have hitherto prided ourselves on being in
-advance of Germany in employing women to teach the highest classes in
-our girls’ schools. Germany is now beginning to follow suit, and by
-means of special courses at some of the universities and at the
-Victoria-Lyceum, Berlin, some of the best mistresses are being trained
-to take these posts. Surely we in England do not intend, without a
-struggle, to take the retrograde path!
-
-There seems to be another danger imminent, due, perhaps, to the great
-speed with which events have moved. At any rate, we have landed
-ourselves in a dilemma. The educational movement has been parallel with
-many social changes. The fluctuations of business, the lowering of
-interest, and other complex causes which make saving difficult to men
-engaged in business or professions, have added greatly to the number of
-women who must now earn their living. Thirty years ago it was the custom
-to wait till the father’s death closed the parental home, when the
-daughters, untrained to work, unaccustomed to privation, were sent out
-into the world, to seek their bread as best they could. So general was
-this practice even among the more enlightened, that the committee who
-helped to found Queen’s College expressed their belief and hope that
-‘the ranks of that profession (_i.e._ of a governess) will still be
-supplied from those whose minds and tempers have been disciplined in the
-school of adversity, and who are thus best able to form the minds and
-tempers of others.’ We are no longer such stern believers in adversity;
-we now realise that training and earning cannot begin simultaneously,
-and, further, we have learnt that neither for Adam nor for Eve should
-work be accounted a curse. All this has led to a great revolution in
-thought. Work has been made honourable in the eyes of girls. Already at
-school they are encouraged to choose a profession and to take the steps
-that lead to it much as their brothers do. If they marry, the years of
-regular disciplined work prove a helpful training for their new duties;
-if they remain single, they keep a purpose and an aim in life. This
-existence of regular duty, of appointed periods of work and holiday, is
-the easier life; and now that remunerative employment has come to be
-regarded as a privilege and not a stigma, the ranks of women workers are
-fast being overfilled. We have heard much talk of late about _new_
-careers for women; but the very abundance of the talk serves to betray
-the poverty of the land. Of new careers there are few. In some cases it
-only means that the work is transferred from a man to a woman at a lower
-wage. This is no economic gain to either sex. The field should be open
-to both alike, but for equal payment. There are also a considerable
-number of occupations which, if not performed by women, would remain
-undone, or be done less well. Such are nursing, certain branches of
-medical work and of factory and sanitary inspection, some kinds of
-journalism, the teaching of almost all girls and of little boys, to say
-nothing of the wide field of manual and domestic occupations which fall
-specially to the woman’s share. Large fields of philanthropic and social
-work are their own special domain, but these are usually unpaid. There
-is plenty in truth for women to do, but not enough remunerative work ‘to
-go round,’ as the saying is. Happily, the working life of many women is
-short, since marriage or the claims of relations often bring it to a
-premature close, so that the terrible over-supply has not yet made
-itself too keenly felt. As yet the sufferers have been chiefly those of
-the old school who entered the arena unarmed for the fray, and have
-retired to swell the ranks of the ‘necessitous gentlewoman.’ But signs
-are not wanting that even the trained and the capable will soon have to
-suffer. Worst of all is the pressure in the teaching profession. The
-delight of the enthusiast and the child-lover, it is also,
-unfortunately, the refuge of the destitute and the one resource of the
-unimaginative. The girl who has diligently and successfully pursued her
-own studies without ever learning to take an initiative or to turn out
-of an appointed groove can contemplate no other way of spending her life
-than in passing on to others the knowledge she has herself acquired. If
-hers is a rich home, salary is no particular object. So she ruthlessly
-spoils the market for her poorer sisters, and takes the bread from
-another woman whose very existence depends on her earnings. Meantime the
-work in the home, among acquaintances, the poor, the friendless, the
-native town, those endless and varied fields of woman’s labour, remains
-undone. In preaching to our girls the nobility of work, some of us have
-forgotten to speak of its very highest branches. All honour to those
-noble women like Miss Clough who never did forget it!
-
-This rush of all women in the same direction, this excessive
-individualism which has given rise to the cant phrase, ‘living one’s own
-life,’ is surely a stage through which we have to pass, but which need
-not remain permanently with us. Much may be done by mistresses at school
-to revive the dignity of home life, to check the untrue notion in the
-girls’ mind that no work is worthy of the name unless it is paid for in
-coin of the realm. Unpaid service is the pride of Englishmen; why should
-it not be honoured by Englishwomen? Still, for most service money is the
-fitting reward, and some measure of independence belongs by right to
-every adult, whether man or woman. Why do not more parents try to make
-life at home a worthy substitute for a professional career? Why not pay
-the daughter a fair salary for services rendered, that shall make her as
-independent in the matter of pocket-money and holidays as her college
-friend who is teaching or writing? Just as important is a certain
-liberty of action and a little room, no matter how small, where she can
-see her friends undisturbed and have things her own way. Those persons
-who are rich enough to leave their daughter a fair income at their death
-can surely afford to allow her these little indulgences in their
-lifetime. If she is some day to be thrown on the world penniless or with
-a mere pittance, then the sooner she sets to work the better. Whenever
-it is possible, parents should make up their minds, before a girl leaves
-school, what sum of money can be laid aside for her, either for
-immediate professional training or with a view to an income in the
-future. It is reasonable and right that a girl, like a boy, should
-choose her profession, provided the occupations of home are included
-among those that are paid and respected. If the growing independence of
-girls helps to bring about this change, the family too will benefit by
-this quiet revolution that has taken place in our midst. The _Sturm und
-Drang_ period will pass away, and the time for the quiet harvest must
-succeed it. Enough, then, has been said by the devil’s advocate; it only
-remains to enter into the fruits of our Nineteenth Century Renaissance.
-
-
-
-
- INDEX
-
-
- Aberystwyth College, 6, 9, 10.
-
- Addison’s Essays, 10.
-
- Aldeburgh Girls’ School, 160.
-
- Allen, James, Girls’ School, 96, 191.
-
- Aske’s School, Hatcham, 101.
-
- Astell, Mary, 8, 9, 10.
-
-
- Bangor College, 141, 145.
-
- Beale, Miss, at Queen’s College, 30;
- at Cheltenham, 30;
- gives evidence before Schools’ Inquiry Commission, 33, 42, 85;
- an educational pioneer, 38;
- her abstract of the Royal Commission’s Report, 48;
- her views on private teaching, 53;
- founds St. Hilda’s, Oxford, 122.
-
- Bedford College, 27, 28, 29, 121, 128, 129, 130, 131.
-
- —— endowment, 81, 90, 92, 93, 95.
-
- —— High School, 93, 94, 95, 135.
-
- —— Modern School, 93, 94, 95.
-
- Birmingham endowments, 80, 90, 91.
-
- Blue-stocking Club, 11.
-
- Board of Education Bill, 240.
-
- Boarding-houses, 152, 153, 166.
-
- Boarding-schools, 149, 150, 161, 162.
-
- Bodichon, Madame, 39, 40, 84, 107.
-
- Bostock, Miss, 28, 84.
-
- Bryce, Mr., 47, 84.
-
- Buss, Miss, at Queen’s College, 30;
- gives evidence before Schools’ Inquiry Commission, 33, 42, 85;
- an educational pioneer, 38;
- President of Schoolmistresses’ Association, 48;
- transforms the North London Collegiate into a public school, 85;
- procures endowment for it, 86, 87.
-
- Buss, Frances Mary, Schools, 87, 88.
-
-
- Cambridge Examinations, Junior and Senior, 33, 34, 40, 41, 51, 109,
- 167.
-
- —— —— Higher Local, 34, 51.
-
- —— position of women at, 113, 114, 126.
-
- —— Triposes opened to women, 110, 111, 112.
-
- Camden School, 87, 191.
-
- Cardiff College, 141, 145.
-
- Careers open to women, 162, 163, 246.
-
- Chapone, Mrs., 11.
-
- Charitable Trusts Acts, 83.
-
- Charity Commission, 83, 100, 102, 174.
-
- Cheltenham Ladies’ College, 30, 31, 32, 33, 34, 35, 36, 37, 53, 94,
- 135, 153.
-
- Christ’s Hospital Girls’ School, 80, 97.
-
- Church Schools’ Company, 58, 59.
-
- City of London Girls’ School, 102.
-
- Clergy Daughters’ Schools, 17, 18.
-
- Clough, Miss, 38, 49, 81, 109, 116, 247.
-
- Cobbe, Miss, her reminiscences of school, 15, 16.
-
- Co-education at University of Wales, 176;
- at Polytechnics, 177;
- in Organised Science Schools, 187;
- in Higher Grade Schools, 206;
- in Welsh Intermediate Schools, 224, 227.
-
- College Hall, London, 134.
-
- County Councils, educational work of, 172, 177, 237.
-
- Curriculum of Girls’ Schools, 67, 71, 72, 75, 162.
-
-
- Davies, Miss Emily, an educational pioneer, 38;
- Secretary to Local Examination Committee, 40;
- gives evidence before Schools’ Inquiry Commission, 42;
- works to obtain endowments for girls, 84;
- foundress of Girton, 104;
- Mistress of Girton, 108.
-
- Day Schools, 149, 150.
-
- —— —— at Polytechnics, 184, 185, 186, 187, 188.
-
- Defoe on Women’s Education, 9, 10.
-
- Degrees for Women, attempts to obtain, at Cambridge, 110, 113;
- at Oxford, 120.
-
- Domestic Economy Schools, 178, 179, 180, 181.
-
- —— —— evening classes, 181, 182.
-
- Dual Schools. _See_ Wales.
-
-
- Edgeworth, Maria, 13, 14, 15.
-
- Education Bill of 1896, 239;
- Colonel Lockwood’s, 240.
-
- —— Company, 157.
-
- —— Department, 196.
-
- Elementary Education Act, 100, 225.
-
- Elizabeth. _See_ Queen Elizabeth.
-
- Elizabethan England, 7, 8.
-
- Endowed Schools before the Conquest, 78.
-
- Endowed Schools for girls, 85, 91, 97, 100;
- three grades of, 99.
-
- —— —— assisted by grants of Technical Education money, 191.
-
- Endowments, of Convents, 5;
- Association to promote their application to the Education of Women,
- 84;
- their distribution, 98;
- share of girls in, 79, 80, 84, 91, 97, 102.
-
- Euphues, 7.
-
- Evening Continuation Schools, 211.
-
- —— —— —— Code, 212, 213, 214.
-
- Ex-standard classes, 199.
-
-
- Fitch, Mr., 44, 46, 84.
-
-
- Games for girls, 152, 153, 155, 156, 164.
-
- Girls’ Public Day School Company, 56, 57, 66.
-
- Girton College, 106, 107, 108, 110, 114, 115.
-
- Governesses’ Benevolent Institution, 21.
-
- Grammar Schools, 6, 8, 80.
-
- Grey, Mrs. William, 54, 56.
-
-
- High Schools, 59;
- difference between English and American, 60;
- general features of, 61;
- organisation, 62;
- buildings, 63;
- curriculum, 72;
- methods of teaching in, 73;
- results on the pupils, 73, 76, 77;
- training of the teachers, 73;
- after careers of the girls, 77;
- hours of work in, 152;
- their relation to elementary schools, 241.
-
- Higher Grade Schools, 199, 200, 201, 203;
- at Leeds, 204, 205;
- at Cardiff, 206;
- needs of girls at, 207, 208.
-
- Hilda, abbess of Whitby, 3.
-
- Hitchin Ladies’ College, 105, 106.
-
- Holloway College, 102, 121, 131, 132, 133.
-
-
- Intermediate Schools. _See_ Welsh Intermediate Schools.
-
-
- King Edward’s Schools. _See_ Birmingham endowments.
-
- King’s College, Ladies’ Department, 135.
-
-
- Lady Margaret Hall, 117, 120, 121, 123.
-
- Lecture-system, 25, 72, 73.
-
- Local Customs and Taxation Act, 169, 217, 235.
-
- Lockwood, Colonel. _See_ Education Bill.
-
-
- Makins, Mrs., 9.
-
- Manchester High School, 89.
-
- Manual training, 74, 158, 171.
-
- Mary Datchelor School, 101.
-
- Maurice, F. D., 22, 23.
-
- Modern Schools for girls, 189.
-
- Montagu, Mrs., 11.
-
- Montagu, Lady Mary Wortley, 11.
-
- More, Hannah, 11, 12, 13, 163.
-
-
- National Union for the improvement of Women’s Education, 54, 55, 56.
-
- Newnham College, 108, 109, 110, 114, 115, 116.
-
- Norman Conquest, effect on Education, 3.
-
- North London Collegiate School, 33, 53, 64, 68, 87, 135.
-
- North of England Council, 48, 49, 50, 108.
-
- Nunneries, education given in, 3, 5.
-
-
- Organised Science Schools, 187, 201, 202, 204.
-
- Owens College, Manchester, 136.
-
- Oxford Association for the Education of Women, 116, 117, 118, 119, 120,
- 123.
-
- Oxford Halls for Women, 116, 117.
-
- Oxford Home Students, 123, 124.
-
- —— Local Examinations, 40, 50.
-
- —— Position of Women at, 118, 119, 120, 124, 126.
-
- —— University Examinations, 132.
-
- —— and Cambridge Joint Board, 51, 68, 69;
- Higher Certificate of, 69, 70, 116;
- Lower Certificate, 70, 71.
-
-
- People’s Palace, 174.
-
- Pfeiffer Charity, 102.
-
- Physical training, 75, 76, 158, 159, 160.
-
- Polytechnics, 176, 183, 184, 194.
-
- —— Battersea, 178, 182;
- Borough, 178;
- Regent Street, 173, 175, 177, 178.
-
- Private Schools, 163, 164, 166, 167, 168, 242.
-
-
- Queen Anne, 10.
-
- —— Elizabeth, 6.
-
- —— Victoria, 18, 19, 21.
-
- Queen’s College, 20, 22, 23, 24, 25, 26, 245.
-
-
- Reading School, 79.
-
- Reformation, its effect on Women, 5, 6.
-
- Reid, Mrs., 27, 28.
-
- Renaissance, 6.
-
- Revised Code, 197.
-
- Revival of Girls’ Education, 1, 19, 248.
-
- Roedean School, 197.
-
-
- Scholarships at Cambridge, 116;
- at Oxford, 123.
-
- —— of Technical Education Boards, 178, 191, 192, 193.
-
- —— in Welsh Schools, 223.
-
- School Boards, 197, 198.
-
- Schoolmistresses’ Associations, 48, 49.
-
- Schools’ Inquiry Commission, 42, 43, 44, 45, 46, 47, 52, 82.
-
- Secondary Education Commission, 101, 198, 209, 226, 234, 235, 237, 239.
-
- Sidgwick, Henry, 108, 109.
-
- —— Mrs., 109, 116.
-
- Sinclair, Catherine, 16, 17.
-
- Skinners’ School at Stamford Hill, 96, 101.
-
- Social Science Congress, at Glasgow, 40, 84;
- at Leeds, 54.
-
- Somerville College, 117, 120, 121, 123.
-
- South Kensington Department of Science and Art, 200, 201, 202, 203,
- 208, 209, 210, 213, 214.
-
- St. Hilda’s, Cheltenham, 36.
-
- —— Oxford, 117, 122, 123.
-
- St. Hugh’s Hall, 117, 122, 123.
-
- St. Leonard’s School, St. Andrews, 94, 153, 154, 155, 156.
-
- St. Paul’s School, 79.
-
- State the, its relation to Education, 195, 196.
-
- Stuart Court, its influence, 8.
-
-
- Technical Education Acts, 170, 171, 235.
-
- —— —— Boards, 190, 237;
- Cheshire, 190;
- London, 129, 175, 176, 178, 192, 193;
- Surrey, 188.
-
-
- Universities, rise of, 4;
- admission of Women to, 103, 148;
- at London, 127;
- Victoria, 136;
- Durham, 139;
- Wales, 139;
- Scotland 147;
- Ireland, 147;
- foreign countries, 147.
-
- University College, Liverpool, 136, 137.
-
- University College, London, 26, 134.
-
- —— Colleges, provincial, 135.
-
- —— —— of Wales, 140, 141, 143, 144.
-
- —— Extension, beginnings of, 49, 50.
-
- —— for Women, 106, 133.
-
- —— of London, examinations for Women, 35;
- degrees, 35, 126, 127, 128, 129, 132;
- reorganisation, 135.
-
-
- Victoria. _See_ Queen Victoria.
-
- —— University, 136.
-
-
- Wales, University of, 139, 140, 141, 142, 143.
-
- Welsh Intermediate Education Act, 170, 217, 235.
-
- —— —— Schools, two kinds of, 223;
- dual, 225, 226, 227;
- curriculum of, 220, 221;
- compared with High Schools, 221, 222;
- fees, 228;
- present condition of, 232, 233;
- County Governing Bodies 218, 238;
- Joint Education Committees, 219;
- Central Board, 220, 228, 229;
- its examinations, 230 231.
-
- Welsh, Miss, 116.
-
- Westfield College, 102, 130, 131.
-
- Whisky-money, 170, 217.
-
- Winchester College, 78, 79.
-
- Women teachers, 244.
-
- Wotton, 6.
-
- Wycombe Abbey School, 157, 158.
-
-
- Yorkshire Board of Education, Ladies’ Honorary Council of, 48, 88.
-
- —— College, Leeds, 136, 138.
-
-
- Printed by T. and A. CONSTABLE, Printers to Her Majesty at the Edinburgh
- University Press
-
------
-
-Footnote 1:
-
- G. Hill, _Women in English Life_.
-
-Footnote 2:
-
- L. Eckenstein, _Women under Monasticism_.
-
-Footnote 3:
-
- Sir Th. Overbury.
-
-Footnote 4:
-
- Mary Astell. _An Essay in Defence of the Female Sex._
-
-Footnote 5:
-
- Defoe. _Essay on Projects._
-
-Footnote 6:
-
- Mrs. Makins. _An Essay to Revive the Ancient Education of
- Gentlewomen_, 1673.
-
-Footnote 7:
-
- Mary Astell. _A Serious Proposal._
-
-Footnote 8:
-
- Hannah More. _Strictures on Female Education._
-
-Footnote 9:
-
- _The Complete Governess._ A Course of Mental Instruction for Ladies.
-
-Footnote 10:
-
- _Autobiography of Frances Power Cobbe._
-
-Footnote 11:
-
- _Examiner._
-
-Footnote 12:
-
- Mr. Hammond’s Report.
-
-Footnote 13:
-
- A. F. Leach.
-
-Footnote 14:
-
- Emily Davies, _Higher Education of Women_.
-
-Footnote 15:
-
- _Special Reports on Educational Subjects, 1896–97._
-
-Footnote 16:
-
- See _Handbook to Courses Open to Women in British, Continental, and
- Canadian Universities_, by Isabel Maddison, B.Sc., Ph.D.
-
-Footnote 17:
-
- In character, not of course in size
-
-Footnote 18:
-
- _Report of Royal Commission on Secondary Education_, vol. i. p. 98.
-
-Footnote 19:
-
- _Report_, vol. i. p. 75.
-
-Footnote 20:
-
- _Report_, vol. i. p. 1.
-
-Footnote 21:
-
- _Report_, vol. i. p. 274.
-
-Footnote 22:
-
- Preface to _Return of the Pupils in Public and Private Schools in
- England, and of the Teaching Staff in such Schools on June 1, 1897_.
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
- New One=Volume Novels.
-
-
- _Crown 8vo, cloth, 6s. each._
-
-
- By EDEN PHILLPOTTS.
-
- Children of the Mist.
-
-
- By CONSTANCE SMITH.
-
- Prisoners of Hope.
-
-
- By MARGUERITE BRYANT.
-
- A Woman’s Privilege.
-
-
- By ROMA WHITE.
-
- The Island of Seven Shadows.
-
-
- By ESTHER MILLER.
-
- The St. Cadix Case.
-
-
- By FRANCIS GRIBBLE.
-
- Sunlight and Limelight.
-
-
- By BASIL THOMSON.
-
- The Indiscretions of Lady Asenath.
-
-
- By A. E. W. MASON.
-
- Lawrence Clavering.
-
-
- By FRED T. JANE.
-
- The Lordship, the Passen, and We.
-
-
- By LADY HELEN CRAVEN.
-
- Katharine Cromer.
-
-
- By C. M. CAMPBELL.
-
- Deilie Jock.
-
-
-
-
- The Isthmian Library.
-
-
- _Illustrated, post 8vo, cloth_, 5s. _a Volume_.
-
-
-VOL. I.
-
- By B. FLETCHER ROBINSON.
-
- Rugby Football.
-
- With Chapters by FRANK MITCHELL, R. H. CATTELL, C. J. N. FLEMING,
- GREGOR MACGREGOR, C. B. NICHOLL, and H. B. TRISTRAM.
-
-
-VOL. II.
-
- By A. C. PEMBERTON, Mrs. HARCOURT WILLIAMSON, C. P. SISLEY, and
- GILBERT FLOYD.
-
- The Complete Cyclist.
-
-
-VOL. III.
-
- By GARDEN SMITH.
-
- The World of Golf.
-
- With Chapters by VAN TASSEL SUTPHEN, Miss PASCOE, &c.
-
-
-VOL. IV.
-
- By R. C. LEHMANN.
-
- Rowing.
-
- With Chapters by GUY NICKALLS and C. M. PITMAN.
-
-
-VOL. V.
-
- By R. ALLANSON WINN.
-
- Boxing.
-
-
-VOL. VI.
-
- Ice Sports.
-
-
-VOL. VII.
-
- By MONTAGU S. MONIER WILLIAMS.
-
- Figure Skating.
-
-
-VOL. VIII.
-
- By W. B. THOMAS.
-
- Athletics.
-
- With Chapters by R. R. CONWAY, A. C. M. CROOME, G. S. ROBERTSON, C. N.
- JACKSON, and W. M. FLETCHER.
-
- _Other Volumes are in preparation and will be duly announced._
-
-
-
-
- Works on History, Travel, &c.
-
-
- By HAROLD SPENDER and H. LLEWELLYN SMITH.
-
- Through the High Pyrenees.
-
- With Maps and numerous Illustrations from Sketches and Photographs.
- Demy 8vo, cloth, 16s.
-
-
- By Judge O’CONNOR MORRIS.
-
- Ireland—‘98 to ‘98.
-
- A History of Irish Politics and Irish Movements during the Last
- Hundred Years. Demy 8vo, cloth, price 10s. 6d.
-
-“This work can be unreservedly recommended. Judge O’Connor Morris has a
-thorough mastery of his subject; and his deductions are as a rule
-candid, impartial, and convincing.”—_Literature._
-
-“No one who has given attention to Irish affairs, will read his book
-without interest, nor, we think, without profit.”—_Glasgow Herald._
-
-
- By ELLA C. SYKES.
-
- Through Persia on a Side Saddle.
-
- With a Map and numerous Illustrations from Photographs. Demy 8vo,
- cloth, 16s.
-
-“A very bright, picturesque, and entertaining narrative of travel in
-comparatively untrodden ways.”—_Daily News._
-
-“Written with shrewdness and humour and a touch of pleasant
-fancy.”—_Standard._
-
-“One of the most delightful books of modern travel in Iran.”—_Scotsman._
-
-
- By F. H. S. MEREWETHER.
-
- Through the Famine Districts of India.
-
- Being an Account by Reuter’s Special Correspondent of his Experiences
- in Travelling through the Famine Districts of India. Profusely
- Illustrated. Demy 8vo, cloth, 16s.
-
-
- By Professor W. S. LAWTON.
-
- The Successors of Homer.
-
- Being an Account of the Greek Poets who followed from Homer down to
- the time of Aeschylus. Crown 8vo, cloth, gilt top, price 5s.
-
- Eighteenth Century Letters.
-
- Edited by R. BRIMLEY JOHNSON, with Introductions by eminent scholars.
- Illustrated with Photogravure Portraits of the writers. Crown 8vo,
- half-parchment, gilt top, price 6s. each volume.
-
- SWIFT, ADDISON, STEELE. With an Introduction by STANLEY LANE POOLE.
-
- JOHNSON AND CHESTERFIELD. With an Introduction by GEORGE BIRKBECK
- HILL, D.C.L.
-
- _Other Volumes are in preparation, and will be duly announced._
-
-
-
-
- RECENT POPULAR 6s. NOVELS.
-
-
- By J. C. SNAITH, Author of “Mistress Dorothy Marvin.”
-
- Fierceheart the Soldier.
-
- Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“Mr. Snaith has given us a romance that for terse, pregnant phrasing,
-exceptional character, and recurring and vivid depiction of dramatic
-situation, is the best thing of its kind we remember to have seen for a
-long time.”—_Observer._
-
-
- By MAX PEMBERTON.
-
- Christine of the Hills.
-
- Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“Assuredly he has never written anything more fresh, more simple, more
-alluring or more artistically perfect.”—_Daily Mail._
-
-
- By EDEN PHILLPOTTS.
-
- Lying Prophets.
-
- _Third Edition._ Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“An excellent novel.... A piece of serious and admirable work.... Not
-unworthy of a place with George Eliot’s ‘Adam Bede’ and ‘Mill on the
-Floss.’”—_Pall Mall Gazette._
-
-
- By ISABEL CLARKE.
-
- The Episode of Alethea.
-
- Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“The author deals with admirable taste and tact with the situation....
-The story is one of high merit from beginning to end.”—_Scotsman._
-
-
- By ESTHER MILLER.
-
- The Sport of the Gods.
-
- Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“It is very well told.... The novel is exciting, and preserves its
-interest to the end.... Excellent story.”—_Athenæum._
-
-
- By the late Mrs. J. K. SPENDER, Author of “Thirteen Doctors,” etc.
-
- The Wooing of Doris.
-
- Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“Has much to commend it to novel-readers. A clever plot; well-drawn
-characters—such are the leading features of a novel by which the
-reputation of its much-regretted writer is fully sustained to the
-last.”—_World._
-
-
- By J. C. SNAITH.
-
- Mistress Dorothy Marvin.
-
- A Romance of the Glorious Revolution.
-
- Illustrated by S. COWELL. Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“The author has succeeded in making his story intensely interesting....
-One of the very best adventure stories we have had for a long time
-past.”—_Speaker._
-
-“‘Mistress Dorothy Marvin,’ most delightful and winsome of women, and
-one of the freshest and most unhackneyed heroines whose acquaintance we
-have had the pleasure of making for a very considerable period.... Mr.
-Snaith has a great gift of observation, and his book is a remarkable
-picture of the age it is intended to depict.”—_World._
-
-
- By STANLEY WEYMAN.
-
- My Lady Rotha.
-
- A Romance of the Thirty Tears’ War.
-
- Illustrated by JOHN WILLIAMSON. Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“No one who begins it will lay it down before the end, it is so
-extremely well carried on from adventure to adventure.”—_Saturday
-Review._
-
-
- By FRANK BARRETT, Author of “The Admirable Lady Biddy Fane.”
-
- A Set of Rogues.
-
- A Romance of the Seventeenth Century.
-
- Illustrated by S. COWELL. Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“He has related the adventures of a set of rogues ... with so pleasant a
-tongue and in such attractive fashion that it is impossible for mere
-flesh and blood to resist them. His set of rogues have won our entire
-sympathy, and his narrative our hearty approval.”—_Pall Mall Gazette._
-
-“Another capital story.... Strongly recommended. Stirring tale this,
-without a dull chapter in it, and just enough human sentiment in it to
-soften down the roguery.... Let the honest reader procure the
-book.”—_Punch._
-
-
- By E. F. BENSON, Author of “Dodo.”
-
- Limitations.
-
- Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“Mr. Benson has written an interesting and truly human book. His range
-is much wider than it was; his character-drawing has gained in depth,
-delicacy, and precision; while the sparkling dialogue which we enjoyed
-in ‘Dodo’ has lost none of its old brilliancy.”—_Daily Telegraph._
-
-
- By FRANCIS GRIBBLE.
-
- The Lower Life.
-
- Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“A very remarkable novel, well thought out, well sustained, and inspired
-from first to last.”—_National Observer._
-
-
- By G. B. BURGIN.
-
- Tomalyn’s Quest.
-
- Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“Mr. Burgin has just scored a second shining success with ‘Tomalyn’s
-Quest,’ a tale of the keenest interest.”—_Daily Telegraph._
-
-
- By W. L. ALDEN.
-
- The Mystery of Elias G. Roebuck.
-
- Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“Mr. Alden has the true gift of humour.... It is impossible to read the
-collection of short stories without genuine enjoyment.”—_Times._
-
-
- By C. R. COLERIDGE and HELEN SHIPTON.
-
- Ravenstone.
-
- Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“The love interest of ‘Ravenstone’ is twofold, and is admirably
-sustained throughout this bright, vigorous, and refreshing
-story.”—_Daily Telegraph._
-
-
- By X. L., Author of “Aut Diabolus aut Nihil.”
-
- The Limb.
-
- Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-MR. GLADSTONE writes: “Pray accept my thanks.... I was so imprudent as
-to open it at once, and since that act have found great difficulty in
-laying it down.”
-
-“‘The Limb’ is unquestionably one of the most fascinating books of the
-season.”—_Birmingham Daily Gazette._
-
-
- By ROMA WHITE.
-
- A Stolen Mask.
-
- Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“A capital story, and Mrs. Roma White tells it with a delicate humour
-and a spontaneous brilliancy as rare as they are delightful. ‘A Stolen
-Mask’ is a novel that stands high above the average, and can be strongly
-recommended. It is a long time since we have come across anything so
-thoroughly fresh and bright.”—_Pall Mall Gazette._
-
-
- By FRANCIS GRIBBLE.
-
- The Things that Matter.
-
- Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“Is an extremely psychological study.”—_Times._
-
-“It is a very amusing novel, full of bright satire directed against the
-new woman and similar objects.”—_Speaker._
-
-
- By G. B. BURGIN.
-
- The Judge of the Four Corners.
-
- Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“A delightfully humorous sketch, full of the purest fun, and
-irresistibly laughable.”—_Saturday Review._
-
-
- By EDEN PHILLPOTTS.
-
- My Laughing Philosopher.
-
- Illustrated by GEORGE HUTCHINSON. Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“We commend to the notice of any one wanting a good laugh ‘My Laughing
-Philosopher,’ whose varied character-sketches amply prove Mr. Eden
-Phillpotts to be endowed with those two excellent gifts of humour and
-imagination.”—_Spectator._
-
-“The book will be welcome to every one who likes a book from which a man
-can get a good laugh.”—_Scotsman._
-
-
- By LESLIE KEITH, Author of “The Chilcotes,” “‘Lisbeth,” etc.
-
- For Love of Prue.
-
- Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“Plot and Incident in this present story are alike remarkable ...
-altogether we heartily commend ‘For Love of Prue’ as a sensible,
-humorous, and thoroughly wholesome book.”—_Speaker._
-
-
- By DOROTHEA GERARD.
-
- Lot 13.
-
- Crown 8vo, cloth, 6_s._
-
-“A bright, buoyant, and bustling story, with plenty of local colour
-derived from the scenery and the society, black and white, of a West
-Indian plantation.”—_Times._
-
-
-
-
- SCARLET NOVELS.
-
-
- A SERIES OF POPULAR NOVELS BY WELL-KNOWN AUTHORS.
-
- _Crown 8vo, uniform scarlet cloth, 3s. 6d. each Volume._
-
-
- ANTHONY HOPE’S SOCIETY NOVELS.
-
- Comedies of Courtship.
-
-“He is undeniably gay in the best sense of the word, now and then almost
-rollicking. An admirable example of what we mean by gaiety in fictional
-literature.”—_Daily Telegraph._
-
- Half a Hero.
-
-“The book is delightful to read, and an excellent piece of
-work.”—_Standard._
-
- Mr. Witt’s Widow.
-
-“A brilliant little tale.... Exhibits unborrowed ingenuity,
-plausibility, and fertility in surprises.”—_Times._
-
-
- By MAX PEMBERTON.
-
- A Gentleman’s Gentleman.
-
-“This is very much the best book that Mr. Max Pemberton has so far given
-us.”—_Daily Chronicle._
-
-
- By RICHARD PRYCE.
-
- The Burden of a Woman.
-
-“The conception and execution of this interesting story are excellent. A
-book to read and remember with pleasure.”—_Lady’s Pictorial._
-
-
- By C. R. COLERIDGE.
-
- Amethyst.
-
-“Extremely amusing, interesting, and brightly written.”—_Guardian._
-
-
- By F. FRANKFORT MOORE.
-
- Two in the Bush and Others Elsewhere.
-
-“Carry the reader on from page to page till criticism is forgotten in
-enjoyment.”—_Daily Graphic._
-
-
- By ROMA WHITE.
-
- Punchinello’s Romance.
-
-“We give Roma White the warmest of welcomes into the world of
-fiction.... Admirably and irresistibly comic, without anything in the
-nature of force or even of apparent exaggeration, ready at the least
-moment to run into equally true pathos.”—_Graphic._
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
- TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES
-
-
- 1. Silently corrected typographical errors and variations in spelling.
- 2. Archaic, non-standard, and uncertain spellings retained as printed.
- 3. Enclosed italics font in _underscores_.
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Renaissance of Girls' Education in
-England, by Alice Zimmern
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK GIRLS' EDUCATION IN ENGLAND ***
-
-***** This file should be named 62774-0.txt or 62774-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/2/7/7/62774/
-
-Produced by Richard Tonsing, MFR, and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/62774-0.zip b/old/62774-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 6a328ff..0000000
--- a/old/62774-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62774-h.zip b/old/62774-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 8345529..0000000
--- a/old/62774-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62774-h/62774-h.htm b/old/62774-h/62774-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 4ee7273..0000000
--- a/old/62774-h/62774-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,10759 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=UTF-8" />
- <title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Renaissance of Girls’ Education in England, by Alice Zimmern</title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
- body { margin-left: 8%; margin-right: 10%; }
- h1 { text-align: center; font-weight: bold; font-size: xx-large; }
- h2 { text-align: center; font-weight: bold; font-size: x-large; }
- .pageno { right: 1%; font-size: x-small; background-color: inherit; color: silver;
- text-indent: 0em; text-align: right; position: absolute;
- border: thin solid silver; padding: .1em .2em; font-style: normal;
- font-variant: normal; font-weight: normal; text-decoration: none; }
- p { text-indent: 0; margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; text-align: justify; }
- sup { vertical-align: top; font-size: 0.6em; }
- .fss { font-size: 75%; }
- .sc { font-variant: small-caps; }
- .large { font-size: large; }
- .xlarge { font-size: x-large; }
- .small { font-size: small; }
- .xsmall { font-size: x-small; }
- .lg-container-l { text-align: left; }
- @media handheld { .lg-container-l { clear: both; } }
- .lg-container-r { text-align: right; }
- @media handheld { .lg-container-r { clear: both; } }
- .linegroup { display: inline-block; text-align: left; }
- @media handheld { .linegroup { display: block; margin-left: 1.5em; } }
- .linegroup .group { margin: 1em auto; }
- .linegroup .line { text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em; }
- div.linegroup > :first-child { margin-top: 0; }
- .index li {text-indent: -1em; padding-left: 1em; }
- .index ul {list-style-type: none; padding-left: 0; }
- ul.index {list-style-type: none; padding-left: 0; }
- .ol_1 li {padding-left: 1em; text-indent: -1em; }
- ol.ol_1 {padding-left: 0; margin-left: 2.78%; margin-top: .5em;
- margin-bottom: .5em; list-style-type: decimal; }
- div.footnote > :first-child { margin-top: 1em; }
- div.footnote p { text-indent: 1em; margin-top: 0.25em; margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
- div.pbb { page-break-before: always; }
- hr.pb { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-bottom: 1em; }
- @media handheld { hr.pb { display: none; } }
- .chapter { clear: both; page-break-before: always; }
- .table0 { margin: auto; margin-top: 2em; }
- .nf-center { text-align: center; }
- .nf-center-c0 { text-align: left; margin: 0.5em 0; }
- .c000 { margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c001 { margin-top: 4em; }
- .c002 { page-break-before: always; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c003 { margin-top: 2em; }
- .c004 { margin-top: 1em; }
- .c005 { page-break-before:auto; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c006 { margin-top: 2em; text-indent: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
- .c007 { text-indent: 1em; margin-top: 0.25em; margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
- .c008 { vertical-align: top; text-align: right; padding-right: 1em; }
- .c009 { vertical-align: top; text-align: left; text-indent: -1em;
- padding-left: 1em; padding-right: 1em; }
- .c010 { vertical-align: top; text-align: right; }
- .c011 { text-decoration: none; }
- .c012 { margin-top: .5em; }
- .c013 { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; width: 10%; margin-left: 0;
- margin-top: 1em; text-align: left; }
- .c014 { margin-left: 5.56%; text-indent: -2.78%; margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
- .c015 { margin-left: 5.56%; text-indent: -2.78%; margin-top: 0.25em;
- margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
- div.tnotes { padding-left:1em;padding-right:1em;background-color:#E3E4FA;
- border:1px solid silver; margin:2em 10% 0 10%; font-family: Georgia, serif;
- }
- .covernote { visibility: hidden; display: none; }
- div.tnotes p { text-align:left; }
- @media handheld { .covernote { visibility: visible; display: block;} }
- .section { clear: both; page-break-before: always; }
- .ol_1 li {font-size: .9em; }
- @media handheld {.ol_1 li {padding-left: 1em; text-indent: 0em; } }
- body {font-family: serif, 'DejaVu Sans'; text-align: justify; }
- table {font-size: .9em; margin-top: 1.5em; page-break-inside: avoid; clear: both; }
- .footnote {font-size: .9em; }
- div.footnote p {text-indent: 2em; margin-bottom: .5em; }
- div.titlepage {text-align: center; page-break-before: always;
- page-break-after: always; }
- div.titlepage p {text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; font-weight: bold;
- line-height: 1.5; margin-top: 3em; }
- .ph1 { text-indent: 0em; font-weight: bold; font-size: xx-large;
- margin: .67em auto; page-break-before: always; }
- .ph2 { text-indent: 0em; font-weight: bold; font-size: x-large; margin: .75em auto;
- page-break-before: always; }
- .ph3 { text-indent: 0em; font-weight: bold; font-size: large; margin: .83em auto;
- page-break-before: always; }
- </style>
- </head>
- <body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Renaissance of Girls' Education in
-England, by Alice Zimmern
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: The Renaissance of Girls' Education in England
- A Record of Fifty Years' Progress
-
-Author: Alice Zimmern
-
-Release Date: July 27, 2020 [EBook #62774]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK GIRLS' EDUCATION IN ENGLAND ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Richard Tonsing, MFR, and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<div class='tnotes covernote'>
-
-<p class='c000'><b>Transcriber’s Note:</b></p>
-
-<p class='c000'>The cover image was created by the transcriber and is placed in the public domain.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='section ph1'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c001'>
- <div>RENAISSANCE OF GIRLS’ EDUCATION</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='titlepage'>
-
-<div>
- <h1 class='c002'><span class='xlarge'>THE</span><br /> RENAISSANCE OF GIRLS’ EDUCATION IN ENGLAND<br /> <span class='large'>A Record of Fifty Years’ Progress</span></h1>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c003'>
- <div><span class='large'>BY ALICE ZIMMERN</span></div>
- <div class='c004'><span class='small'>(GIRTON COLLEGE, CAMBRIDGE)</span></div>
- <div class='c004'><span class='xsmall'>AUTHOR OF ‘METHODS OF EDUCATION IN AMERICA,’ ‘OLD TALES PROM GREECE,’ ETC.</span></div>
- <div class='c003'>London</div>
- <div class='c004'><span class='large'>A. D. Innes &amp; Company</span></div>
- <div class='c004'>Limited</div>
- <div class='c004'>1898</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c001'>
- <div><span class='small'>Edinburgh: T. and A. <span class='sc'>Constable</span>, Printers to Her Majesty</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_v'>v</span>
- <h2 class='c005'>PREFACE</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>To all whom it may interest I dedicate this brief
-summary of the events which have wrought a peaceful
-revolution among us during the last fifty years.
-Among the many changes of the half-century, the
-great transformation in the education of women
-surely deserves a record. The workers have been
-many, the help given of various kinds, yet no event
-is isolated, for all are links in one chain of progress.
-Fifty years ago a few far-sighted men and women
-gave the impetus; we who harvest where they sowed
-may like to be reminded, in this season of retrospects,
-of the great debt we owe them. What has touched
-the lives of so many women is the concern of all,
-and though I shall be proud indeed if my book prove
-welcome to teachers, I should wish most of all to
-address myself to that old and long-tried friend of
-literature, the general reader. If he, or she, can be
-persuaded, to spend an hour or two, learning the past
-and present of the education of our girls, my purpose
-will have been accomplished.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>To thank for favours received is a pleasant task,
-but the list of those who have helped me with this
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_vi'>vi</span>book would prove too long for enumeration. I desire
-to offer my heartiest thanks to all who have assisted
-me with information, criticism, or in any other way;
-especially to Miss Beale for valuable materials and
-kind hospitality, to Mrs. Bryant and Miss A. A. M.
-Rogers for much useful information, to Miss Mary
-Gurney, Miss Ella Pycroft, Miss Mary Kennedy, and
-Mr. W. Edwards for reading portions of the book,
-and to Mrs. Edwards for her sympathy and kindness
-during my stay in Wales. To the many headmistresses
-who have allowed me to visit their schools
-I offer most cordial thanks, and last, but not least, to
-the officials of the Education Library, in particular
-Mr. Sadler and Miss Beard, for their courtesy and
-helpfulness.</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-r'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>ALICE ZIMMERN.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='small'><em>September 1898.</em></span></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_vii'>vii</span>
- <h2 class='c005'>CONTENTS</h2>
-</div>
-
-<table class='table0' summary='CONTENTS'>
- <tr>
- <th class='c008'><span class='small'>CHAP.</span></th>
- <th class='c009'>&nbsp;</th>
- <th class='c010'><span class='small'>PAGE</span></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>I.</td>
- <td class='c009'>BEFORE 1848</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_1'>1</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>II.</td>
- <td class='c009'>THE FIRST COLLEGES</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_20'>20</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>III.</td>
- <td class='c009'>LIGHT IN DARK PLACES</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_38'>38</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>IV.</td>
- <td class='c009'>THE HIGH SCHOOLS</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_52'>52</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>V.</td>
- <td class='c009'>ENDOWMENTS FOR GIRLS</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_78'>78</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>VI.</td>
- <td class='c009'>THE WOMEN’S COLLEGES</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_103'>103</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>VII.</td>
- <td class='c009'>ADMISSION TO THE UNIVERSITIES</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_126'>126</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>VIII.</td>
- <td class='c009'>BOARDING AND PRIVATE SCHOOLS</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_149'>149</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>IX.</td>
- <td class='c009'>THE TECHNICAL INSTRUCTION ACTS</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_169'>169</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>X.</td>
- <td class='c009'>STATE AID FOR GIRLS</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_195'>195</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>XI.</td>
- <td class='c009'>THE INTERMEDIATE SCHOOLS OF WALES</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_215'>215</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c008'>XII.</td>
- <td class='c009'>1898</td>
- <td class='c010'><a href='#Page_234'>234</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<div class='section ph1'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c001'>
- <div><span class='xlarge'>THE</span></div>
- <div class='c004'>RENAISSANCE OF GIRLS’ EDUCATION</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_1'>1</span>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER I<br /> <span class='large'>BEFORE 1848</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>Yes, strange though it may sound, it was in truth
-a Renaissance—a revival of the past, and no new
-experiment. Or perhaps we should more fitly describe
-it as the realisation of an old dream, one that
-has been dreamed many times in the course of the
-ages, but has waited till the nineteenth century for
-its complete fulfilment. Two thousand years ago it
-was seen by Plato, that most practical of idealists,
-who maintained that it was for the best interests
-of the state that its men and women should be as
-good as possible. Therefore the education of both
-was a matter of public concern. In these latter days
-this doctrine has won acceptance, with an even wider
-significance, due to our democratic development. The
-treasures of learning are no longer the property of an
-exclusive few, and the privileges of class and sex are
-breaking down simultaneously. Education for all,
-boys and girls, rich and poor, is the modern demand,
-which no party dare now refuse to consider. We
-must cater not only for the ‘wives of the governors,’
-but also for the children of the slums. All the
-daughters of all the households of all civilised
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_2'>2</span>countries are to enter into their heritage. The
-much-discussed ‘ladder’ from the elementary school
-to the University is becoming a fact; and its rungs
-are being widened, that the girls may ascend it side
-by side with their brothers. <i><span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">La carrière ouverte aux
-talents</span></i>, with no distinction of class, sex, or creed, is
-the demand of the nineteenth century.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>From Plato’s Utopian ‘Republic’ to London of the
-County Council is a far cry. Between the two, this
-question of girls’ education has many times been
-raised and temporarily solved. Socrates’ half-jesting
-dictum, that women are capable of learning anything
-which men are willing they should know, might
-stand as the motto for nearly every attempt to improve
-female education. The instruction given to
-women at different epochs has varied directly with
-the estimation in which they were held. When they
-were regarded as slaves or toys it was expedient to
-keep them in ignorance; when they were treated
-honourably as equals, the best gifts of learning were
-not thought too good for them.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It is not our place here to dwell on the bright
-examples of antiquity, the Neo-Platonist women and
-Hypatia, the beautiful mathematician of Alexandria,
-but rather, turning to our own country, to see how
-Christianity has touched the lives of women. Here,
-as elsewhere, it was the Church alone that kept alive
-the flame of knowledge during the Middle Ages. In
-the seventh and eighth centuries, that ‘nadir of
-learning,’ monks and nuns alike were occupied with
-literary studies. They read theology and classics,
-copied manuscripts, and corresponded in Latin. Their
-activity was in accordance with their social position.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_3'>3</span>‘The heads of the great religious houses were necessarily
-persons of importance, with privileges and
-great responsibilities. They had considerable wealth
-at their disposal, and in authority and influence they
-ranked among the nobles of the land, to whom
-they were often allied by birth.’<a id='r1' /><a href='#f1' class='c011'><sup>[1]</sup></a> The name that
-naturally occurs first to our minds is that of the
-Abbess Hilda, ‘whose counsel was sought even by
-kings,’ and who ruled over a double monastery, which
-became a seminary of bishops and priests. Hers is
-no solitary instance. ‘In Anglo-Saxon England,’
-writes Miss Eckenstein, ‘men who attained to distinction
-received their training in settlements governed
-by women. Histories and a chronicle of unique value
-were inspired by and drafted under the auspices of
-Saxon abbesses.’ And ‘the curriculum of study in
-the nunnery was as liberal as that accepted by the
-monks, and embraced all available writings, whether
-by Christian or profane authors.’ The convents were
-the colleges of Anglo-Saxon times. The nuns, who
-lived a life of seclusion and study, might be compared
-with the fellows; the students were the successive
-groups of girls who came there for education.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Among the many social changes brought about by
-the Norman Conquest, the most far-reaching, the
-introduction of feudalism, established a new centre
-of education, which henceforth flourished side by side
-with the cloister. The monks still taught the Trivium
-and Quadrivium—Grammar, Dialectic, Rhetoric,
-Music, Arithmetic, Geometry, Astronomy—though the
-instruction given deserved these high-sounding names
-little better than the so-called sciences taught in girls’
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_4'>4</span>schools at the beginning of our own century. The
-castle could offer boys a more attractive programme.
-The seven knightly accomplishments were to ride,
-sing, shoot with the bow, box, hawk, play chess, and
-write verses. It had something for girls as well.
-While the young squires gained their training by
-service done to their lord, the <i><span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">châtelaine</span></i> would gather
-about her a troop of gentle maidens, who learned to
-weave, spin, brew, and distil, and do various kinds of
-needlework. They learned a little reading and writing,
-and in these arts were somewhat in advance of
-their brothers, who were trained to look on books as
-monkish and womanish, and not quite suited to a
-knight and gentleman. The <i><span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">châtelaine</span></i> herself held an
-honourable position. In her lord’s absence she must
-even take command of the castle, and the <i><span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">damoiselles</span></i>
-must be prepared for their own coming responsibilities.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The thirteenth century brought a change. The
-political influence of the Church, which had been
-lessened by the Conquest, was revived by the preaching
-friars. They introduced a new ideal of monastic
-life; the spirit of devotion and asceticism drove out
-the old love of learning. New priories sprang up
-throughout England, but their aims were different.
-As the monasteries were more and more becoming
-centres of devotion, learning was being driven
-into the new universities, where the philosophy
-of the schoolmen now reigned supreme. Already
-some colleges with endowments for poor scholars
-had been founded at Oxford and Cambridge, and it
-was becoming the custom for the monasteries to send
-their most promising pupils there. Why did the
-nuns not follow this example? Probably the metaphysical
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_5'>5</span>disputations then in vogue had few attractions
-for them; and the presence of large numbers of
-men would be a sufficient reason for keeping aloof,
-for though the studies of both sexes might be the
-same, they were not pursued side by side. Whatever
-the cause, it is certain that while masculine
-learning showed an ever-growing tendency to leave
-the cloister, female scholarship was still closely confined
-to the convent. But it was degenerating for
-want of new life; the nunneries were a survival, not
-a living growth; their learning had become ‘poor in
-substance, cramped in method, and insufficient in
-application.’<a id='r2' /><a href='#f2' class='c011'><sup>[2]</sup></a> The old order was changing, but somehow
-the nuns failed to perceive it. In Erasmus’ day,
-we are told, the really learned woman was to be
-found outside the convent walls, and he adds the
-significant remark that her husband approved of her
-studies. The wrong done to women by the dissolution
-was not so much the closing of the convents as
-the transference to men of their endowments. The
-most flagrant instance is the transformation of St.
-Radegund’s nunnery at Cambridge into Jesus College.
-That this and other instances of spoliation were possible
-shows how low the status of women had sunk,
-and it is not strange, therefore, that a period of
-neglected education should have ensued.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Whatever the cause, the Reformation does not
-seem to have assisted the development of women.
-Perhaps this was partly due to the removal of the
-one career that had been open to them, thus forcing
-all, married and unmarried, into a dependent position
-in the household. Luther’s views on women were
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_6'>6</span>not very elevated, and probably a good many of the
-Reformers shared them. It may be due to this
-Protestant influence that in England women profited
-less intellectually by the Renaissance than men, or
-at any rate in far smaller numbers. Thanks to the
-new grammar schools, learning was being made accessible
-to boys of all classes. When Sir Thomas
-More’s dream was realised, and the middle classes,
-from the squire to the petty tradesman, were brought
-into contact with ancient literature, the daughters
-were not as well provided as the sons. Some authorities
-are of opinion that the original foundations were
-meant for both sexes alike, but if so, very few girls
-of the middle class profited by their advantages,
-though some sort of education evidently came to all.
-Among the upper classes large numbers of women
-were carried away by the enthusiasm of the Renaissance,
-and learned to read Latin and Greek. The
-sixteenth century has always been celebrated for its
-learned ladies, as witness Wotton’s oft quoted remark
-thereon and his comment: ‘One would think by the
-effects that it was a proper way of educating them,
-since there are no accounts in history of so many
-great women in any age as are to be found between
-the years 1500 and 1600.’ Queen Elizabeth and Lady
-Jane Grey are sometimes called exceptions, but this
-is clearly an error. Learning was an expensive luxury
-for women, since it involved the services of a private
-tutor, but it had fashion and opinion on its side.
-To be learned was accounted a privilege, which called
-for neither arrogant boasting nor blushing concealment.
-Those who did study, would naturally turn
-to the best their age could offer them, <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">i.e.</span></i> the new
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_7'>7</span>editions of the classics and the fashionable modern
-literature. They set the fashion too as well as
-followed it. The success of <cite>Euphues</cite> was established
-by its lady readers, and in the domain of
-polite literature it was generally acknowledged that
-they created the standard. When Lyly wrote ‘Euphues
-had rather lie shut in a lady’s casket than
-open in a scholar’s study,’ he knew well enough that
-it was not the ladies who would neglect his book.
-He confessed as much in its dedication to the ‘Ladies
-and Gentlewomen of England.’ Nor was there anything
-new in this. The lady sat in her bower to
-read Sidney’s <cite>Arcadia</cite> as in olden times she had
-listened in the hall to the lay of the minstrel.
-It was still her part to assign the prize of romance
-as of valour. The leisure which made the enjoyment
-of tale and song possible was essentially the lot of
-the rich and noble lady, who neither toiled nor span,
-but did a more useful work as guardian of art and
-literature. The amazing discovery that ‘Books are
-a part of man’s prerogative’<a id='r3' /><a href='#f3' class='c011'><sup>[3]</sup></a> had not yet been made;
-there is certainly not a hint of it in Shakespeare.
-Nor could such a doctrine possibly originate under
-a queen, who, whatever her faults, cultivated learning
-herself and honoured it in others. Our thoughts
-linger lovingly over that noblest age of English story,
-when romanticism and classicism joined their glories
-for a brief space; when the courtier was both knight
-and scholar, and the noble dame’s epitaph praised
-her as ‘wise and fair and good.’ Seen through the
-haze of the past, its splendours stand out in even
-greater dimension, while all that was small and weak
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_8'>8</span>is obscured to dimness. The very age that followed
-served as a foil to throw into yet brighter relief ‘the
-spacious days of great Elizabeth.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It is significant of the rapid degeneration that
-ensued, that though between the accession of Henry
-<span class='fss'>VIII.</span> and the death of James <span class='fss'>I.</span>, 353 grammar schools
-were founded in England, not one was added to the
-number after 1625. The seventeenth century was
-a gloomy period for England. If Elizabeth had given
-her country peace and glory, the Stuarts were not
-long in reversing the position. Disastrous civil wars,
-political and theological quarrels, absorbed the best
-energies of the nation. The Cavaliers were too frivolous,
-the Roundheads too grimly earnest to spare
-much leisure for learning. In times of war and
-national peril woman’s influence is apt to wane, and
-such power as they had at the Stuart court was not
-of the kind to encourage intellectual pursuits. When
-a scholar was hardly accounted a gentleman, a lady
-might be pardoned for neglecting her intellectual
-charms. It became the fashion among men to decry
-female students, to bid them put away their books
-and learn to wash and cook instead. ‘I like not a
-female poetess at any hand,’ says one of these self-appointed
-critics. This attitude was characteristic
-of the decline of chivalry and the degradation of
-woman’s position. ‘There is not so much as a Don
-Quixote of the quill left,’ writes Mary Astell in 1694,
-‘to succour the distressed damsels.’ The age of
-courtesy being over, women must help themselves,
-and she takes up the cudgels for her sex. ‘A man
-ought no more to value himself on being wiser than
-a woman,’ she remarks pertinently, ‘if he owes his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_9'>9</span>advantage to a better education and greater means
-of information, than he ought to boast of courage
-for beating a man when his hands were bound.’<a id='r4' /><a href='#f4' class='c011'><sup>[4]</sup></a>
-Hers is the old thesis, that women are quite capable
-of learning if only men will not put hindrances in
-their way. Even so the girls’ curriculum of her day
-does not seem to have been as meagre as is often
-assumed. She tells us that when the boys go to
-grammar schools the girls are sent ‘to boarding-schools
-or other places to learn needlework, dancing,
-singing, music, drawing, painting, and other accomplishments&nbsp;... and French, which is now very
-fashionable.’ This description which would almost
-have served at the beginning of our own century,
-is not as gloomy as Defoe’s, written at about the
-same time. Girls, he tells us, learned ‘to stitch
-and sew and make baubles. They are taught to read
-indeed, and perhaps to write their names or so, and
-this is the height of a woman’s education.’<a id='r5' /><a href='#f5' class='c011'><sup>[5]</sup></a> Both
-agree in condemning its narrowness. Defoe cannot
-believe that ‘God Almighty ever made them such
-glorious creatures, and furnished them with such
-charms, so agreeable and delightful to mankind, with
-souls capable of the same accomplishment with men,
-and all to be only stewards of our houses, cooks, and
-slaves.’ Mary Astell maintains that ‘according to the
-rate that young women are educated, according to
-the way their time is spent, they are destined to
-folly and impertinence, to say no worse.’ She protests,
-as Mrs. Makins had done before her,<a id='r6' /><a href='#f6' class='c011'><sup>[6]</sup></a> against
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_10'>10</span>the new fashion of ignorant women, and implores
-her sisters to help bring back the good old times,
-and take a lesson from the ladies of the previous
-century. Both Defoe and Mary Astell recommend
-the same project, the establishment of women’s
-colleges, thus anticipating our own times by more
-than a century and a half. Defoe’s colleges would
-have been superior boarding-schools, one in every
-county and about ten for the city of London; Mary
-Astell’s plan was to combine religious and intellectual
-aims. She contemplated ‘a seminary to stock the
-kingdom with pious and prudent ladies, whose good
-example, it is to be hoped, will so influence the rest
-of their sex, that women may no longer pass for those
-little, useless, and impertinent animals which the ill
-conduct of too many has caused them to be mistaken
-for.’<a id='r7' /><a href='#f7' class='c011'><sup>[7]</sup></a> But it must also try to ‘expel that cloud of
-ignorance which custom has involved us in, to furnish
-our minds with a stock of solid and useful knowledge,
-that the souls of women may no longer be the only
-unadorned and neglected things.’ Nothing came of
-either project; they belong to the domain of unfulfilled
-dreams.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The new century brought little improvement. Anne
-was not of a sufficiently independent character to
-influence greatly the lives and pursuits of her subjects.
-As was natural in the reign of a Queen, the position
-and dignity of women were somewhat raised; and in
-that ‘Augustan age’ there was one class of literature
-specially addressed to the ladies, the newly invented
-essay. Addison really wanted to elevate their position
-and social influence, but his success was literary rather
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_11'>11</span>than moral. If we may trust the novelists of the last
-century, public morality was never at a lower ebb.
-The men of that day worshipped idleness, and it was
-not surprising that they did not care to see their wives
-and mistresses at work. Show was the aim throughout,
-and the ‘accomplishment’ reigned supreme. The
-second half of the century witnessed a great increase
-in the boarding-school system. Hitherto it had been
-confined to the fashionable world; now tradesmen and
-farmers who had made some money began to emulate
-their ‘betters.’ Imitations of the fashionable schools
-sprang up everywhere. ‘We have,’ says the heroine
-of General Burgoyne’s play, <cite>The Heiress</cite>, “Young
-ladies boarded and educated” upon blue boards in
-gold letters in every village; with a strolling player
-for a dancing-master, and a deserter from Dunkirk to
-teach the French language.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The eighteenth century, too, had its distinguished
-women; indeed, the Blue-Stocking Club, so called, it
-seems, from the dress of one of its masculine <i><span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">habitués</span></i>,
-is regarded as the representative group of learned
-ladies. But Mrs. Montagu, Mrs. Chapone, and Hannah
-More were exceptions, and themselves only too conscious
-of their opposition to the rest of their sex. There
-was a touch of the <i><span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">précieuse</span></i> about some of them which
-exposed them to a good deal of cheap satire, and they
-were keenly alive to the antagonism with which the
-other sex regarded them. Mrs. Chapone even advises
-her niece to avoid the study of classics and science,
-for fear of ‘exciting envy in one sex and jealousy in
-the other.’ Lady Mary Wortley Montagu complains
-bitterly that ‘there is hardly a creature in the world
-more despicable and more liable to universal ridicule
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_12'>12</span>than that of a learned woman,’ while ‘folly is reckoned
-so much our proper sphere, we are sooner pardoned
-any excesses of that than the least pretensions to
-reading and good sense.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Some of these last century women were practical
-reformers, who realised the pernicious results of this
-false opinion about their sex. Among these was
-Hannah More, who entered a most earnest protest
-against the excessive accomplishment craze. The
-lower middle class were emulating the upper in their
-endeavour to make their daughters ‘accomplished
-young ladies,’ while they quite forgot that ‘the profession
-of ladies to which the best of their education
-should be turned is that of daughters, wives, mothers,
-and mistresses of families.’<a id='r8' /><a href='#f8' class='c011'><sup>[8]</sup></a> She even ventured to fly
-in the face of public opinion by asserting that ‘a young
-lady may excel in speaking French and Italian, may
-repeat a few passages from a volume of extracts, play
-like a professor, and sing like a siren,’ and yet be very
-badly educated, if her mind remains untrained. ‘The
-kind of knowledge that they commonly do acquire is
-easily attained,’ they learn everything in a superficial
-question-and-answer way, or through abridgments,
-beauties, and compendiums, instead of reading books
-that require thought and attention. As we read her
-<cite>Strictures on Female Education</cite> we rub our eyes and
-look at the date once more. Is this, indeed, Hannah
-More writing a hundred years ago, or have we stumbled
-upon a stray extract from Mr. Bryce’s report to the
-Schools’ Inquiry Commission in 1867? ‘She should
-pursue every kind of study which will teach her to
-elicit truth, which will lead her to be intent upon
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_13'>13</span>realities; will give precision to her ideas; will make
-an exact mind.’ She quotes Dr. Johnson’s opinion
-that ‘a woman cannot have too much arithmetic.’
-Had the worthy doctor a prevision of a High School
-time-table?</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hannah More’s influence does not seem to have
-been very lasting. Her contemptuous remark, that
-we might as well talk about the rights of children as
-the rights of women, shows that she had not much
-real grasp of the educational problem. Both should,
-in her opinion, be relegated to their proper subordinate
-places. She was right in despising the frivolity of her
-day, and condemning the constant round of pleasure
-in which fashionable women spent their lives, but she
-was almost too severe to be helpful. Far more valuable
-was Miss Edgeworth’s work, which was constructive
-as well as critical. Her educational romances, in which
-she contrasts the good and bad governess, the sensible
-and frivolous girl, are thoroughly readable even at the
-present day, and must have proved useful to many
-readers who lighted unawares on the powder in the
-jam. <cite>Practical Education</cite>, written in conjunction
-with her father, throws valuable light on contemporary
-conditions, and advances theories that are still worthy
-of our notice. The ‘practical toy shop,’ provided with
-all manner of carpenter’s tools, with wood properly
-prepared for the young workman, and with screws,
-nails, glue, emery-paper, etc., is still to seek; her
-remarks on the two schools, the one teaching ‘by dint
-of reiterated pain and terror,’ the other ‘with the help
-of counters and coaxing and gingerbread,’ are not altogether
-out of date. Nor have we yet learned to pay a
-good governess £300 a year, on the ground that her
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_14'>14</span>working days are few, and she ought to lay by for a comfortable
-old age. Her severest strictures, like Hannah
-More’s, are reserved for ‘female accomplishments.’
-Their chief use is that ‘they are supposed to increase
-a young lady’s chance of a prize in the matrimonial
-lottery.’ Hence, when the end is achieved, they are
-thrown aside. ‘As soon as a young lady is married,
-does she not frequently discover that she really has
-no leisure to cultivate talents which take up so much
-time?’ Nor is it quite certain that they are as efficacious
-as is generally supposed. The market is becoming
-overstocked, for ‘every young lady, and every young
-woman is now a young lady, has some pretension to
-accomplishments. She draws a little; or she plays a
-little; or she speaks French a little.’ Accomplishments
-are becoming so general ‘that they cannot be
-considered as the distinguishing characteristics of even
-a gentlewoman’s education.’ Since they are no longer
-‘exclusive,’ she hopes they may be cast aside for
-something better. Her indictment against the female
-education of her day is that ‘sentiment and ridicule
-have conspired to represent reason, knowledge, and
-science as unsuitable and dangerous to women; yet,
-at the same time, wit and superficial acquirements in
-literature have been the object of admiration in society;
-so that this dangerous inference has been drawn,
-almost without our perceiving its fallacy, that superficial
-knowledge is more desirable in women than
-accurate knowledge.’ It is interesting to find this
-complaint repeated in 1826 by an anonymous writer,<a id='r9' /><a href='#f9' class='c011'><sup>[9]</sup></a>
-who maintains the old dictum that ‘females are not
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_15'>15</span>behind males in capacity, and excel them in diligence
-and docility,’ but they are handicapped by ‘an education
-of mere externals and of show.’ There is a want
-of stamina in girls’ education, and as for their school-books,
-they are mere combinations of words used as
-‘substitutes or apologies for ideas.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Maria Edgeworth’s influence should have been
-considerable, but turning from her works to her
-contemporaries and immediate successors, it seems
-doubtful whether they even understood her. Her
-stories, whose most useful lessons were addressed to
-parents, were turned into children’s books; and the
-demand for a more solid education simply led to an
-increase of the memory and book-work in schools.
-In spite of her strictures on the uselessness of a
-knowledge of isolated facts, and the attempts of Mrs.
-Barbauld and others to supply something better, the
-catechism system continued to grow and flourish.
-Large amounts of memory work were added to the
-piano and drawing, which still held their own, and
-the results were not merely negative as regards
-intellectual value, but positive in their injurious
-effects on health. Miss Frances Power Cobbe in her
-description of the fashionable boarding-school to
-which she was sent in 1836, speaks of the pages of
-prose the girls were expected to learn by heart, amid
-the din of constant practising. ‘Not that which was
-good in itself or useful to the community, or even
-that which would be delightful to ourselves, but that
-which would make us admired in society was the
-<i><span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">raison-d’être</span></i> of each requirement. Everything was
-taught in the inverse ratio of its true importance.
-At the bottom of the scale were Morals and Religion,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_16'>16</span>and at the top were Music and Dancing, miserably
-poor music too, of the Italian school then in vogue,
-and generally performed in a showy and tasteless
-manner on harp or piano.’<a id='r10' /><a href='#f10' class='c011'><sup>[10]</sup></a> Miss Cobbe thinks this
-education far worse than that received by her mother
-in 1790, when much less was attempted, and there
-was no ‘packing the brains of girls with facts.’
-Besides ‘grammar and geography, and a very fair
-share of history’ (ancient from Rollin, and sacred from
-Mrs. Trimmer), they ‘learned to speak and read French
-with a very good accent, and to play the harpsichord
-with taste.’ Clearly things were on the downward
-course, and in the first half of this century the
-education of both sexes was in some respects in a
-worse condition in England than at any time before
-or since. Mere ignorance would have been comparatively
-harmless, but there never was a time when
-educational theories were more fashionable or more
-perverse. Miss Catherine Sinclair, who wrote in the
-forties and fifties, lifted up her voice, in <cite>Modern
-Accomplishments</cite>, against the system of cram and
-display then prevailing. ‘Lady Howard’s utmost
-ingenuity was exercised in devising plans of study for
-her daughter, each of which required to be tried
-under the dynasty of a different governess, so that by
-the time Matilda Howard attained the age of sixteen,
-she had been successively taught by eight, all of
-whom were instructed in the last method that had
-been invented for making young ladies accomplished
-on the newest pattern.’ All these governesses were
-foreign, according to the fashion of the day; at last
-an English lady of Edgworthian type was discovered,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_17'>17</span>who trained the mind instead of overloading the
-memory, and all ended happily. Precocity and display
-were what parents demanded, and schools and
-governesses contrived to supply the requirements.
-Miss Sinclair’s accounts of premature death and lifelong
-ill-health may have been overdrawn, but doubtless
-she put her finger on the weak spot when she
-wrote: ‘Nothing is popular now that requires thought
-in young people, who are constantly devouring books,
-but never digesting them, and are allowed no time
-to think.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The better the school, in the acceptation of that
-day, the worse probably the result; and those girls
-whose parents could not afford the expensive governess
-or the ‘finishing-school,’ often had the best of it,
-so long as they were not sent to one of the cheap and
-inefficient imitations. By a curious irony the one
-attempt made early in the century to give a good
-education at a small expense, was that which through
-Charlotte Brontë’s genius has been held up to everlasting
-contumely. The Clergy Daughters’ School at
-Cowen Bridge undertook, for the small sum of £14 a
-year, to clothe, feed, lodge, and educate the daughters
-of clergymen. In 1825, the year when Charlotte
-Brontë was there, the Rev. W. Carus Wilson (too
-well known as Mr. Brocklehurst), appealing for
-additional funds, stated that an annual income of
-£250, together with the fees, would be sufficient to
-meet current expenses. A comparison of this modest
-demand with the sums raised in our own day for
-women’s colleges, helps us to realise the revolution
-that has taken place in public opinion. Even so most
-of the subscribers seem to have been Mr. Wilson’s
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_18'>18</span>relations, and it was only as a charity for the poor
-clergy, with a side-thought of getting better governesses
-at low terms, that it awakened any interest at
-all. Still it was considered a remarkable achievement.
-In 1833, Mr. Venn Elliott, who had visited
-the school in its new premises at Casterton, and been
-present at the consecration of the church built in its
-neighbourhood, wrote: ‘I would rather have built
-this school and church than Blenheim and Burleigh.
-So Dr. Watts said he would rather have written
-Baxter’s <cite>Call to the Unconverted</cite> than Milton’s
-<cite>Paradise Lost</cite>.’ The result of this visit was the
-foundation of St. Mary’s Hall at Brighton. It still
-exists, and gives a really first-class education at a low
-fee. Other schools were founded in imitation; and
-in spite of the sordid economy of those early days,
-and the suffering it entailed on the weakly, they
-deserve full recognition as almost the only institutions
-which attempted in the early part of the century
-to provide a good and cheap education for girls.
-The tradition of sound study survived, and in 1867
-the Casterton institution came in for a word of praise
-from the Royal Commissioners, amid their almost
-universal condemnation of existing girls’ schools.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The benefits which a woman’s reign always confers
-on women have been experienced to the full during
-the long and peaceful reign of our present Queen.
-The interest taken by her and the Prince Consort in
-arts and letters, and in the general improvement of
-the people, set an example that was readily followed.
-Ladies of the upper and middle classes began to take
-a keener interest in the lives of the poor, and in dealing
-with the problems they thus encountered were
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_19'>19</span>often brought to realise their own want of education.
-There was a stir and a movement towards something
-better. The views of men were gradually changing,
-as the ideal of womanhood set by a purer Court
-became more elevated. Sixty years of a woman’s wise
-and beneficent rule have done much to restore the
-glories of Elizabeth’s day. Like the revival of letters,
-which communicated to the whole world the learning
-which had once belonged to one small people, this
-other renaissance brought knowledge, not only to the
-convent pupil and the lady of leisure, but to all the
-daughters of the nation. This widening has helped
-to fix the roots more firmly, and we may hope and
-believe that the gains of this century are not to be
-lost, but, enriched by all the wealth of the future, to
-continue for many a generation to come.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_20'>20</span>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER II<br /> <span class='large'>THE FIRST COLLEGES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>The revival of women’s education in England has
-now a record of fifty years behind it. On the 1st of
-May this year Queen’s College in Harley Street
-celebrated its Jubilee with manifold rejoicings, a
-celebration in which all Englishwomen may claim
-the right to join. Though Girton and Holloway and
-other newer institutions have arisen since to throw
-the glories of Queen’s into the shade, none can
-deprive it of its proud title—the first women’s college
-in England.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>An occasion of this kind provokes reminiscence
-and the drawing of contrasts between 1848 and 1898;
-while the question that naturally occurs to us is: How
-did it all begin? Many answers have been suggested.
-Some have pressed the significance of 1848 as the
-year of Revolution, and hinted that the women’s
-share in revolt was an attempt to throw off the
-shackles of ignorance. This may not be altogether
-fanciful. Such social upheavals symbolise the workings
-of intellectual forces, nor can we doubt that the
-attempt to win for women privileges from which
-they had hitherto been jealously excluded is a part
-of the democratic demand for universal equal
-opportunity.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_21'>21</span>Along with the general ferment of ideas and the
-cry for reform must be counted the growing influence
-on the lives of the upper classes exercised by the
-Queen and Prince Consort. Following the lead of the
-Court the ideals of the nation were changing. A
-more serious view of life and its responsibilities was
-developing, and the time seemed a propitious one for
-organised effort. But though various schemes had
-been discussed, the immediate impetus to action was
-an actual and crying need. In those days girls of
-the upper classes were, for the most part, educated
-at home by governesses, usually foreigners, because
-Englishwomen, though glad enough to obtain such
-posts, when suddenly thrown upon the world by the
-death of a parent or other untoward circumstance,
-were seldom properly qualified to fill them. Some of
-course there were who, by foreign travel or private
-study, had reached a fair standard of attainment;
-but how distinguish these from the herd, when they
-lacked even the teacher’s diploma with which their
-Swiss or German rivals were equipped? In this
-dilemma the Governesses’ Benevolent Institution
-came to the rescue.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>This Institution had been founded in 1843 with a
-threefold aim:—(1) To afford temporary relief in cases
-of great suffering, (2) To cultivate provident habits in
-those who could afford to save; (3) To raise annuities
-for those past work. This programme seemed to distinguish
-governesses as a class specially in need of
-pity and relief. To attempt to help them by increasing
-their competency, and thus indirectly their
-wage-earning capacity, was a bold new departure.
-The first proposal was to hold examinations for a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_22'>22</span>teacher’s diploma, but it soon appeared that an
-attempt to examine the untaught was a useless inversion
-of the natural order. To make the undertaking
-really helpful it became necessary to institute a
-system of classes. This scheme was first discussed
-in 1846, and a sum of money collected by Miss
-Murray, one of the Queen’s Maids of Honour, handed
-over to the Institution for this purpose. In 1847 the
-first certificates were conferred, and arrangements
-made for opening classes. Here some of the most
-distinguished professors of King’s College stepped in
-with help. Among them were Maurice, Trench, and
-Kingsley, and others no less noted. It was a new
-and astounding departure for men of their standing
-to be willing to lecture to women. They began with
-evening classes, but soon added others in the day for
-ladies of no special occupation. This led to the
-taking of 67 Harley Street, for the purpose of holding
-classes in ‘all branches of female learning,’ and permission
-was received to name the new institution
-Queen’s College.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>On March 29, 1848, Professor F. D. Maurice, who
-has been called the ‘parent and founder of the
-College,’ delivered an inaugural address on ‘Queen’s
-College, London, its objects and methods.’ After
-apologising for the word ‘college’ as somewhat too
-ambitious for the project in hand, he thought well to
-answer in advance the objections of those who might
-use Pope’s hackneyed line about ‘a little learning’ as
-a means of discrediting the new classes. Even he
-did not anticipate very deep draughts from the
-spring of knowledge. ‘We are aware that our pupils
-are not likely to advance far in mathematics, but we
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_23'>23</span>believe that if they learn really what they do learn,
-they will not have got what is dangerous but what is
-safe.... I cannot conceive that a young lady can
-feel her mind in a more dangerous state than it was,
-because she has gained a truer glimpse into the conditions
-under which the world in which it has pleased
-God to place her actually exists.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Each of the first courses was preceded by a preliminary
-lecture, in which the professor introduced,
-and almost apologised for his subject. Latin was to
-win toleration as ‘one road, and perhaps the shortest,
-to a thorough study of English’; in each case it was
-shown that the evils anticipated from that particular
-subject were fanciful. These explanations strike us
-quaintly now; it is hard to realise how great was the
-terror of learned ladies which in those days it was
-fashionable to assume.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Still, in spite of prejudice, the College flourished.
-There were no less than two hundred entries the first
-term. In 1853 it had grown sufficiently independent
-to stand on its own feet, and breaking away from the
-parent institution, it was incorporated by Royal
-Charter. Its objects were declared to be the general
-education of ladies, and the granting of certificates of
-knowledge. Professor Maurice became Chairman of
-Committee and Principal; and Queen’s, which loves
-its old traditions, has continued the practice of
-appointing a male Principal, therein differing from
-every other women’s college in the United Kingdom.
-It feels so keenly the debt it owes its founders, that
-it cherishes the idea—mistaken surely—that it can
-best do them honour by maintaining the college such
-as it was in their day. Thus the fate of many a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_24'>24</span>pioneer has overtaken Queen’s. The vanguard have
-become the laggards, and useful and admirable as is
-its work, it has been outstripped by younger institutions,
-and no longer stands in the forefront of the
-battle. This is the common fate; it is easier to improve
-than to originate, but the debt of gratitude we
-all owe to Queen’s is none the less because so many
-others have harvested where she sowed.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Since Queen’s takes pride in its conservatism and
-adherence to its original methods, the latest calendar
-gives a very fair idea of its work even in early days.
-It states that ‘the College provides for the higher
-education of women, in the first place by a liberal
-school training, and, subsequently, by a four years’
-course of College education. The College education
-leads to the grade of Associate&nbsp;... and after a
-further course of study to the higher grade of Fellow
-of the College.’ The school was not part of the
-original scheme, but became necessary when the first
-generation of students, thoughtful women who had
-already been trying to improve themselves, and
-eagerly welcomed the advantages then for the first
-time offered them, gave way to a younger generation.
-Among the applicants for admission were mere
-schoolgirls, and instead of turning them away to seek
-inefficient preparation elsewhere, it was resolved to
-start a preparatory department for their benefit.
-This developed into a small school for girls under
-fourteen, the age at which pupils are admitted into
-the College. Here the students belong to two
-categories: those who follow a prescribed course laid
-down by the authorities, and those who enter for
-single classes, and arrange their work themselves.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_25'>25</span>The former class are known as ‘compounders,’ and
-pay a composition fee of £8 to £10 per term. They
-must attend eighteen hours a week of regular class
-teaching. The regulations fix the subjects for twelve
-hours; parents or guardians for the other six. The
-prescribed work includes—(<em>a</em>) two languages: English,
-two hours, and French, German, Latin, or Greek, two
-hours; (<em>b</em>) two sciences: Mathematics and Arithmetic,
-four hours; Geography, one hour, Natural Philosophy,
-one hour, when exemption is granted in Mathematics;
-(<em>c</em>) English History, one hour, Ancient or Modern
-History, one hour; (<em>d</em>) Holy Scripture, one hour.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Candidates for the Fellowship must have passed
-the examination for the Associateship at least one
-academical year previously to entering for the Fellowship
-examination. For this, one principal subject of
-study must be chosen, with not fewer than two additional
-subjects. Since only three students had, in 1897,
-concluded this additional course, the Associateship
-may be regarded as the ordinary goal of Queen’s
-College students. The course for this is excellent,
-doubtless, for girls from fourteen to eighteen; but
-studies of so miscellaneous a character, leading to a
-‘grade’ which can be attained at the age of eighteen,
-belong properly to the domain of school work.
-Queen’s differs, however, in its organisation from the
-upper department of a modern High School. Most
-of the teaching is given in the form of lectures.
-This lecture-system marks a distinct stage in the
-progress of girls’ education. In the schools of the
-early part of the century the various ‘professors’ who
-came to lecture occupied an important place in the
-prospectus. They ranged freely over the sciences in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_26'>26</span>a manner that amused and interested their hearers,
-without making any undue demand upon their intelligence
-or powers of thought. Hence, the lecture-system
-seems to have established itself as a first
-step towards attracting female pupils to the higher
-branches of knowledge. The High Schools, too, were
-to pass through that stage, and emerge from it.
-Queen’s still keeps up the tradition of lectures, and
-as its discipline and general arrangements differ from
-those of a school, without resembling those of a
-college, it must be regarded as an institution apart,
-self-contained, and unconnected. As such it is of
-the greatest value in supplementing the home-teaching
-of girls, or undertaking the complete
-education of those who do not desire to enter the
-University, or take up any distinct profession. These
-would probably get a better practical preparation at
-a good high school. Still the others are likely to
-remain the majority, and there will always be an
-important function for an institution that supplies
-good teaching without any compulsion to enter for
-outside examination. Such, at any rate, is the view
-of the Council, who have commemorated their Jubilee
-by a renewal of the lease, and the general improvement
-and partial reconstruction of the premises. In
-its old home, with unbroken traditions, gathering in
-the children and grandchildren of its earliest students,
-it is continuing the work with which, fifty years ago,
-it inaugurated the revival of women’s education.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Although Queen’s was the first college actually
-opened, other similar schemes were being projected
-at the same time. The foundation in 1826 of
-University College had given an impetus to advanced
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_27'>27</span>studies in London, and as a perfectly undenominational
-institution it served as the model for Bedford
-Ladies’ College. The foundress and benefactor of
-Bedford was Mrs. Reid. Her wish to help girls took
-effect in 1847 in the establishment of classes at her
-own house. Two years later she took a house in
-Bedford Square and gave £1500 towards the initial
-expenses. Mrs. Reid and her friends were ambitious.
-They meant to found a real place of higher education
-for women, and in doing so they did not hesitate
-to break with the past. Mrs. Reid felt convinced
-that women could best understand the needs of girls,
-and though a committee consisting chiefly of men
-might at that time have included more distinguished
-names, she probably kept in mind the time to come
-when the college would be able to invite its own old
-pupils on to its committee. The co-operation of
-ladies was in the first instance secured by the institution
-of lady-visitors, to be present in turn at lectures—a
-plan at that time considered indispensable, and
-adopted also at Queen’s. It was arranged that the
-College Board should include the forty lady-visitors
-and six gentlemen. This Board annually appointed
-the Council of Management, and the Council elected
-the professors and all the officers of the college. This
-plan seemed to answer, and the college, which was
-fortunate enough to secure the services of such able
-men as De Morgan, F. W. Newman, and Dr. Carpenter,
-entered on a successful career. After a while pupils
-came in from a distance. Provision had to be made
-for these, and in 1861 a second house was taken and
-the upper floors adapted as a residence, while the
-lower ones were used for class-rooms. For a few
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_28'>28</span>years Bedford too had to maintain a school, but this
-was not part of the promoters’ scheme, and they
-hailed the first signs of improved school teaching as
-a pretext for closing it. This happened in 1868,
-at a time when circumstances made a complete reorganisation
-of the college necessary with a distinct
-declaration of policy.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The change had been hastened by the death of
-Mrs. Reid. She left a considerable part of her fortune
-in the charge of three trustees, Miss Bostock, Miss
-J. Martineau, and Miss E. E. Smith, to be utilised
-for ‘purposes of higher education.’ This seemed a
-suitable moment to seek incorporation, and in 1869
-Bedford College received its charter. Its objects
-were thus described:</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘1. To continue with an improved constitution the
-College for women which has been carried on since
-1849 in Bedford Square, London, and has been known
-since the year 1860 as Bedford College.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘2. To provide thereby a liberal education for
-women, such education not to extend beyond secular
-subjects.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Henceforth the management was vested in members
-of the college, with a Council elected from the
-number and a President, to be called the Visitor.
-This office has been held successively by Erasmus
-Darwin, Mark Pattison, and Miss Anna Swanwick.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Bedford, like Queen’s, was happy in its founders,
-but to none does it owe more than to Miss Bostock.
-After Mrs. Reid’s death she took over the care of the
-college as a sacred trust, devoting to it the greater
-part of her time, and helping it with money and good
-counsel. Happily she lived to see the fruit of her
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_29'>29</span>labours, and to know that Bedford College had won
-an assured position through its connection with the
-London University.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Its beginnings, like that of most women’s institutions,
-had to be tentative. The first lectures probably
-had a more popular character than those now given;
-and since they aimed rather at general culture than
-a systematic course of study, Literature, History, and
-Language would draw the largest audiences. But
-from the very first Latin, Science, and Mathematics
-were taught, and the college remembers with due
-pride that George Eliot was a member of its earliest
-Latin class. At any rate the promoters were quite
-sure of their aims. The daring words, ‘a liberal
-education for women,’ had been uttered without
-extenuation or apology. But in those days Bedford
-College stood alone, with no academic body to test its
-work and direct its curriculum. Nor was public
-opinion yet fully ripe for a real University education
-for women. Bedford had to wait another ten years
-before the opening of the London degrees came to
-fix its position and define its studies. They were not
-wasted years. The college was giving numbers of
-intelligent and eager girls their first insight into real
-knowledge, and teaching them to be dissatisfied with
-narrow, cramping instruction. Many of them have
-gone out into the world to hand on the impulse and
-inspiration gained here, and help to influence that
-public opinion which alone has made admission to
-the Universities possible. In 1874 the college was
-helped by a move to better premises. When in 1879
-London opened its degrees to women, the opportunity
-of Bedford had come, and it was ready to use it.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_30'>30</span>From this date onward its history belongs to that of
-Women’s University Education.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>These two earliest colleges may be regarded as not
-only pioneers but also parent institutions. They drew
-within the sphere of their influence many of those
-women who were to train up the next generation.
-Among the earliest pupils of the Queen’s College
-evening classes was Miss Buss, who was already
-teaching in her mother’s private school, and was
-destined to found the first public school for girls.
-She was one of the first to win the governess diploma.
-Another was Miss Dorothea Beale, so well known for
-her work at Cheltenham. She remained at Queen’s
-from 1849 to 1856, first teaching Mathematics, then
-Latin, and afterwards in charge of the school. In
-1858 she became Principal of the Cheltenham Ladies’
-College, which had already been at work for five
-years.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The Cheltenham College differed in its original
-idea from Queen’s and Bedford. Both these had been
-founded with the purpose of giving women such
-advanced education as they were at that time capable
-of receiving, and had gradually been compelled by
-the exigencies of the case to provide for girls as well.
-Cheltenham, though called a college in imitation of
-the boys’ college in that town and some other public
-schools, really aimed in the first instance at providing
-for girls similar educational advantages to those
-which their brothers enjoyed in the same town. As
-King’s College had suggested Queen’s, the boys’
-college at Cheltenham suggested the girls’. Twelve
-years elapsed between the foundation of the two;
-and Queen’s and Bedford were already pointing the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_31'>31</span>way when a small committee of enthusiasts met at
-the house of Mr. Bellairs, one of H.M. Inspectors, and
-drew up a prospectus, inviting the public to take
-shares in the new undertaking. A day-school was
-all that was at first contemplated, and the subjects to
-be taught there were described as Holy Scripture
-and the Liturgy, history, geography, grammar, arithmetic,
-French, music, drawing, needlework. German,
-Italian, and dancing to be extras. The proposal
-found favour. Shares to the amount of about £2000
-were taken up, a house hired, and the new venture
-started with good auspices, 88 pupils entering
-the first term, and the numbers soon going up to
-120. It is not quite easy to understand why this
-prosperous beginning was not followed up. After
-a while the numbers went down, and the college
-seemed to be losing favour. Probably it was ahead
-of local public opinion, not yet abreast of North
-London, where Miss Buss was already successfully at
-work. The first years were times of struggle, and
-even the appointment of Miss Beale in 1858 did not
-at once turn the scale. After forty years of successful
-work in the college, Miss Beale can enjoy the pleasure
-of contrasting then and now. Some of her reminiscences
-throw a curious light on public opinion in
-the early fifties. The curriculum, unpretentious as it
-seems, proved too advanced. Parents objected to
-the thoroughness of the teaching, and the time given
-to arithmetic and similar subjects. Some disliked
-the annual examination, which was held to be
-unfeminine, and the difficulty of obtaining good
-teachers was almost insuperable. In regard to these
-Miss Beale suffered through being ahead of her
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_32'>32</span>times. She desired especially two things: that the
-teachers should be women, for, to quote her own
-words, ‘we think it essential to the right moral
-training of girls that the whole internal discipline
-and much of the moral training should be in the
-hands of ladies’; and that they should be to some
-extent specialists, the only way to abolish the textbook
-cram and unintelligent memory work then in
-vogue in girls’ schools. How she set out again and
-again to seek for teachers, and how many a time
-she was disappointed, she has herself recorded in
-her history of the college. Her efforts show how
-hard it was to found a school before the reformation
-of the higher education had given the necessary
-impetus from above. It was a case of making bricks
-without straw.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Perhaps the practical difficulties in the way of
-finance were really the most hampering, for the
-founders had too little experience of these matters;
-and a Mr. Brancker, who as treasurer, by readjusting
-the whole system of fees, put the College on a sound
-financial basis, may almost count as its second
-founder.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In 1863, five years after Miss Beale took office,
-some Oxford examiners were invited to inspect and
-report on the school. This was a new departure; it
-meant an acknowledgment of the connection which
-should exist between girls’ schools and the Universities.
-A small thing in itself, but typical of the
-many changes that the next five-and-twenty years
-were to bring.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>From this time onward the College was brought
-into close connection with every educational reform
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_33'>33</span>in England; and its history, like that of the North
-London Collegiate, presents in miniature the various
-changes of this busy quarter of a century. In 1863
-an informal examination was held for girls in the
-papers of the Cambridge Local Examination. This
-was the beginning of a new departure, and from
-that time forth preparation for one or other of the
-local University examinations formed part of the
-work of both schools. In 1866, Miss Beale and Miss
-Buss were called upon to give evidence before the
-Royal Commission, and the plan of these two schools
-was thus brought before the notice of the general
-public. The interest that resulted in all questions
-concerning the education of girls reacted on these
-first schools. For Miss Buss it won an endowment,
-for Cheltenham that recognition which means success.
-It became possible to raise the standard and
-enlarge the curriculum. Mathematics, Science, Latin
-and Greek, were added to the prospectus. Applications
-from pupils outside the town necessitated the
-opening of a boarding-house in 1864. The College
-was fast outgrowing its first home; then came a fresh
-obstacle to overcome. Building had become essential,
-but prejudice stood in the way. Although good
-premises and beautiful surroundings have long been
-regarded as essential for boys’ schools and colleges
-and a really important factor in the training given
-there, the prejudice that any makeshift was good
-enough for girls has died hard, if indeed it can even
-now be called dead. Miss Beale naturally desired to
-see the now flourishing College in adequate and
-beautiful buildings. This seemed to some of the
-governors too daring a departure. However, after
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_34'>34</span>many struggles and defeats, the party of progress
-carried the day. The new premises, the nucleus of
-the present beautiful College buildings, were opened
-in 1873. Of course they had the effect of attracting
-additional numbers; and when three years later,
-further extension became necessary, it appeared that
-the College had not merely outgrown its premises,
-but also its constitution. The time had come to put
-it on a more lasting basis. At a meeting of shareholders
-it was decided to renounce all claim on a
-profit, and accept instead a right of nomination on
-each share, as is done at several boys’ proprietary
-schools. The whole income became available for the
-payment of teachers, the maintenance and improvement
-of the buildings, school furniture and apparatus.
-The government was placed in the hands of a council
-of twenty-four persons, six being representative
-members chosen by the Bishop of the Diocese, the
-Universities of Oxford, Cambridge, and London, the
-Lady Principal and the staff of teachers, while the
-remaining eighteen were elected by the shareholders.
-The inclusion of women on this body has proved
-specially beneficial to the College.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>By this time there were 500 girls in the school, and
-ten licensed boarding-houses. Many internal changes
-had taken place, corresponding to the changes in the
-world without. The Cambridge Local Examinations
-had proved helpful in the early days, and the establishment
-in 1868 of the Cambridge Higher Local
-supplied a definite aim for the work of the senior
-classes. It has always been popular at Cheltenham,
-and over 500 girls have passed it from the College.
-Another impetus was given to work by the institution
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_35'>35</span>of the special women’s examination of the University
-of London; during the nine years of its existence,
-one-third of the successful candidates came from
-Cheltenham. But it was the formal opening of the
-London degrees that led to the present complete
-organisation of the College with its system of departments,
-leading respectively to the Oxford Senior,
-Cambridge Higher, and London University Examinations.
-By this time Girton, Newnham, and other
-women’s colleges had come into existence. Cheltenham
-could send its pupils to continue their studies
-at the older Universities, and the specialist teachers,
-for whom Miss Beale had sighed in vain in the early
-days, were now forthcoming. Fashion too was beginning
-to smile on those more serious studies which
-the College had so long pursued in the face of prejudice.
-The time of struggle was over. Cheltenham
-was no longer in advance of the tide, but moving
-harmoniously with it, giving help and receiving it.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Cheltenham College, as it now exists, has certain
-peculiarities which distinguish it from most of the
-girls’ schools of the present day. Firstly, it does not
-receive all comers, but is distinctly intended for the
-‘daughters of gentlemen,’ and references in regard
-to social standing are required before admission.
-Secondly, it combines the functions of a day and
-boarding-school, by a system of boarding-houses
-which belong to the Council, and are under the
-general control and supervision of the Principal.
-Thirdly, it is not one large school, but a system of
-departments under separate heads, all under the
-direction of the Principal. Division I. is under Miss
-Beale herself. The work is directed towards: (1) the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_36'>36</span>London Degrees; (2) the Cambridge Higher Local;
-(3) the Oxford Senior and Higher Local Examinations.
-This division is the College proper, and is organised to
-some extent on college lines. Division II. has about
-200 pupils between twelve and sixteen. Division III.,
-the juvenile department, has about 70 pupils between
-seven and twelve. Below this comes the Kindergarten.
-By-students may attend single courses of
-lectures as at Queen’s and Bedford.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Cheltenham College is thus enabled from its own
-resources to take a child straight from the nursery,
-and after many years send her forth as a full-fledged
-graduate of London University. It is neither to be
-expected nor desired that many girls should thus
-receive the whole of their education under one roof,
-but while some attend one department and some
-another, the College does in itself comprise the three
-stages of education: primary, secondary, higher. It
-has gone even further, for it takes an important part
-in the work of training teachers, which has been so
-largely developed of late years. The training department
-has three distinct divisions, in which teachers
-are prepared for Kindergarten, Secondary, and Public
-Elementary Schools. The ‘Hall of Residence,’ which
-is growing so much in favour now, is also represented
-at Cheltenham by St. Hilda’s, a residential college for
-students over eighteen, and in particular the twenty
-foundationers who are intending teachers and are
-received at reduced fees. Finally, the Old Girls’
-Guild with its eleven hundred members all over the
-world, its College Settlement in the East End of
-London, and its biennial meetings at Cheltenham,
-keeps the College in constant touch with the work,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_37'>37</span>social, philanthropic, and professional, that is being
-done by women at the present day.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The Cheltenham College has become a little world
-of itself. It presents in miniature each of the developments
-in women’s education which has taken place
-in the last fifty years. The dignity of its beautiful
-buildings, the ideals which take visible form in the
-statues of representative women, and the stained-glass
-presentations of Scripture characters and female
-virtues, seem to link it to the past; the energy and
-enthusiasm of its Principal, and the full tide of life
-that pulses through the whole, assure its place in the
-future of girls’ education.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_38'>38</span>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER III<br /> <span class='large'>LIGHT IN DARK PLACES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>The fifties had witnessed the rise of these earliest
-colleges, and given hope to a little band of reformers
-whose efforts on behalf of light and progress were the
-chief feature of the sixties. Never was a reform
-happier in its advocates. Frances Buss, dreaming,
-while yet in her teens, of giving to future generations
-of girls that public school life which had been denied
-to her; Anne Clough, recording in her early diary
-the longing to do her country some great service;
-Emily Davies, devoting all her thought and energy
-to making that dream of a women’s college a reality;
-Dorothea Beale, struggling against opposition and
-prejudice to build up the wonderful organisation at
-Cheltenham—these were some of the pioneers whose
-names have become as household words, whose portraits
-hang in many a home even beyond the seas, the
-patron saints of our girl students.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Side by side with these worked others, both men
-and women, who had come to realise the deplorable
-condition of girls’ education. On the one hand, complaints
-were heard of their incompetence in domestic
-matters. ‘They cannot keep house accounts,’ says
-one writer; ‘they neither can make puddings nor
-direct servants in making them; they cannot make
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_39'>39</span>or mend their clothes; in a sick-room they are
-either so nervous or so senseless that their presence
-is worse than useless.’ On the other, we hear of the
-terrible strain consequent on what was by curious
-irony called over-education—girls sitting at their
-books or piano from morning to night, loading their
-memories with undigested facts. Both evils proceeded
-from the same cause. ‘Everything that is
-taught is taught dogmatically, and consequently the
-powers of research, inquiry, analysis, and reason either
-are altogether crushed out or rust from want of use.’<a id='r11' /><a href='#f11' class='c011'><sup>[11]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At this time public schools for girls were practically
-unknown. Teaching was no profession for women—it
-was the acknowledged resource of the middle-aged
-spinster left penniless by her father, or the widow
-whose husband had made ducks and drakes of the
-money. It was the one thing that anybody could do,
-since it required neither knowledge nor experience.
-All that was necessary was to hire a house, with a
-little saved or borrowed capital, and put up a brass
-plate on the door, announcing the existence of a
-select establishment for young ladies. Each schoolmistress
-did what seemed good in her own eyes or
-those of her pupils’ parents, and though, when the
-principal was herself a cultivated woman, she often
-inspired her pupils with a love of books that remained
-with them in after years, these cases were the exceptions.
-The condition of the great mass of cheap
-day-schools was deplorable.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>An attempt to penetrate beyond these brass-plated
-doors was made by Madame Bodichon, who as Barbara
-Leigh Smith had attended some of the earliest
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_40'>40</span>classes at Bedford College. The results of her inquiry
-were given to the Social Science Congress at Glasgow
-in 1860. She strongly denounced the little cheap
-private day-schools, academies, and such like, ‘often
-conducted by broken-down trades-people, who failing
-in gaining a livelihood in a good trade, take in despair
-to what is justly considered, in consequence of the
-competition of the schools assisted by government,
-as a very bad business.’ Happily, times have changed,
-and we can afford to smile at the picture of these
-‘genteel’ establishments, with their ‘insufficient room
-and ventilation,’ where the young ladies were taught
-about the ‘four elements, earth, air, fire, and water,’
-and, shutting their eyes and their windows, studied
-the wonders of nature in little cheap catechisms.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Some test for distinguishing good schools from bad
-ones seemed desirable in the best interests of teachers
-and pupils. In 1857 and 1858 Oxford and Cambridge
-had instituted local examinations for young persons
-not members of the Universities. These had proved
-useful in raising the standard of middle-class education,
-giving an aim and a stimulus to small schools.
-Why not do the same for girls? It was decided to
-make the attempt. In October 1862 a small committee
-was formed in London, with Miss Emily
-Davies as secretary. Permission was asked and given
-to conduct an informal examination for girls with the
-same papers as were set to the boys. The examiners
-looked over the answers and reported on them. The
-results were somewhat startling. Out of forty senior
-candidates thirty-four failed in preliminary arithmetic.
-The juniors did a little better. The average work in
-English was pronounced fair, and in grammar very
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_41'>41</span>good. French did not compare unfavourably with
-the boys. In German only twelve candidates presented
-themselves; all passed—three with distinction.
-Not such a bad record after all, but of course it was only
-the progressive schools that were represented. These
-learned that they must look to their arithmetic, and
-they did so with excellent results. Both the successes
-and the failures showed the value of the experiment,
-and it was resolved to repeat it. A memorial was
-sent to the Vice-Chancellor of Cambridge, signed by
-more than a thousand persons engaged in teaching
-or interested in education. The result was the formal
-admission of girls to these examinations. In 1865
-they were held at six places: Brighton, Bristol,
-Cambridge, Manchester, London, and Sheffield. A
-hundred and twenty-six candidates entered; ninety
-passed. A great advance had been made in two years.
-Arithmetic was no longer a stumbling-block. Out of
-the whole number of candidates only three failed in it.
-English history came in for a share of praise. ‘The
-examiners thought the style of the girls’ replies better
-than that of the boys.’ ‘The answers of the senior
-and junior girls were orderly and methodical, and the
-writing and expression good. The papers of many
-gave proof of care and ability on the part of both
-teacher and scholar,’ and more to the same effect.
-In 1866 there were two hundred and two girls at
-ten centres. This time the report was even more
-satisfactory.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>These results were most valuable. They proved
-that there must be many good schools in the country,
-and some teachers who could learn from the success
-and failure of their pupils. No time could have been
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_42'>42</span>more opportune for this experiment, for just then
-a Royal Commission was making an inquiry into all
-the schools that had not been included in the Popular
-Education Commission, or that which examined into
-the nine great public schools. This really meant a
-general survey of boys’ secondary education; and to
-boys it would have been confined, had it not been for
-those same energetic women who had inaugurated
-the reform of girls’ education. Here was an opportunity
-not to be missed. Once more signatures were
-collected for a memorial, this time to beg for the
-inclusion of girls’ schools in the scope of the inquiry.
-This was granted, and consent given to the admission
-of a few ladies to give evidence. Some trepidation
-was felt at so novel a proceeding. Thirty years later,
-when another such Commission was appointed, and
-women were included among the Commissioners, their
-appointment caused less remark than the invitation
-given in 1865 to a few ladies to give information on a
-subject on which none were better qualified to speak.
-So quickly has public opinion changed!</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Nine ladies gave evidence before the Commission.
-The most valuable testimony came from Miss Buss,
-at that time head of a large private school, Miss
-Beale, Principal of Cheltenham College, and Miss
-Emily Davies, who was taking so active a part in
-all reforms that concerned girls. Eight Assistant Commissioners
-were requested to make special inquiries
-as to the girls’ schools in selected districts. Their
-task proved no easy one. The request to be allowed
-to inspect schools or procure information about them
-by other means was met sometimes by indignant
-refusal, at others by a silence as eloquent. However,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_43'>43</span>in spite of difficulties, it proved possible to obtain
-returns from a good number and examine some more
-or less thoroughly. Since the assumption seems fair
-that it was the superior schools which were most ready
-for inspection, the reports must be read with the
-mental addition of an even worse state of things
-behind that remained unrevealed. At any rate, there
-was enough to make out a case for action.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The report which was issued in 1867 summarised
-the impression formed by the Assistant Commissioners.
-‘It cannot be denied that the picture brought before
-us of the state of middle-class female education is, on
-the whole, unfavourable. The general deficiency in
-girls’ education is stated with the utmost confidence,
-and with entire agreement, with whatever difference
-of words, by many witnesses of authority. Want of
-thoroughness and foundation; want of system; slovenliness
-and showy superficiality; inattention to rudiments;
-undue time given to accomplishments, and
-those not taught intelligently or in any scientific
-manner; want of organisation—these may sufficiently
-indicate the character of the complaints we have
-received in their most general aspect. It is needless
-to observe that the same complaints apply to a great
-extent to boys’ education. But, on the whole, the
-evidence is clear that, not as they might be but as
-they are, the girls’ schools are inferior in this view to
-the boys’ schools.’ Mr. Norris, one of the Assistant
-Commissioners, says: ‘We find, as a rule, a very small
-amount of professional skill, an inferior set of school-books,
-a vast deal of dry, uninteresting task-work,
-rules put into the memory with no explanation of
-their principles, no system of examination worthy of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_44'>44</span>the name, a very false estimate of the relative value
-of the several kinds of acquirement, a reference to
-effect rather than to solid worth, a tendency to fill or
-adorn rather than strengthen the mind.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There is unanimous testimony as to the undue
-amount of time given to accomplishments, music in
-particular. There are some elaborate calculations as
-to the total number of hours spent on acquiring a
-mechanical skill on the piano, though about a third
-of the pupils never make the slightest use of it after
-they have left school. The music played is bad;
-there is little training for the taste and none for the
-mind in this study to which girls devote almost as
-much time as their brothers do to classics. Next to
-music modern languages absorbed most of the time
-and energies of the pupils, and yet the Commissioners
-unanimously report with severity on the results
-attained. Very few girls could compose a French
-sentence correctly; slipshod grammar and bad pronunciation
-are noted, and set down to the habit of
-speaking French out of school hours, by which a sort
-of jargon was developed incomprehensible to an
-outsider, and not even up to the standard of Stratford-atte-Bowe.
-On the subject of Science Mr. Fitch
-wrote: ‘Few things are sadder than to see how the
-sublimest of all physical sciences is vulgarised in
-ladies’ schools. No subject, if properly taught, is
-better calculated to exalt the imagination and to
-kindle large thoughts in a pupils mind. Yet all the
-grandeur and vastness are eliminated from the study
-of Astronomy as commonly pursued; and the pupils
-whose attention has never been directed to any one
-of the great laws by which the universe is governed,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_45'>45</span>think they are learning astronomy when they are
-twisting a globe round and round, and solving a few
-problems in latitude and longitude.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Arithmetic comes in for the worst censure. It is
-spoken of as ‘the weak point in women teachers.’
-‘It would be an affectation of politeness,’ says Mr.
-Hammond, to say a word on behalf of the arithmetic
-taught by ladies. It is always meagre and almost
-always unintelligent.’ The school-books receive
-almost unqualified abuse, in particular <cite>Mangnall’s
-Questions</cite> and ‘all the noxious brood of catechisms.’
-History and ‘miscellaneous subjects’ are too often
-taught from these, geography and grammar from
-wretched little text-books, all the sciences in the
-course of a few lectures. Now and then a word of
-praise is given to English literature and composition,
-<i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">e.g.</span></i>, ‘English literature occupies a more prominent
-position in the education of girls than of boys....
-The object of the lessons is to exercise the memory
-and to cultivate the imagination of the scholars;
-their most beneficial result is observable in the style
-of composition acquired by girls at a comparatively
-early age. Whereas a boy of fifteen hardly ever
-succeeds in putting together half a dozen readable
-sentences, a girl of the same age often writes with
-much freedom and fluency.... A bundle of letters
-written by girls of seventeen or eighteen afforded me
-real pleasure; many of these were well conceived and
-well expressed, and they presented a variety of style
-and subject which proved that they were not manufactured
-to order or cast in any stereotyped mould.’<a id='r12' /><a href='#f12' class='c011'><sup>[12]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'>One of the most serious defects is the lack of all
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_46'>46</span>physical training, while attempts are made to combine
-exercise and instruction, <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">e.g.</span></i> by repeating French
-verbs when out walking, thus achieving neither result
-satisfactorily.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Not only were the Commissioners of one mind in
-their strictures, but there is a striking unanimity
-about their recommendations. Mr. Giffard’s lucid
-summary may be taken as also representing the
-views of his colleagues: ‘If I were to sum up the
-impression I derived from my visits to girls’ schools,
-I should say, (1) that the mental training of the best
-girls’ schools is unmistakably inferior to that of the
-best boys’ schools; (2) that there is no natural
-inaptitude in girls to deal with any of the subjects
-which form the staple of a boy’s education; (3) that
-there is no disinclination on the part of the majority
-of teachers to assimilate the studies of girls to those
-of boys; (4) that the present inferiority of girls’
-training is due to the despotism of fashion, or, in
-other words, the despotism of parents or guardians.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There is a general consensus of opinion on the
-following points:—</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>1. Most girls’ schools are too small.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘There is little life, no collective instruction, and
-nothing to call forth the best powers of either teacher
-or learner in a school where each class consists of
-two or three pupils only.’—(Mr. Fitch.)</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>2. They lack proper organisation.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘There is a certain number of classes or of girls
-learning particular things, but there is neither any
-definite course of studies nor any grouping of classes,
-so as to play into one another.’—(Mr. Bryce.)</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>3. Want of proper proportion in arranging subjects.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_47'>47</span>4. Poor quality of the teaching, due to the inferior
-education of the teachers themselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>5. Lack of an external standard to act as a stimulus
-to the learner and help to the teacher.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Mr. Bryce’s recommendations are of special interest,
-since they mark out the lines on which the chief
-reforms have proceeded. They are these:—</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>1. The establishment of schools for girls under
-proper authority and supervision. ‘It would be at
-all events most desirable to provide in every town
-large enough to be worthy of a grammar school a
-day school for girls, under public management, where
-a plain, sound education should be offered at the
-lowest prices (from £5 per annum or upwards) compatible
-with the provision of good salaries for
-teachers, and which should be regularly examined by
-competent persons thereto appointed.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>2. Considerable changes in the course of instruction
-for girls of all classes. ‘It would be proper to lay
-more stress upon arithmetic, to introduce mathematics
-everywhere, and Latin where there is a fair
-prospect of a girl’s being able to spend four hours a
-week upon it for three years.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>3. The foundation of institutions which should
-give to women the same opportunity of obtaining
-higher education which the Universities give to boys.
-The lack of this higher training injures the school
-education by lowering its tone, and opening up no
-wider field of knowledge to the more studious and
-eager scholars. An even worse result is ‘the low
-standard of education and of knowledge about education
-among schoolmistresses and governesses.’...
-‘It is from the advent of more highly educated
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_48'>48</span>teachers that the first improvement in the education
-of girls is to be hoped for.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Such was the verdict of this famous Commission,
-whose ‘revelations’ have figured in so many prizegiving
-speeches. The report filled twenty stout
-volumes, which were duly relegated to their place on
-official shelves, to accumulate dust; and there, thirty
-years after, they have been joined by the nine
-volumes drawn up by our latest educational Commission.
-Truly has it been said that the best way to
-shelve a question in England is to let a Royal
-Commission sit upon it. But even a Royal Commission
-and a twenty-volume report could not shelve
-the subject of girls’ education; the reformers were
-too much in earnest. Miss Beale extracted from
-these ponderous blue tomes all that related to girls,
-and reprinted it in a compact little volume. Even
-before its appearance action had been taken. The
-Cambridge Local Examinations had drawn schoolmistresses
-together and given them a common
-interest. They now began to form associations in
-different parts of the country. One was started in
-London, with Miss Buss as President and Miss Davies
-as Secretary. The North of England proved a
-specially congenial sphere for this form of union.
-The Ladies’ Honorary Council of the Yorkshire
-Board of Education was an outcome of the introduction
-into that county of the Local Examinations, but
-it soon extended its operations over wider fields, <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">e.g.</span></i>
-domestic economy and sanitary science, as well as
-the extension of endowments to girls.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Even more far-reaching in its results was the North
-of England Council. This too originated in Schoolmistresses’
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_49'>49</span>associations, among which Miss A. J. Clough
-was a moving spirit. In 1865 she contributed to
-<cite>Macmillan’s Magazine</cite> an article setting forth certain
-schemes for improving girls’ education. One of these
-was to establish in other large towns courses of lectures
-similar to those given at Queen’s and Bedford
-Colleges, to be attended by the older pupils from
-schools and by teachers. Co-operation between
-several towns would make it possible to engage
-really able lecturers from Oxford and Cambridge.
-The experiment was first tried at Liverpool, and
-spread to Manchester, Leeds, and Sheffield. Associations
-were formed in these four towns, and by the
-election of two representatives from each, the ‘North
-of England Council for Promoting the Higher Education
-of Women’ was constituted in 1867, with Miss
-Clough as secretary and Mrs. Butler as president.
-The lectures proved a phenomenal success. In the
-autumn of 1868 the numbers of the combined
-audiences in nine towns amounted to 1500, and Mr.
-F. Myers writing of them in <cite>Macmillan</cite>, enumerated
-their advantages thus:</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘1. They contain within themselves the germ of
-university extension.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘2. They confront young women in a reasonable
-manner with reasonable men.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘3. They encourage and help governesses, who attend
-in large numbers, and are glad to have good teaching
-and to know of the best books.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘4. They form a nucleus for educational libraries
-and for the friendships of fellow-students.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘5. They pay.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>These lectures were in actual fact the beginning of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_50'>50</span>University Extension, but the work of the North of
-England Council did not stop here. A further aim
-for study was needed, and some more advanced
-examination than those for girls under eighteen, if
-women were to be qualified to instruct girls in anything
-but elementary subjects. A petition was drawn
-up and sent to Cambridge with the signatures of over
-600 ladies engaged in teaching, 300 interested in it,
-and six members of the late Schools’ Inquiry Commission.
-They pointed out ‘the great want which
-is felt by women of the upper and middle classes,
-particularly by those engaged in teaching, of higher
-examinations suitable to their own needs.’ The petition
-was granted, and the first Women’s Examination
-held in 1869.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Looking back on these past days now that it is the
-fashion to decry examination as the death of education,
-it is interesting to realise what this much abused
-system really did to give it fresh life. The Cambridge
-Senior and Junior Locals were the first link established
-between girls’ schools and the university, and it would
-be difficult to over-estimate their value in this period
-of chaos. Their utility was recognised at once. They
-spread all over the country and to the colonies; and
-they are widely used by schools, both public and
-private, and by children working with governesses
-at home. Edinburgh and Durham soon followed
-suit in the admission of girls, and in 1870 Oxford
-too relented. London did its part by instituting a
-special Women’s Examination on the lines of Matriculation,
-and in 1869 that of Cambridge was held for
-the first time. These were the germs of future
-developments. At London the way was paved for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_51'>51</span>opening the degrees to women; the Cambridge
-Women’s Examination led to the foundation of
-Newnham.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>To some extent the work of these examinations
-is done. Conditions have changed; and the establishment
-of the Oxford and Cambridge Joint Board,
-and the opening of the universities to women have
-removed the necessity for this kind of examination
-in schools of the first grade. But in small private,
-and in middle-grade schools, and for children working
-with governesses at home, they are still of distinct
-use, and their popularity does not seem to diminish,
-if numbers are any test. Should they ever become
-needless, owing to a more perfect school organisation,
-we must still hold their memory in respect, for they
-can show a good record. It is their merit that at
-a time when no schoolmistress had a College training
-and no University examiner ever entered a girls’
-school, they supplied a slender link between the
-school and the university, and when there was no
-standard for girls’ education, and often neither organisation
-nor curriculum, they did afford an aim
-and a stimulus, which, if not absolutely the best,
-proved at any rate trustworthy guides. If examination
-is not education it has often led to it, and never
-more successfully than in the case of girls and
-women.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_52'>52</span>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER IV<br /> <span class='large'>THE HIGH SCHOOLS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>The Report of the Schools’ Inquiry Commission in
-1867 served as a revelation, for it brought home to
-the general public the exceedingly unsatisfactory
-condition of middle-class education for both boys
-and girls. Its immediate outcome was an examination
-and redistribution of endowments, in which for
-the first time the claims of girls were considered.
-But it was evident that even the most judicious
-application of existing endowments could not suffice
-to fill all the educational gaps in the country. The
-Commissioners had therefore included among their
-recommendations the following:—1. To offer proprietary
-and private schools the same inspection
-and examination as were required in public schools,
-and to make their position more assured by a system
-of school registration. 2. To give power to towns
-and parishes to rate themselves for the establishment
-of new schools. These suggestions remained a pious
-opinion, for no action was officially taken, but (as
-so often happens in England) private enterprise
-stepped in, and compensated for public laxness.
-The inquiry had done good service in throwing
-light on the inefficient condition of small and cheap
-private schools for girls, of which there were such
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_53'>53</span>large numbers in the country. Clearly what was
-wanted was a system of schools large enough to
-permit of low fees and satisfactory grading. Much
-of the evidence had been negative, and showed what
-to avoid. Happily there were a few schools in existence
-which could serve as beacon lights. Of these
-the North London Collegiate and the Cheltenham
-Ladies’ College took the first rank. The former,
-though really a large private school, had been organised
-by Miss Buss on public lines, with a view
-to being ultimately placed on a sound and permanent
-footing. The latter was a large proprietary school,
-so planned as to be in no need of public money.
-Both Miss Buss and Miss Beale were unanimous in
-urging the establishment of large public schools for
-girls. Speaking of London, Miss Buss had said, ‘I
-think, in the first place, there are scarcely any good
-schools; in the next place, there are very few good
-teachers; and in the third place, there is no motive
-offered to the girls for study nor to their parents
-to keep them at school.’ Miss Beale considered that
-schools were preferable to private teaching at home,
-because one person could not be mistress of all the
-subjects to be taught, ‘and a good teacher can
-scarcely continue so when condemned to the monotony
-of the ordinary private school-room.’ Small
-schools could not be properly graded except when
-very high fees permitted of small classes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Large day-schools with low fees for girls were
-called for. This much was agreed on, but where
-was the necessary capital to be found? Among the
-public-spirited men and women who set themselves
-to answer this question, the foremost place belongs
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_54'>54</span>to Mrs. William Grey. She had for some time been
-working to get a share of educational endowments
-for girls. ‘Let me remind you,’ she wrote at this
-time, ‘that while there are in or near London alone
-the magnificent first-grade endowed schools for boys
-of the Charterhouse, Merchant Taylors, St. Paul’s,
-Harrow, and Eton, besides King’s College and University
-College schools, there is not in the whole of
-London an endowed school of a similar class for girls,
-and that while the proportion of educational endowments
-for girls to those for boys is as 1:92, the
-proportion of women supporting themselves is to
-men as 1:7.19; that is, to quote the words of Mr.
-William Brook, “seven times as many men are employed
-as women, but men have ninety-two times
-as much money as women, to arm, equip, and qualify
-themselves for the battle of life.”’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Failing endowments, or even side by side with them,
-capital must be obtained from other sources: this was
-the problem which had now to be faced. On May 31st,
-1871, Mrs. Grey read a paper before the Society of
-Arts on the Education of Women. She described its
-extremely unsatisfactory condition, and suggested
-three remedies. (1) The creation of a sounder public
-opinion respecting the need and obligation of educating
-women. (2) The redistribution of educational
-endowments so as to give a fair share of them to
-girls. (3) The improvement of female teachers by
-their examination and registration according to fixed
-standards.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In the following October, at the Social Science
-Congress at Leeds, she proposed the establishment of
-a national Union for the improvement of the education
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_55'>55</span>of women of all classes. Its objects should be—(1) To
-enlighten the public mind, through meetings and
-lectures throughout the country, on the present state
-of female education, on the national importance of
-improving it, and on the measures required for that
-end. (2) To collect and disseminate information
-respecting the best methods of education, the comparative
-advantages of large and small schools, the
-influence of endowments, and generally all questions
-connected with the training of girls. (3) To promote
-measures for the better training of female teachers,
-and especially for their examination and registration
-by fixed standards, so as to secure a measure of competency.
-(4) To assist the formation of councils similar
-to the North of England Council for the Education of
-Women in other divisions of the country, and, while
-endeavouring to multiply local centres of activity, to
-afford all workers in the same cause a common bond
-of union, and a means of intercommunication and
-combined action.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The proposal was favourably received; 300 names
-were at once given in for membership, and a provisional
-committee formed. Individual subscriptions
-were fixed at five shillings; and an affiliation fee of
-not less than a guinea annually entitled corporate
-associations to be represented on the annual general
-council, and to all the privileges of membership. This
-National Union supplied a real need. Members poured
-in fast. The Princess Louise consented to become
-president, and the roll of vice-presidents was a distinguished
-one. Branch unions were formed, and
-associations already existing at Belfast, Dublin, Birmingham,
-Cambridge, Clifton, Falmouth, Guernsey,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_56'>56</span>Huddersfield, Norwich, Plymouth, Northampton,
-Wakefield, Winchester, and Windsor were brought
-into membership with the Union. Many of the
-Schoolmistresses’ Associations sought affiliation: the
-Ladies’ Council of the Yorkshire Board of Education,
-and the North of England Council also joined the
-Union, and consented to appoint representatives to
-the central committee. With admirably organised
-machinery directed by knowledge and enthusiasm,
-great reforms seemed possible, and in 1872 the Union
-proceeded to its first piece of constructive work,
-the establishment of the Girls’ Public Day School
-Company.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Proceedings were inaugurated at a meeting at the
-Albert Hall, with Lord Lyttelton in the chair. Proposals
-were brought forward for starting a shareholding
-company ‘for the purpose of establishing and maintaining
-in London and the provinces superior day-schools,
-at a moderate cost, for girls of all classes
-above those provided for by the Elementary Education
-Act.’ A capital of £12,000 was to be raised in 2400
-shares of £5 each. The proposal found favour, prospectuses
-were sent out, accompanied by a letter from
-Princess Louise; 800 shares were at once taken up, and
-the company was floated. Among the earliest members
-of its council were the Marquis of Lorne, the Dowager
-Lady Stanley of Alderley, Sir J. K. Shuttleworth,
-Mrs. William Grey, Miss Mary Gurney, and Miss
-Shirreff, Sir Douglas Galton, K.C.B., and Mr. C. S.
-Roundell.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The next step was to open schools, and Chelsea was
-chosen as the scene of the first experiment. Miss Porter
-was appointed head-mistress, and a suitable house
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_57'>57</span>was hired. The school began with twenty-five girls,
-and rapidly increased. A few months later a second
-one was opened at Notting Hill with Miss Jones as
-head. For these first experimental schools no shares
-were specially taken up in the neighbourhood. In
-future, any place that wished for a high school was
-usually required to take up a certain number, as a
-definite assurance of local interest. Croydon was
-opened on these conditions in 1874, with twenty
-pupils. Then followed, in 1875, Clapham, Hackney,
-Bath, Oxford, and Nottingham; in 1876, Brighton,
-Gateshead, and St. John’s Wood; in 1878, Dulwich,
-Ipswich, Maida Vale, Sheffield. At present the schools
-number thirty-four. They are at Bath, Blackheath,
-Brighton, Bromley, Carlisle, Clapham (High and
-Modern), Clapton, Croydon, Dover, Dulwich, Gateshead,
-Highbury, Ipswich, Kensington, Liverpool, East
-Liverpool, Maida Vale, Newcastle, Norwich, Nottingham,
-Notting Hill, Oxford, Portsmouth, East Putney,
-Sheffield, Shrewsbury, South Hampstead, Streatham
-Hill, Sutton, Sydenham, Tunbridge Wells, Wimbledon,
-York.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The fees are: for pupils under ten years of age,
-£10, 10s. a year; entering the school between ten and
-thirteen, or remaining after ten, £13, 10s. a year;
-entering after thirteen, £16, 10s. a year. The company
-is on a sound financial basis, since the larger
-and more flourishing schools make up for the deficiencies
-of the smaller ones. Until 1896 a dividend of
-five per cent. was paid, now limited by resolution of
-the shareholders to four per cent. The capital has
-been increased to £150,000.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Meantime similar schools were springing up all
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_58'>58</span>over the country. At Plymouth one was started by
-a local branch of the National Union, at Huddersfield
-by a local company, at Southampton by the Hampshire
-Association, at Manchester by private subscription,
-at Bradford by an endowment. The impulse
-given by the Union and its pioneer schools was felt
-everywhere, and it seemed as though before long every
-large town in England would have a proprietary or
-public school for girls. A rival company was founded
-in 1883. The Church Schools Company differed from
-the Girls’ Public Day School Company in making
-definite Church teaching one of its objects, while the
-religious instruction of the Girls’ Public Day School
-Company had always aimed at being, as far as possible,
-undenominational. The promoters of the Church
-Schools thought that as there was room for voluntary
-schools side by side with board schools, so there might
-also be scope for Church High Schools in spite of the
-existence of the Girls’ Public Day School Company.
-Their original proposal was to start schools of various
-grades for boys and girls above the class attending
-elementary schools, where a general education should
-be given, in accordance with the principles of the
-Church of England, at a moderate cost.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A beginning was made with day-schools for girls,
-and hitherto little else has been done. It is probable
-that this Church Company did, to some extent, meet
-a need, but it was not a very large one. The majority
-of the Church of England parents are perfectly satisfied
-with the religious instruction of the Girls’ Public
-Day School Company schools, and the new schools
-drew their pupils, not so much by an appeal to those
-who disapproved on principle of the existing high
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_59'>59</span>schools, as by establishing themselves in towns which
-the other company had not entered. Naturally they
-appealed to a smaller class, and can never expect to
-attain the numbers of the undenominational high
-schools. Hence they have always been, to some extent,
-hampered, for though the company is financially
-sound, and gives a small dividend to shareholders, it
-has had to economise very severely in the matter of
-salaries and buildings. This must always re-act to
-some extent on the education, and it is probably for
-this reason that these Church Schools have never
-attained the high position of their rivals. The fees
-paid vary according to the locality, some being as low
-as £4, 4s., others as high as £18, 18s.; £9, 9s. to
-£12, 12s. seems the commonest fee. Many of the
-schools are very small. At present the number is
-twenty-six, and they are situated at Bournemouth,
-Brighton, Bury St. Edmunds, Derby, Dewsbury, Durham,
-Gloucester, Guildford, Hull, Kendal, Kensington,
-Leicester, Newcastle-on-Tyne, Northampton, Reading,
-Reigate, Richmond, St. Albans, Streatham, Stroud
-Green, Sunderland, Surbiton, Wigan, Woolwich, Great
-Yarmouth, York.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>High Schools can now trace back their history for
-a quarter of a century. In that time more than a
-hundred have been founded in England. They have
-become the typical girls’ schools of this country, private
-schools have been organised on the same lines, and
-the scheme of large day schools with no distinction
-of class, giving a good education at a low fee, has
-been almost universally accepted. It seems so simple
-and natural, that it is hard to realise that twenty-five
-years ago it was a strange and therefore a dangerous
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_60'>60</span>innovation. After all what do we mean by a High
-School? There is a general impression of the meaning
-of the term, though it would not be easy to define
-it. In the United States, a High School is an
-advanced school, which can only be entered by pupils
-who have already passed through the Primary and
-Grammar Schools; that is, do not enter before the
-age of fourteen or fifteen. It is thus a Secondary
-School, forming the link between the primary institutions
-and the University. Our English High Schools
-provide both elementary and secondary instruction,
-and the ages of the pupils range from seven to nineteen.
-Hence, although there is a natural division
-between the Lower and Upper School, the work is
-closely connected; the same mistresses teach in both,
-and subjects such as Latin and French are usually
-carried down into the lower classes. The lower part
-of a High School is not exactly parallel to an
-Elementary School; the pupils have begun more
-subjects, they have been taught in smaller classes,
-and by different, less rigid methods. The High
-School cannot therefore at present be regarded as the
-middle rung of the educational ladder. In England
-there is a gap between it and the Elementary School,
-which is sometimes successfully bridged by special
-means, but the existence of which cannot be disregarded
-in any general scheme of English education.
-As the need of secondary education is more generally
-felt, a system of schools leading upward in direct line
-from the elementary school is being naturally evolved,
-and connection between the two lines is being provided
-by scholarships and other means. But if we
-disregard a few exceptional cases, it seems best to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_61'>61</span>look on the High School as an organic whole, taking
-the child from the nursery to the university, and
-sometimes even helping out the nursery by means of
-the kindergarten.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It is not uncommon to hear people talk of the
-High School system, but this is misleading. In so
-far as the High Schools have a special system, it is
-the natural outcome of the scheme of large classes
-and careful gradation. Hence it resembles in many
-respects that which has long prevailed in Germany
-and the United States. There is no High School
-Code, and even under the same management, <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">e.g.</span></i> in the
-Girls’ Public Day-School Company Schools, considerable
-latitude is left to the individual head-mistress; but
-there are certain arrangements which are found convenient
-in the organisation of large day schools, and
-which prevail with modifications in all the High
-Schools, as well as in many large private institutions.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The morning hours are given to class teaching;
-from 9 to 1, or 9.15 to 1.15, being the usual times.
-Subjects requiring individual instruction (which are
-usually extras), <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">e.g.</span></i> piano, solo singing, advanced
-drawing, and painting, are taught in the afternoons,
-also Greek in some schools, special coaching in
-advanced Latin or Science, and so forth. The
-principle underlying this arrangement is that of
-giving the best working hours to serious mental
-work, and reserving accomplishments which are
-rather the ornament than the essentials of education,
-for the latter part, thus assigning to the subjects of
-instruction their proper relative importance, and
-keeping the real work of the school undisturbed.
-This arrangement seems so easy and natural that it
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_62'>62</span>would be hardly necessary to dwell on it, were it not
-that until very lately the opposite system prevailed
-in some schools that otherwise aimed at thoroughness,
-and it was not unusual for a girl to be called
-away in the middle of an important lesson in history
-or arithmetic, and sent to her music. Under the
-present plan, the greater part of the girls have
-finished their school work by one o’clock, and have
-the afternoon and evening free to divide between
-preparation of lessons (two to three hours), exercise,
-and home duties. For the benefit of those who
-require help in their lessons, or cannot get a quiet
-room at home, a system of afternoon preparation at
-school is organised. This generally lasts an hour
-and a half to two hours—most schools provide a
-dinner for girls who come from a distance. A whole
-holiday on Saturday seems the rule everywhere.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Some schools have a kindergarten department attached,
-where little boys are taught along with the girls,
-and a transition class where the children learn to read
-before passing into the school proper. The division
-is into forms, I. being the lowest, and VI. the highest.
-Large schools divide the forms into Upper and Lower.
-Where a school is fully organised, it is usual for a
-whole class to move up together. Backward girls
-may remain in the form another year. Unfortunately
-many high schools are too small to be fully organised,
-and in these the gaps between the classes are
-too large, and general promotion impossible. Clever
-girls spend one year in a class, slower ones two, and
-the disadvantage for the latter is very serious, since
-there is a weariness about going over the same
-ground twice, which is the reverse of stimulating.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_63'>63</span>Large classes can progress as quickly as smaller ones
-when they are very carefully grouped. Where the
-pupils are at different stages there is much waste of
-time, and either the weak go to the wall, or the
-strong get less than their due. It is, therefore, the
-first essential of a high school that the numbers
-should be large, not much under two hundred.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Even when the school is large and the classes work
-smoothly together, the girls do not all work evenly in
-every subject. To prevent waste, it is usual to let
-certain subjects, perhaps Arithmetic and English,
-determine promotion, and to teach the others in
-divisions. Two or three forms may take French at
-the same time, and be rearranged for that lesson,
-returning to their own rooms when it is over. This
-moving about affords a pleasant change, and is quite
-easy when the building is a convenient one. Indeed,
-suitable premises are almost as important for the
-harmonious working of a school as large numbers and
-careful classification. Long narrow corridors and
-awkward staircases are fatal to order. Ordinary
-dwelling-rooms adapted for school purposes can
-seldom be properly ventilated, and according to their
-position in the room, the pupils suffer from draught
-or heat, the light falls the wrong way upon their
-work, the classes have to be graded to suit the size of
-the rooms rather than the abilities of the pupils. In
-fact nothing can be more unsatisfactory than the
-adaptation as a school of an ordinary dwelling-house.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The arrangement that seems to answer best is that
-of a large central hall used for prayers and general
-gatherings, out of which some of the form-rooms
-open, whilst the rest, with extra rooms for small
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_64'>64</span>divisions, are upstairs. Of this construction the
-Blackheath and Sheffield High Schools are good
-examples. The finest girls’ buildings are naturally
-found where there is an endowment, as at the North
-London Collegiate, the Bedford, and Manchester High
-Schools. Few, if any of the Church schools have
-specially constructed buildings, and several of the
-Girls’ Public Day School Company’s Schools are
-carried on in adapted premises. Some grant of
-public money for buildings to really efficient proprietary
-schools would probably be the cheapest and
-most effective way of helping girls’ education in
-many of our large towns.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The North London Collegiate, both in point of
-time and in importance, claims precedence as the
-pioneer high school. It was in working order when
-the Girls’ Public Day School Company started, and
-was doubtless the model set before its promoters.
-The following account written in 1883 by Mrs.
-Bryant, who is now head-mistress, is in many ways
-typical, and applies <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">mutatis mutandis</span></i> to the general
-routine of all fully equipped high schools.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘Entering the school with the girls in the morning,
-we should proceed first through the entrance hall
-down to the basement, and into the cloak-rooms.
-Here each girl has a numbered place provided with
-hooks for cloak and hat, umbrella-stand, boot-rack,
-and bag for the house-boots, which she always wears
-while in school. There are also shelves for books
-while dressing is going on, and forms for use in
-changing boots. Since the space allotted is ample,
-and the girls come in relays, both before and after
-school, crowding is avoided.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_65'>65</span>‘When ready, each girl goes upstairs with her
-books to the great hall, where the rule of silence is
-strictly enforced. At 9.15, all are assembled for
-prayers, each form in its place, while the prefects,
-who are members of the sixth form, and are elected
-by it and the teachers of the upper division of the
-school, are scattered among the other forms, as
-guardians of public order, during the interval of waiting.
-After prayers, each form marches out with its
-mistress to its own room. Five class-rooms open out
-of the hall on the ground floor; these are used by the
-upper division of the school, including the sixth
-form, and four sub-divisions of the fifth form. Five
-more open out of the hall gallery, used by all the
-sub-divisions of the fourth form, which constitute the
-middle division of the school. Above these two tiers,
-there is a third set of rooms, three class-rooms and
-the drawing school. The lower divisions of the
-school use these four rooms, besides one of the
-irregularly placed rooms. Of the latter there are
-several, lying with the laboratories, lecture-room,
-libraries, and music-rooms, on the side of the great
-stone staircase, opposite the Clothworkers’ hall.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘Each class room contains 5600 cubic feet, and is
-fitted for thirty-two girls. All have Swedish desks,
-except the elder girls, who have separate desks with
-chairs. There is a raised platform for the teacher,
-with a chair and table. All the rooms are fitted with
-cupboards, and in most there is a small circulating
-library, which the girls can use on payment of a
-small subscription. The pine wainscot, brick walls,
-and tiled fire-places of the class-rooms, make a good
-background for the decorations of the Kyrle societies,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_66'>66</span>which exist in each class; and all the rooms have
-pictures on the walls, as well as notice-boards and
-time-tables. Another institution of the decorative
-kind is the window garden, with which many of the
-rooms are provided, and in which the girls take, for
-the most part, great pride.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘In these rooms the hard work of the day goes on
-till 1.30, with an interval, as near the middle as
-possible, of twenty-five minutes, for a light lunch and
-drill. In five separate relays, the girls proceed to the
-dining-hall, which, with the kitchens and housekeeper’s
-room, lies under the great hall. Here they
-can buy buns, biscuits, bread and butter, fruit, coffee,
-milk, and lemonade, and, while talking as loudly and
-as much as they please, they are required to take
-their stand in orderly lines across the room. From
-the dining-hall the girls proceed to the gymnasium,
-a very fine room, 100 feet long by 30 feet broad,
-where they have musical drill for a quarter of an
-hour. Monday and Thursday, however, are days for
-special calisthenic exercise, lasting half-an-hour each
-day. Then work is resumed till 1.30, when the
-school is dismissed in relays, as before stated.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Even more important than the routine of a school
-is its curriculum; and here the need of the reformer’s
-hand is still felt acutely. The subjects included in the
-Girls’ Public Day School Company prospectuses are
-the following—Religious Instruction, Reading, Writing,
-Arithmetic, Mathematics, Book-keeping, English
-grammar, composition, and literature, History,
-Geography, French, German, Latin, the elements
-of Physical Science, Social Economy, Drawing, Class-singing
-and Harmony, Gymnastic Exercises, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_67'>67</span>Needlework. To these Greek must now be added,
-since it is taught in every school that prepares
-for college. The prospectus says ‘any or all of
-these may be taught,’ which means that the head-mistress
-has, within certain limits, a right of selection.
-Hence the tendency of schools, even under the same
-management, to vary greatly. Not only is there as
-yet no consensus of opinion in England as to the best
-curriculum for girls’ schools, but even the general
-aim to be kept in view seems by no means determined.
-Mrs. Bryant lays down the incontrovertible
-dictum that ‘the ideal of the curriculum is a balance
-of subjects so that all normal faculties and interests
-may be cultivated.’ But there is another side which
-cannot be neglected, and the claims of the ideal
-vanish into insignificance before the demands of
-practical life and outside examination. In spite of
-the repeated promises that examination is to be
-servant and not master we must not hope to escape
-from its dominion as long as it is the ‘open sesame’
-of colleges and professions. A rough test, it is still
-the best hitherto devised, and serves on the whole to
-separate the sheep from the goats. Since we must,
-therefore, acknowledge its sovereignty, it behoves us
-to see that it exercises a wise and benevolent tyranny.
-However much we may protest, the curriculum of a
-school will always be largely determined by the
-nature of its leaving examination, since this regulates
-the work of the upper forms, and these more
-or less mould the lower. Some schools reduce this
-examination work to a minimum, reserving it entirely
-for the highest form, while others use the machinery
-of outside examinations to determine the whole of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_68'>68</span>their work. The North London Collegiate belongs
-to this latter class. The upper part is organised
-according to two parallel courses. Of these <em>A.</em> leads
-to the London degree examinations, that is to Matriculation
-or in some cases Intermediate Arts, and
-Course <em>B.</em> to the Cambridge Senior and Higher
-Locals. All these examinations under certain conditions
-admit to the Women’s Colleges at Oxford
-and Cambridge, and hence act the double part of a
-leaving and entrance examination, but this school
-also makes use of the lower examinations, <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">e.g.</span></i>, the
-Preliminary and Junior Locals. Hence the work
-of these classes must be directed to the set subjects
-required for these examinations, and must include
-the particular periods of history, works in literature,
-and French and German books that are laid down by
-the examiners, even though they may not seem the
-most suitable in other respects. Many educationalists
-think this disadvantageous to the general plan of a
-girls’ school, which should proceed on stated harmonious
-lines from the lowest to the highest class.
-Mrs. Bryant, however, thinks that the advantages
-outweigh the disadvantages, since ‘by their means
-the more advanced body of opinion can be brought
-to bear on the inert or prejudiced mass, which lags
-behind in the movement of educational progress.’
-In spite of this valuable testimony the consensus of
-opinion is rather on the other side. The schools of
-the Girls’ Public Day School Company have almost
-entirely abandoned the miscellaneous junior examinations,
-which lead to nothing, in favour of those conducted
-by the Joint Board of Oxford and Cambridge.
-This is the test applied to the leading boys’ public
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_69'>69</span>schools since 1873, and it is the nearest approach in
-England to an <i><span lang="de" xml:lang="de">Abiturienten</span></i> examination, since the
-higher certificate, if taken in the required subjects,
-exempts its holder from the first public examination
-at Oxford and Cambridge. The Board awards higher
-and lower certificates, and undertakes a general examination
-of the schools. The papers are sent to the
-school, and the examination is conducted there under
-the supervision of the head-mistress. The lower forms
-are also examined <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">viva voce</span></i> by a delegate of the Board,
-and reports on the general condition of the school and
-on the paper work are sent to the governing bodies.
-In this way the progress of different schools can be
-compared, and a general control kept, while there
-is little disturbance to the school course, since the
-questions are set on the work actually done. The
-Council of the Girls’ Public Day School Company
-itself awards certificates to girls who gain sixty per
-cent. of the marks in five papers.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The subjects of the higher certificate examination
-are arranged in four groups:—</p>
-
-<div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='sc'>Group I.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>(1) Latin.</div>
- <div class='line'>(2) Greek.</div>
- <div class='line'>(3) French.</div>
- <div class='line'>(4) German.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='sc'>Group II.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>(1) Mathematics (elementary).</div>
- <div class='line'>(2) Mathematics (additional).</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='sc'>Group III.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>(1) Scripture Knowledge.</div>
- <div class='line'>(2) English.</div>
- <div class='line'>(3) History.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='pageno' id='Page_70'>70</span><span class='sc'>Group IV.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>(1) Natural Philosophy (Mechanical Division).</div>
- <div class='line'>(2) Natural Philosophy (Physical Division).</div>
- <div class='line'>(3) Natural Philosophy (Chemical Division).</div>
- <div class='line'>(4) Physical Geography and Elementary Geology.</div>
- <div class='line'>(5) Biology.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>All candidates for a higher certificate must satisfy
-the examiners in at least four subjects taken from not
-less than three different groups, unless they take one
-subject in II. or IV., in which case they can choose
-three from I. No one may offer more than six
-subjects. The examination is so arranged as to
-hamper the school work as little as possible. Thus
-in languages great stress is laid on grammar, composition,
-and unprepared translation, while the set
-books can be selected from a long list; or (to give
-even greater freedom) it is allowed to ‘substitute with
-the consent of the Board other portions or periods
-which are at least equivalent to those specified in the
-prescribed list, provided that the extra expense involved
-be defrayed by the school authorities.’ This
-privilege of choice is extended also to Scripture,
-English and History.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The subjects for the lower certificate are:—</p>
-
-<div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='sc'>Group I.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>(1) Latin.</div>
- <div class='line'>(2) Greek.</div>
- <div class='line'>(3) French.</div>
- <div class='line'>(4) German.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='sc'>Group II.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>(1) Arithmetic.</div>
- <div class='line'>(2) Additional Mathematics.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='pageno' id='Page_71'>71</span><span class='sc'>Group III.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>(1) Scripture Knowledge.</div>
- <div class='line'>(2) English.</div>
- <div class='line'>(3) English History.</div>
- <div class='line'>(4) Geography.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='sc'>Group IV.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>(1) Mechanics and Physics.</div>
- <div class='line'>(2) Physics and Chemistry.</div>
- <div class='line'>(3) Chemistry and Mechanics.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>The higher certificate is often taken by girls in
-Form Lower VI., and they are then free in their last
-year to prepare for university scholarships or do
-other special work. The lower certificate is less
-popular, but it is sometimes taken in Form V.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Unquestionably the real problem before our girls’
-schools is to plan a curriculum which, while keeping
-in view the harmonious development of mind and
-body, and the preparation for a girl’s future life, shall
-yet give the necessary preparation for these final examinations.
-The reformers see hope in a more careful
-grouping of studies which shall break down the
-barriers between them, so that the subjects learnt at
-the same time should be allies rather than rivals.
-If fewer were taken up simultaneously, more time
-and interest might be given to each new requirement
-when it first appears on the scenes. After a couple
-of years, when considerable advance had been made,
-it might be relegated to a less important place and a
-fresh central study chosen. In the higher forms the
-threads would be once more drawn together, for then
-a pupil must be prepared to marshal all her forces for
-one great occasion. Experiments of this kind have
-been tried with much success in America, and there
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_72'>72</span>is a scheme for doing something of the kind in
-England. There is a plentiful field for experiments,
-and no doubt the curriculum question will be discussed
-at many a teachers’ meeting before the
-problem is solved. The High Schools will contribute
-their share to the work if they are to remain in
-the van as they have hitherto done.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Since the very establishment of the High Schools
-was a protest against the superficiality and showiness
-condemned by the Royal Commission, their main
-endeavour was to avoid the mistakes of their predecessors.
-Accomplishments were relegated to the
-background. Arithmetic and mathematics were
-taught for their mental training and the development
-of accuracy. ‘The noxious brood of catechisms’
-was abandoned in favour of a system of oral
-teaching: object lessons were introduced into the
-lower forms to induce observation, and in the
-science lessons facts were taught first-hand and not
-through the medium of books. The slipshod French
-chatter of the boarding-schools gave way to stricter
-grammatical training; parsing and analysis took the
-place of rote repetition of the parts of speech. Accuracy
-and thoroughness were the aim everywhere. At
-first the instruction was attended with many difficulties.
-There were few well-educated and no trained
-teachers, and very little agreement as to the really
-best methods. Hence it was natural that the revolt
-against the abuses of the past should produce some
-fresh faults. The reaction against the old text-books
-caused the introduction of a lecture-system;
-an excessive amount of note-taking, writing out, and
-correction by the teacher seemed to afford both parties
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_73'>73</span>the maximum of effort with the minimum of result:
-books were shunned as though the printed word were
-in itself hurtful, and much matter was laboriously
-dictated that might have been taken from any
-intelligent hand-book. The girls spoiled their handwriting,
-instead of straining their memories; that was
-the chief difference. Happily this plan has given
-way to more intelligent inductive methods, though
-even now there is a tendency in some schools to rely
-too much on written notes and too little on training
-the attention and memory. High School girls still
-need to learn how to use a book intelligently, and to
-appreciate knowledge that comes to them in an unaccustomed
-fashion. They have learnt the use of
-writing, to make ‘an exact man,’ but reading as a
-means of producing the ‘full’ woman has hardly as
-yet touched the High School system. This defect is
-now being realised and efforts will doubtless be made
-to remove it. Already the improvement in the
-teachers has produced a beneficent revolution in
-girls’ schools. To their inadequate education the
-Royal Commissioners largely attributed the unsatisfactory
-state of things they found. Side by side
-with the growth of the high schools went the movement
-for admitting women to the universities, both
-acting and re-acting on each other, since the high
-schools sent up their best pupils to college and the
-college sent them back to teach and train future
-students. A great proportion of the mistresses are
-now university women, while a smaller number have
-been trained at the Cambridge Teachers’ College or
-the Maria Grey or other Training Colleges—Kindergarten
-Colleges provide teachers for the little ones.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_74'>74</span>While the High School puts intellectual subjects
-first, it does not disregard accomplishments, though
-it seldom uses that word. Music is taught to all in
-the form of class-singing; piano and violin and solo
-singing are ‘extras,’ and do not belong to the general
-school work. Drawing has really won a more important
-place than before, because it is used as an
-educational factor, and not merely for purposes of
-show. The scheme of the Royal Drawing Society,
-organised by Mr. Ablett, is in use at nearly all the
-high schools. It is essentially a class system, and
-aims at training the eye, hand, and memory, rather
-than producing mere technical skill. The little ones
-in the first form are taught to present graphically
-objects interesting to themselves, by means of simple
-ruling, memory, and brush-work exercises. Special
-features are judgment at sight, memory and dictated
-work, the early introduction of drawing from objects
-and simple geometrical design. The schools are
-examined once a year. The examination takes place
-in the school itself under the superintendence of the
-head-mistress and drawing teacher, the work is sent
-up to London, and promotion to the next division
-depends upon the pass. Pupils who pass all the six
-divisions with honours are entitled to a full Drawing
-Certificate which has a commercial value for teaching
-purposes. Drawing, a little modelling, and needlework
-in the lower forms, represent at present the
-manual side of High School teaching. Cookery,
-dressmaking, etc. though popular in a different class
-of school, have hardly as yet been able to effect an
-entrance, nor does it seem altogether desirable that
-they should. That every school cannot teach everything
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_75'>75</span>is an axiom long ago accepted for boys’ education,
-and it must be realised for girls too, if the outcry
-against overstrain is to cease. Differentiation is the
-only safe course. It is partly the strength and partly
-the weakness of the High School that it represents,
-in fact, two schools: the first grade for girls who are
-to proceed to the university, and whose life at home
-makes a certain amount of literary and linguistic attainment
-desirable, and the second grade for those who
-must leave at fifteen or sixteen, and look forward to a
-career in business or to practical utility at home.
-In the lower forms the need of both is the same: a
-good general education; afterwards bifurcation seems
-desirable. When a school is not large enough to
-allow of this, it is the early-leaving girls who go to
-the wall. For these an entirely different scheme of
-education might be best—this too is a problem that
-will have to be faced. Physical training is also considered
-at most of the High Schools. Generally,
-fifteen minutes in the middle of the morning is given
-to some form of drill. In a few large schools, <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">e.g.</span></i>,
-the North London Collegiate, this daily drill is undertaken
-by a specialist. Usually it falls to one of the
-assistants, though it is very common for a special
-teacher of Swedish drill to visit the school once or
-twice a week, and take all the girls in divisions.
-The North London Collegiate and the Sheffield High
-School have gymnasiums, and take this side of the
-work very seriously. A physical-record book is kept,
-and every child on entering is examined by a lady
-doctor attached to the school. Particulars of sight,
-hearing, throat, breathing, lungs, heart, chest, and
-waist measurement are recorded, with any observations
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_76'>76</span>considered necessary. Suitable gymnastic
-exercises are then prescribed, and the examination
-repeated from time to time, and note made of any
-changed condition. Some such plan might be tried
-in all High Schools, were the parents willing to pay
-for it. The low fees charged cannot be expected to
-include medical supervision as well as all the other
-advantages. At present Sheffield and the Camden
-Schools are almost the only day-schools that consider
-the physical training as systematically as the intellectual.
-Still, the Girls’ Public Day School
-Company has now appointed a qualified lady
-inspector of physical training. Exercise doubtless
-plays an important part in every high school, but
-it is sometimes pursued with more zeal than knowledge.
-Just now athletics are taking a very prominent
-place. School playgrounds and playing fields have
-become a necessity. Girls have learned to play
-cricket, hockey, and rounders; they choose their
-elevens, elect their captains, and have their practices
-and matches much like their brothers. How far this
-particular kind of exercise is conducive to a girl’s
-health is another of the still unsolved problems.
-One thing is certain: these games do much to improve
-the general tone of a school. Their effect in producing
-loyalty and public spirit and promoting
-cheerfulness is quite as marked in girls as in boys,
-and the development of the play side, along with the
-greater liberty, the giving of responsibility as a
-reward, and all that belongs to a real public school
-are features at least as valuable as the improvement
-in the teaching. The High Schools have produced
-a new type of girl, self-reliant, courageous, truthful,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_77'>77</span>and eager for work. A full record of their after
-careers would prove interesting. Many pass straight
-from school to Oxford or Cambridge, a great many
-have gained scholarships, and the women’s colleges
-are largely recruited from their ranks. Some pass
-on to the medical schools, others gain County
-Council scholarships for technical or scientific work,
-large numbers are engaged in teaching, one or two
-have taken up gardening at Swanley Horticultural
-College, and a good many are making themselves
-generally useful at home as wives or daughters.
-Almost everywhere the High School girl proves
-herself capable, accurate, and trustworthy. She is
-sometimes blamed for a want of grace, such as
-belonged to a few rare ladies of the olden time, but
-she also lacks the helplessness and silliness that were
-prevalent then. Physically, morally, and intellectually,
-these schools may claim that they are improving
-large numbers, and with them surely the race.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_78'>78</span>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER V<br /> <span class='large'>ENDOWMENTS FOR GIRLS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>The history of endowed schools carries us far away
-into the misty realms of the past, before ever the
-Conqueror set foot in England and put back the
-clock of civilisation a hundred years. The earliest
-schools of which we have any knowledge were
-attached to the chief collegiate churches, where one
-officer would be specially told off to teach the boys,
-just as another would conduct the singing. Convent
-and school or church and school were invariably
-allied. The first separable school endowments were
-merely assignments of a specific part of the general
-endowment for the support of the chancellor or his
-deputy, the grammar school master. Like the earliest
-colleges these schools were founded ‘for prayer and
-study.’ The first person to reverse this order, and
-endow an independent school, was William of Wykeham,
-when in 1393 he founded Winchester College,
-to give free instruction to seventy poor boys, and so
-help them to holy orders or the university. Thus
-the new school became ‘a sovereign and independent
-corporation existing of, by and for itself, self-centred,
-self-controlled.’ ‘To make education, and that education
-not the education of clerics in theology or the
-canon law, the paramount and pronounced object of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_79'>79</span>an ecclesiastical institution, with all the paraphernalia
-of Papal bull and royal and episcopal license, was no
-small innovation. It was a new departure, which
-opened a new era in the world of education, and
-therefore of thought.’<a id='r13' /><a href='#f13' class='c011'><sup>[13]</sup></a> Later founders, following in
-the steps of William of Wykeham, gave sums of
-money for the training of youth in ‘grammar and
-good manners.’ Grammar meant Latin and Greek,
-the ‘key to all the sciences’; the manners were to be
-those of a true gentleman, ‘trouthe and honour, fredom
-and curteisie.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Following on these came the schools of the Reformation
-age, of which the most familiar example is
-Dean Colet’s foundation of St. Paul’s. These were
-established or assisted by the gifts of ‘pious founders,’
-or sometimes by diverting old funds originally destined
-for other purposes. Reading school was founded
-out of funds obtained by suppressing an almshouse
-for poor sisters, and under Elizabeth made into a
-grammar school ‘for educating the boys of the
-inhabitants of the said borough and others in literature.’
-Such schools were often placed under lay
-control, but the clerical idea was still in the background.
-Not priests, but ministers of the reformed
-religion, were needed, and learning became even
-more essential for men who had to make knowledge
-take the place of tradition.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The clerical purpose of most of these schools
-naturally tended to exclude girls or make them of
-secondary importance. What place was actually
-assigned to them in the 353 schools founded between
-the accession of Henry <span class='fss'>VIII.</span> and the death of James <span class='fss'>I.</span>
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_80'>80</span>is a problem that must be left to antiquarians.
-Certain it is that in the ensuing period the education
-of both sexes was more on an equality, since the
-standard was one of inferiority. An age of political
-disturbance was followed by an epoch of frivolity.
-Learning fell into contempt. The foundations of the
-eighteenth century were not grammar but charity
-schools, and though girls were not forgotten, it was
-with the hope of training servants for themselves
-that rich persons supported these schools. Not to
-give a liberal training, but to teach the poor to ‘keep
-their proper station,’ was the aim of eighteenth
-century founders.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Thus it came about that the Schools’ Inquiry
-Commissioners found a goodly number of girls in
-endowed schools of an elementary character, which
-would hardly bear comparison with the poorest of
-our modern board schools. While the King Edward
-Schools at Birmingham were giving 290 boys a
-classical and 300 a sound English education, none of
-these benefits fell to girls. In the elementary schools
-of the same foundation were 655 boys and 630 girls.
-At Christ’s Hospital, distinctly founded for both
-sexes, there were but 18 girls as against 1192 boys.
-Perhaps even the eighteen would have been better
-off elsewhere. They occupied a part of the junior
-boys’ school at Hertford; they had one ward under
-the charge of a nurse, their playground was a little
-over a quarter of an acre, they took their walks
-abroad under care of the nurse, they had no calisthenics
-or other physical training; their diet was
-bread and milk for breakfast, bread, meat, potatoes,
-and porter for dinner, bread and butter, milk and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_81'>81</span>water for supper. There was no admission examination,
-no leaving standard of attainment; they learned
-a little Scripture, English (so-called), and History and
-Geography from abridgments. On leaving, at about
-fifteen, most of them were apprenticed to business.
-It did not prove easy to place them. No wonder!</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A similar tale might be told of Bedford School.
-It was established in 1566 by Sir William Harpur
-and Dame Alice, his wife, ‘for the education, institution,
-and instruction of children and youth in
-grammar and good manners, to endure for ever.’
-Did child mean ‘boy’ in the minds of the founders?
-It seems uncertain; for, as the endowment increased
-in value and some of it became available for purposes
-other than the free grammar school, the interests of
-girls were also considered. At various periods of the
-eighteenth century fresh uses were found for the
-surplus money, and it is characteristic of the age that
-the feminine equivalent for a sound education was a
-dowry. £800 a year was set aside for marriage-portions
-for forty poor maids of the town of Bedford,
-to be distributed by lot, provided that a successful
-candidate was married within two calendar months of
-drawing the lot, and not to ‘a vagrant or other
-person of bad fame or reputation.’ Naturally there
-was not much difficulty about claiming the lot.
-Young men came from far and near to woo the
-‘maids of Bedford.’ Any residue was given to poor
-maid-servants who had resided five years at Bedford
-and were married within a year. The next addition
-was a hospital for boys and girls, an allotment of
-£700 to apprentice fifteen boys and five girls, and
-almshouses for ten old men and ten old women.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_82'>82</span>Early in this century preparatory and commercial
-schools were added; and girls were considered to the
-extent of a foundation where the head-mistress
-received £80 per annum as against the headmaster’s
-£1000. Which figures very eloquently sum up the
-relative estimation in which girls’ and boys’ education
-was held before 1848.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The Schools’ Inquiry Commission had made it
-abundantly clear that the educational endowments of
-the country needed overhauling. Not only had many
-of them increased greatly in value, but the establishment
-of public elementary schools was making the
-appropriation of endowments for elementary schools
-unnecessary. Again, many free schools were giving
-a liberal education to the sons of rich men. By the
-institution of even a low fee considerable sums would
-become available for the improvement of existing
-schools and the establishment of new ones. Then
-there were the various charitable endowments left
-for special purposes which no longer existed. In
-some cases money had been bequeathed to the poor
-in a parish, and was simply used for the relief of the
-rates. In London alone there were sums of £1500
-a year given for the relief of poor prisoners from
-debt. Among other out-of-date purposes were the
-ransom of Barbary captives, the destruction of
-lady-birds in Cornhill, etc. In a certain part of
-Worcestershire money had been left in 1620 for
-distributing bread among the poor of seven parishes
-and, as a secondary purpose, supporting a free
-grammar school, the surplus to be applied to repairing
-the church and bridges, and increasing, if
-expedient, the salary of the schoolmaster. By 1867
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_83'>83</span>the total income had increased to £657, and was
-applied to elementary schools and a free grammar
-school for fourteen boys. In other cases money was
-left for doles; with the result that in a certain parish,
-too richly endowed, extra waiters had to be put on
-at the gin-shops for two weeks before and after the
-distribution. In fact it was a case of money in the
-wrong place; education starving for want of funds
-that were only doing mischief. The regulation of
-the educational charities, and appropriation of those
-others which were doing more harm than good, was
-becoming an urgent necessity. Some changes had
-already been made under the Charitable Trusts Acts,
-but these were a good deal limited in their operations,
-and a more systematic reorganisation was undertaken
-under the Endowed Schools Act of 1869. This
-appointed three commissioners for four years to
-inquire into the endowments of England and Wales,
-and the first to hold this office were Lord Lyttelton,
-Canon Robinson, and Arthur Hobhouse, Q.C. In
-1874 this Commission was merged in the Board of
-Charity Commissioners for England and Wales.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘In framing schemes under this Act, provision
-shall be made as far as conveniently may be for
-extending to girls the benefits of endowments.’ This
-clause is the Magna Charta of girls’ education, the
-first acknowledgment by the State of their claim to a
-liberal education. This result was in great part due
-to those same men and women who had brought
-about the opening of the local examinations, and
-induced the Commission to take cognisance of girls’
-schools, and were striving, in face of all opposition, to
-win something like a university education for girls.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_84'>84</span>As early as 1860 at the Social Science Congress
-Madame Bodichon had entered a strong protest
-against the theory that boys’ education must be
-assisted and girls’ self-supporting. ‘Magnificent
-colleges and schools, beautiful architectural buildings
-costing thousands and thousands of pounds, rich
-endowments all over England, have been bestowed
-by past generations as gifts to the boys of the higher
-and middle class, and they are not the less independent
-and not a whit pauperised.’ At first this was
-but a voice crying in the wilderness, but the cry was
-taken up first by a few supporters, then by the
-whole country, and at last the <cite>Times</cite>, certainly not a
-revolutionary organ, declared that, ‘This country is
-most abundantly and redundantly endowed for men
-and boys, as if they were unable to take care of
-themselves, whereas there is little—indeed nothing,
-we may almost say—for that which is contemptuously
-called the weaker sex.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>An Association for Promoting the Application of
-Endowments to the Education of Women was formed,
-and offered to assist trustees of schools and other
-persons interested in education by supplying information
-and suggesting plans whereby available funds
-might best be applied to the education of women.
-It had a strong committee, which numbered among
-its members Miss Davies, Miss Clough, and Miss
-Bostock, as well as Mr. Bryce and Mr. Fitch, those
-constant and helpful supporters of all efforts to
-improve the education of girls. At this time the
-needs of the middle class seemed most urgent, since
-the State-aided schools were coming to the aid of the
-very poor, and the rich could pay the high terms
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_85'>85</span>that were then demanded by the better private
-schools. The immediate need seemed to be for
-schools of the second or third grade, <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">i.e.</span></i> those meant
-for girls who would leave school some time between
-fourteen and seventeen, and might be expected to
-pay fees ranging from £4 to £10 per annum.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Of such schools the first were founded out of the
-surplus revenues of King Edward’s Schools at Birmingham.
-Here four schools of the second grade
-were opened, each to accommodate about 160 pupils.
-These not only filled at once, but had to refuse
-admission to 500 candidates. In 1870 the Grey Coat
-Hospital at Westminster was opened; but on the
-whole progress was slow, and Mr. Roundell’s estimate
-in 1871 that there were in England and Wales
-225,000 girls waiting for secondary education was
-probably not wide of the mark.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In that same year an event occurred of far-reaching
-importance. The admirable institution so long associated
-with the name of Miss Frances Buss was transformed
-into a public school for girls. Readers of her
-interesting biography now realise, what had long been
-known to her friends, with what a single mind and
-earnest devotion she had worked for the cause nearest
-her heart—the establishment of public schools for
-girls. As early as 1850, her own private school had
-been reconstituted on public lines, with the help of
-the Rev. David Laing, one of the promoters of
-Queen’s College, but her ambition was to make it
-public in fact as well as in its methods. Attention
-had been drawn to her work by her evidence before
-the Schools’ Inquiry Commission, and now some of
-its members themselves came forward to help her.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_86'>86</span>If ever a school could lay claim to public aid, it was
-this one; and as soon as the enabling act was passed,
-active measures were taken to secure for it an endowment.
-With rare clear sight Miss Buss realised that
-a fully equipped school can only be self-supporting
-by the sacrifice of either suitable buildings, adequate
-salaries, or a scale of fees suited to the neighbourhood.
-She wanted to organise a pioneer school in
-which none of these good things should be lacking;
-nothing less than the best seemed good enough.
-Her enthusiasm and confidence were not to go unrewarded.
-In December 1870, a public meeting was
-held in the St. Pancras Vestry Hall, to announce the
-formation of a trust for carrying on the existing
-school, and starting another of a lower grade in connection
-with it. The upper school thus constituted
-took the name of the North London Collegiate, and
-in January 1871 removed with its two hundred pupils
-to 202 Camden Street, and at the same time the
-Lower or Camden School came into existence.
-According to Miss Buss’s principle, the fees under the
-new trust were calculated to meet current expenses
-only. The building was to be provided from other
-funds, as was done in boys’ public schools. A subscription
-list was opened, and every possible endeavour
-made to win public support. These were anxious
-years for Miss Buss; money came in slowly, and
-rather than abandon her principle she chose to
-sacrifice her salary. Nor did she wait in vain; the
-excellent work of the school won it recognition, and
-when in 1874 the Charity Commissioners were called
-upon to dispose of the Platt Charity derivable from
-property in St. Pancras, belonging to the Brewers’
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_87'>87</span>Company, they recommended that £20,000 be given
-to the North London Collegiate and Camden Schools.
-Thus building funds were secured, afterwards supplemented
-by a generous donation from the Clothworkers’
-Company. The scheme became law in 1875,
-and the two schools have continued since then to
-work side by side as endowed schools of the first and
-second grade, with different principals, but both
-under the superintendence of the head-mistress of
-the upper school. This arrangement has proved
-most valuable, as it promotes co-ordination instead of
-rivalry between the two schools. In other places
-where two grades exist side by side, it is not uncommon
-to find the lower one attempting with inadequate
-means to imitate the upper. The special needs of
-the class attending it are then neglected, and undue
-attention given to a few clever girls, for whom leave
-is sometimes obtained to stay beyond the appointed
-age. At the Frances Mary Buss Schools (as the two
-are now called in memory of their founder), this
-danger is obviated by a good system of scholarships
-from the lower to the upper.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At the Camden School girls may attend from seven
-to seventeen. The fees range from £5, 2s. to £8 per
-annum. The subjects taught are the usual English
-ones, with Class-Singing, Needlework, Drawing, and
-Book-keeping, and the elements of Science. Special
-attention is given to theoretical and practical Domestic
-Economy, and these classes receive assistance from
-the London County Council. French is the only
-foreign language taught. At the North London
-Collegiate, girls may attend between eight and nineteen,
-the list of subjects is much wider, and selections
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_88'>88</span>have to be made under the direction of the head-mistress.
-French, German, Latin and Greek, are
-included in the curriculum, and the practical subjects
-either omitted or reduced to a minimum. Since the
-work of the school is directed to the London University
-Examinations and the Cambridge Higher Locals,
-the course is necessarily laid out for girls who can
-stay long enough to enter the upper forms, and perhaps
-proceed to college. The fees range from
-£17, 11s. to £19, 14s. But girls over sixteen proceeding
-from the lower to the upper school pay only
-£14, 8s. Many pass up by means of scholarships.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>These two schools with their thousand pupils, fine
-buildings, and noble roll of honours won by old pupils
-stand pre-eminent among girls’ endowments. The
-principle that with a scale of fees adapted to meet
-current expenses the endowment should provide
-buildings and scholarships has been triumphantly
-vindicated by the Frances Mary Buss Schools.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Almost simultaneous with the endowment of these
-schools was the appropriation of some part of the
-funds of the Bradford Grammar School, ‘to supply a
-liberal education for girls by means of a school or
-schools within the borough of Bradford.’ Public
-opinion was, however, hardly ripe for such a diversion
-of any large part of an old endowment, and although,
-as Mr. Forster pointed out at the inaugural meeting,
-a charter of Charles <span class='fss'>II.</span> had assigned the land ‘for
-the better teaching, instructing, and bringing up of
-children and youth,’ ‘which terms are of common
-gender,’ the money assigned to the girls would not
-have been sufficient to start the school, but for the
-generosity of the Ladies’ Educational Committee,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_89'>89</span>which raised a sum of £5000 for purchasing the
-buildings. Thus the Bradford Girls’ Grammar
-School came into being. The fees are £12 to £15, 15s.,
-and girls may stay till eighteen or nineteen. It is
-thus technically of the first grade, and as such prepares
-the pupils in the highest class for the university.
-Many, however, leave school long before attaining
-this stage, and this appears to constitute one of the
-special difficulties of North of England schools.
-There is, however, a wide list of subjects which may
-be taught, and from these the head-mistress arranges
-each pupil’s curriculum. As the fees are the same as
-those of a high school, the endowment fund helps
-to supply better salaries, apparatus, etc. and thus to
-increase efficiency. A scholarship fund of £1000 has
-been provided by the generosity of two private
-donors, and forty-one scholars have by its help
-already proceeded to the university.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Manchester also has a first-grade endowed school,
-which originated like so many others in those active
-years that followed 1870. Here too the initiative was
-taken by an association for promoting the higher
-education of women. The school was started in
-1873 by subscription, and in 1876 the present site in
-Dover Street was secured for building, and over
-£5000 raised for the purpose. A few years later, an
-opportunity occurred of securing some public money,
-as the wealthy foundation of Hulme’s Charity was to
-be reorganised. The school secured a share, receiving
-a capital grant of £1500, and £1000 a year on condition
-that the governing body should be reconstituted
-to give it a more representative character.
-Under the new arrangement, there are representatives
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_90'>90</span>of the Hulme Trustees, Oxford, Cambridge, Victoria,
-and London, Owens College, and the Manchester
-School Board, as well as other co-opted members.
-This representative character has proved of the greatest
-value to the school, which takes rank as one of
-the first in the country. The buildings are admirable
-in convenience and arrangement, and the scholarship
-fund amounts to £640 a year. Two smaller schools
-lately established by the governors at Pendleton and
-North Manchester have somewhat diminished the
-numbers of the parent school, but prove a boon to
-girls in those parts, since the means of communication
-at Manchester are somewhat inadequate. Only
-Manchester girls are received in the High School, or
-those residing with near relations. There are no
-boarding-houses; it is a purely local school. The
-fees are nine to fifteen guineas per annum. Manchester
-has been specially successful in ‘assimilating’ those
-girls that enter the high school from the elementary
-schools, several of whom have passed on to the
-university with scholarships, and been very successful
-in their after careers. Its chief want is a system
-of scholarships from the elementary schools, to
-enable it to extend its useful work, and take a place
-in a national system of education.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The most complete schemes of endowed schools
-for girls are at Birmingham and Bedford, and they
-are typical of two different systems. The King
-Edward’s endowment, one of the largest in England,
-had been so mismanaged that in 1828 only 115 boys
-were being educated on it, and the school building
-was in ruins. In 1831 by a Chancery scheme, two
-new schools, Classical and English, were established,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_91'>91</span>and twenty years later there were sufficient funds
-to maintain eight elementary schools as well. Immediately
-after the passing of the ‘Endowed Schools
-Act’ further changes were made. The schools were
-reorganised in three grades (high, middle, lower middle),
-and four grammar schools founded for girls.
-When the spread of State-aided elementary schools
-made the third class unnecessary, these were abolished,
-and a girl’s High School substituted. This forms the
-last link in the chain; and a close connection between
-different grades by means of scholarships, leading
-gradually upward from the elementary school to the
-university, gives the necessary cohesion to the system.
-The High School can accommodate 260 girls, and the
-four grammar schools 780. Fees are charged in all,
-but not so high as to cover the cost of education.
-At the High School it is calculated that the expense
-of each pupil is £20 per annum, while the fee is £9.
-The endowment makes up the deficiency, and permits
-the reservation of one-third of the places for foundation
-scholars. Further, it enables the governors to
-offer their teachers good salaries, and to conduct the
-whole on those generous lines without which it is
-impossible to provide a liberal education for either
-girls or boys. In educational organisation as in
-municipal matters, Birmingham is a model to the
-rest of the country. It shows how an old endowment,
-sufficiently large and carefully distributed, can
-be made to meet the needs of all classes of a community.
-‘We cannot reform our ancestors,’ as George
-Eliot so pertinently remarks, nor can we set down
-rich old endowments in the midst of places that have
-never known such benefactions. But fresh money is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_92'>92</span>coming in from new sources, and we want object
-lessons in its application. Birmingham teaches the
-value of co-ordination, and incidentally the use to
-which public funds may be put in bringing a good education
-within the reach of the largest possible number.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The position of Bedford is different. A small town
-with no special industry happens, through the munificence
-of one of its ancient citizens, to be possessed
-of one of the largest endowments in the kingdom.
-For many years its benefits were confined to the
-inhabitants of Bedford, and as a result the population
-was constantly increased by persons who were
-glad to get free education for their sons. Many, no
-doubt, were well able to pay for it, but preferred,
-naturally enough, to get it for nothing. At the time
-of the Schools’ Inquiry Commission, the endowment
-was maintaining:—(1) A grammar school with 204
-boys. (2) A commercial school with 358 boys. (3)
-A preparatory commercial school with 237 boys; as
-well as elementary schools for nearly 1200 children
-and a hospital for 13 boys and 13 girls, almshouses,
-etc. Considerable as were these numbers, they fell
-far short of the possibilities of the endowment.
-The institution of a fee, even a low one, would
-at once set free a goodly sum, and something,
-if only as compensation for the marriage portions,
-was due to the girls. A new scheme providing for
-a fresh distribution of the funds was drawn up in
-1873, but the girls’ schools did not come into existence
-till 1882. Under the present arrangement
-one-eleventh of the available funds is used for
-eleemosynary purposes, two-elevenths go to the elementary
-schools, which until quite lately have served
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_93'>93</span>all the needs of the town and rendered a schoolboard
-unnecessary. The remainder is divided equally
-between the two higher schools—boys’ Grammar and
-girls’ High—and the two Modern schools. This looks
-very much like putting girls and boys on an equality,
-but a clause in the scheme explains that three boys
-are to be considered equal to five girls. In other
-respects the money is evenly divided; it is shared
-out annually ‘in proportion to the average number
-of scholars attending the said schools respectively
-during the preceding year,’ a curious application of
-a Scriptural doctrine, by which a rise in numbers
-in the boys’ school entails a corresponding deficit
-in the exchequer of the girls’ school and <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">vice versa</span></i>.
-Still, rightly managed, there is enough for all.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At Bedford no attempt is made to co-ordinate the
-work of the two schools, or to establish any but the
-very slightest connection—by means of a few scholarships—between
-the elementary and modern schools.
-Hence the benefit of co-operation is lost. The great
-difference between the fees—£9 to £12 at the High,
-£4 at the Modern school—makes active rivalry impossible.
-It is the state of the home exchequer
-that settles the choice of a school, far more than
-the preference for one system of education or a
-girl’s probable after-career. It is curious that, in
-spite of the general outcry for cheap schools, the
-low fee of the Modern School has not proved as
-great an attraction as was expected; it has filled
-but slowly, and is only now approaching 200, while
-the High School averages an attendance of 600. To
-some extent the curriculum of both schools is the
-same, but the greater economy requisite in the Modern
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_94'>94</span>school necessitates larger classes, less complete equipment,
-and lower salaries for the teachers. To families
-in straitened circumstances, local shopkeepers, and
-small farmers within a short train journey of the
-town, the school is a great boon; but it seems certain
-that at Bedford, whatever may be the case elsewhere,
-all who can afford the higher fee are willing to pay
-it for the sake of the greater social prestige of the
-High School. Prejudice of this kind must always be
-reckoned with, however carefully Parliament or Royal
-Commissioners may provide on paper for the needs
-of each class of the population.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>On the other hand, the High School has more than
-fulfilled anticipations. Not only does it provide a
-first-class education for the sisters of grammar school
-boys, it has won a position and prestige of its own
-which attract considerable numbers from a distance.
-There are now several flourishing boarding-houses,
-all working in close connection with the school, and
-under the superintendence of the head-mistress. In
-this way Bedford High School, like the Cheltenham
-Ladies’ College, St. Leonard’s School at St. Andrews,
-and a very few others, has taken a position somewhat
-analogous to that of a boys’ public school, sought
-for its own sake, and not merely on account of its
-nearness or cheapness. The large numbers, ample
-staff, and sufficient funds enable the head-mistress
-to consider the needs of individual pupils more carefully
-than could be done in a small school. Forms
-are joined and subdivided lengthwise and crosswise,
-so as to bring together in small groups girls who
-are to give a good deal of time to Classics, Modern
-Languages, English, Drawing or Science, or any other
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_95'>95</span>special subject, thus avoiding the scrappiness with
-which the modern curriculum is sometimes charged.
-The girl who aims at the university is prepared for
-it, the girl who has a real taste for accomplishments
-receives first-rate instruction in music, drawing, etc.
-and at the same time is encouraged to give special
-attention to English. There is no attempt to force
-all through the same mill. The school is most fortunate
-in its buildings, which are beautiful as well
-as convenient. Hall, gymnasium, studio, laboratory,
-padded rooms for practising, nothing seems wanting
-to the equipment. It is pleasant to wander through
-the airy and tasteful class-rooms and realise that this
-is one of the many good things which the redistribution
-of endowments has given to girls. At Bedford
-there is not much risk of forgetting whence the
-money comes. The Harpur Trust seems to give its
-character to the town. The numerous schools, the
-Harpur Trust offices, the rows of almshouses, the
-‘Harpur’ and ‘Dame Alice’ streets are suggestive of
-a town that has grown up about its schools, almost
-as Oxford and Cambridge have about their colleges.
-In the old church close by the founders lie buried;
-ever succeeding generations of boys and girls are
-entering into their inheritance.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Among the eight largest endowments of which the
-Commissioners had to take cognisance was that of
-Dulwich. In few places was the reformer’s hand
-more needed than in the assignment of those large
-sums which had accumulated under the charity of
-Alleyn’s College of God’s Gift. At the time of the
-Schools’ Inquiry Commission—that date which marks
-a new starting-point in educational chronology, it
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_96'>96</span>maintained only an upper school with 130 boys, and
-a lower school with 90. In 1895 when some of the
-results of twenty-five years were summarised, it was
-supporting:—(1) A first-grade boys’ school—Dulwich
-College—with 630 scholars. (2) A second grade boys’
-school—Alleyn’s School—with 540 boys; and contributing,
-(3) To James Allen’s Girls’ School a capital
-sum of £6000, and £650 a year. (4) To the Central
-Foundation Schools—boys and girls—a capital sum
-of £11,000 and £2300 a year. (5) To St. Saviour’s
-Grammar School, Southwark, a capital sum of £20,000
-and £500 a year.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>This is a result that should please all parties. In
-spite of the additional advantages given to boys, the
-girls gain two schools; for although the James Allen
-school had been founded as early as 1741 by James
-Allen, master of Dulwich College, it was really nothing
-more than an elementary school until its reconstruction
-in 1882 with a part of the Dulwich endowment.
-It can accommodate 300 girls, has eight class-rooms,
-laboratory, assembly hall, dining-room, recreation
-ground of two and a half acres, and a completely
-equipped gymnasium where lessons are given by an
-expert teacher. With a £6 fee it is always full,
-and admirably serves its purpose of ‘supplying to
-girls of the middle class a sound practical education.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The fourth of the large endowments belongs to
-St. Olave’s Grammar School, and a school for girls is
-in course of establishment here.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The Tonbridge endowment, administered by the
-Skinners’ Company, now supports a school for girls
-at Stamford Hill.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_97'>97</span>The Manchester Grammar School fund has of late
-decreased in value, and has nothing to offer girls; but
-here they have had help from another quarter.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The Jones foundation at Monmouth now provides
-for 500 boys, and 100 girls, besides 50 elementary
-scholars, in place of 180 boys at the date of the
-Commission.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Of the eight endowments, by far the largest was
-that of Christ’s Hospital, and here there was no question
-as to the original intentions. The treatment of
-girls had been so unfair as to arouse general indignation.
-But the whole foundation really needed overhauling.
-After long delays an elaborate scheme was
-drawn up, providing for the removal into the country
-of the boys’ school, proper boarding-school provision
-for girls, and large day-schools in London for both
-sexes. Of all this, now nearly twenty years after the
-passing of the Endowed Schools Act, very little has
-been done, though the removal of the boys’ school
-from London to Horsham is now definitely settled.
-At Hertford the girls’ school has been reformed in its
-methods, and additional ward accommodation provided,
-but by a perverse system of election it is made
-very difficult to fill even that space. Girls can only
-be admitted on presentation of a governor—very difficult
-to obtain—or by a competition, to which only
-three classes are admitted. They must come either
-from—(1) Certain endowed schools in England and
-Wales, or (2) Public elementary schools in the London
-School Board district, or (3) Certain parishes which
-have hitherto exercised the right of presentation. As
-(1) and (2) represent the classes which are best provided,
-and least in need of the benefits of a cheap boarding-school,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_98'>98</span>and (3) is, by its nature, very restricted, it is not
-strange that it has hitherto proved impossible to fill
-even the 140 available places, though there are thousands
-of girls in rural districts to whom a school of
-this kind would prove a priceless boon. There seems
-a curious irony about offering such nominations to
-the Bedford Modern School where girls are receiving
-an excellent education for £4 a year, and taking no
-thought for those less favoured places, which, because
-they have no endowment of their own, are therefore
-shut out from one that they could use. Of course all
-this is only temporary, but the transition stage seems
-a very long one. As far as girls are concerned, the
-chief needs seem to be the establishment of several
-cheap boarding-schools, the election of some women
-on the council of almoners, and a change in the present
-system of electing scholars. Let us hope that when
-the reforms come at last, they may prove to have been
-worth the waiting.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Besides these eight chief endowments, there are
-many others of which girls have now received a share.
-There are now in England and Wales over eighty girls’
-endowed schools of a secondary type, though the
-distribution is curiously uneven; <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">e.g.</span></i> the West Riding
-of Yorkshire has nine, while Surrey has only one.
-Much has been done, and much remains to be done,
-but it is well that every kind of experiment should be
-tried, so that the newer schemes may be improved
-by the experience of the older ones.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Endowed schools are technically supposed to be of
-three grades, according to the age at which the pupils
-usually leave. For the first the limit is eighteen or
-nineteen; for the second, sixteen or seventeen; for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_99'>99</span>the third, fourteen or fifteen. All admit them at
-seven or eight. There is something peculiarly English
-about this arrangement, which, on paper at any rate,
-appears needlessly wasteful. The natural division
-seems the American one. Here there are three
-successive grades, organically connected, by which a
-child may go through his whole school career, passing,
-as it were, from the kindergarten at one end to
-the university at the other. This arrangement of
-schools, all free, and meant for all the children of the
-community, is in harmony with the American democratic
-idea, but would be impossible in the midst
-of English class prejudice. Still even our social exclusiveness
-does not require such extreme differentiation,
-and experience shows that a system of
-three parallel lines, distinguished chiefly by breaking
-off at different points, is not altogether necessary.
-The problem, as it presents itself for girls, is not,
-however, the same as for boys. Boys’ schools of the
-highest grade naturally prepare their pupils for the
-university, and as most of them are boarding-schools,
-they are exempt from considering local needs. The
-first public schools for girls were day schools. At the
-time of the first Endowed Schools Act, university
-education for girls had hardly made any way. Girton
-was just struggling into existence, the other colleges
-were but a dream of the future. London still withheld
-its degrees. What girls needed most was a sound
-general education given cheaply in day schools.
-Hence the low fees fixed by the Girls’ Public Day
-School Company, and the still lower ones charged at the
-endowed schools of the second and third grades, which
-at that time met the most crying want. By 1883 ten
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_100'>100</span>of these third grade schools in London were educating
-over two thousand girls. Among them were the
-Greycoat Hospital at Westminster, and the Roan
-School, Greenwich, and others that have since extended
-their sphere of work up to the second grade limit.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The course of events during the last few years has
-necessitated these and many other changes. The
-Elementary Schools Act of 1870, and the spread of
-Higher Grade schools, while largely removing the need
-for the third grade, have necessitated some means of
-transition from the primary to the secondary school.
-On the other hand, the rise of women’s colleges,
-technical institutes, etc. and the increasing number
-of girls who, whether from choice or necessity, expect
-to earn their own living, necessitates a levelling-up of
-schools, and a closer connection with places of higher
-education. Direct connection with the primary
-schools on the one hand, and the women’s colleges on
-the other, is now a necessity. Many of the Charity
-Commissioners’ schemes have attempted to supply
-this. The Roan School at Greenwich is a good
-instance. It was founded in 1643 out of money left
-by John Roan to clothe and educate poor children,
-and reorganised in 1873, the income of £2000 being
-divided between 350 boys and 320 girls. There is a
-special fund for foundation exhibitions for elementary
-scholars, and others are admitted on passing an
-examination, at half-fees—£3 instead of £6. Of the
-total number of pupils, about two-fifths come from
-the elementary schools. Thus the work of the two is
-brought into very close connection, and the Roan
-School includes in itself both second and third grade
-functions. It provides for the upward passage by
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_101'>101</span>exhibitions, many of which are held at Bedford
-College, or in Wales.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Scholarships of both kinds are also given by the
-Skinners’ School at Stamford Hill. Some of the
-entrance exhibitions are restricted to pupils from
-elementary schools, others are awarded by open competition.
-The two leaving exhibitions, of the value
-of thirty-three and thirty guineas respectively, are
-tenable for four years, at any place of advanced
-education approved by the governors. The school
-fees range from £6 to £10. The work of the Sixth
-Form leads to the higher certificate of the Joint Board
-or the London Matriculation, both of which serve the
-purposes of a leaving and entrance examination. This
-school might therefore be regarded as a combination
-of the three grades. Similar work is done by the
-Mary Datchelor School at Camberwell, the Aske’s
-School, Hatcham, and several others. Such schools,
-with a definite connection upward and downward, are
-among the chief educational needs of the day. Those
-now at work seem to be always full, and they draw
-their pupils from a class that look forward to a career
-of steady work. Clerks, civil servants, teachers,
-typists, telegraphists, milliners, nurses; these, and
-many others, occur in the lists of old pupils’ occupations.
-A useful general education, either as an end
-in itself or as a basis for higher or technical education,
-is given, and these schools have taken the place of the
-third rate private schools, which was all that had
-previously been offered to middle class girls. The
-expression of opinion by the Royal Commissioners, in
-1895, that ‘a second grade school, which prepares for
-the local University College is often more suitable for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_102'>102</span>a certain section of the population than a first grade
-school linked to Oxford and Cambridge,’ applies,
-<i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">mutatis mutandis</span></i>, to girls as well as boys. For both,
-a part of the highest work must be supplied by
-boarding-schools.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But when all the endowments hitherto made available
-are considered, the share of the girls is still far
-too small. In some counties there is hardly anything
-available for them. Against this disparity must be
-set the benefactions of recent years, many of which are
-specially meant for girls and women. The foundation
-of the City of London Girls’ School, by William Ward,
-in 1881, with an endowment of £20,000; the Pfeiffer
-Charity of £59,000, for the benefit of women’s education,
-the numerous scholarships given by city companies,
-the establishment of Holloway and Westfield
-Colleges, and of many other foundations for both
-sexes, belong to the twenty years between 1875 and
-1895. If girls have lacked much in the past, they
-are inheriting the present. As the Charity Commissioners
-remarked, when reviewing a record of a
-quarter a century: ‘As to one particular branch of
-educational endowments, viz. that for the advancement
-of the secondary and superior education of
-girls and women, it may be anticipated that future
-generations will look back to the period immediately
-following upon the Schools’ Inquiry Commission, and
-the consequent passing of the Endowed Schools Act,
-as marking an epoch in the creation and application
-of endowments for that branch of education, similar
-to that which is marked for the education of boys
-and men by the Reformation.’</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_103'>103</span>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER VI<br /> <span class='large'>THE WOMEN’S COLLEGES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>The chief gain that this half-century has brought to
-women’s education is their admission to the universities.
-It is the key-stone of the arch, without
-which the rest of the fabric could have neither
-stability nor permanence. The schools look to them
-for their teachers and their standard, and gain thereby
-an element of fixity hitherto lacking. If boys’ education
-may be blamed for excessive conservatism, that
-of girls has suffered from extreme mobility. Since
-girls’ schools led nowhere, and acknowledged no outside
-guidance, their aim was perpetually changing,
-according to the ever-varying dictates of sentiment
-or expediency. Independent and unorganised, they
-lacked all connection with past and future; and it is
-this that the universities are now giving them.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Apart from its intrinsic importance, this reform is
-remarkable for the speed and completeness with which
-it has been accomplished. Thirty years ago it had
-hardly been seriously contemplated; now eight of
-the ten universities of Great Britain teach their
-students without distinction of sex, while two others
-admit them to lectures, examinations, and many other
-privileges. All this has not been brought about without
-hard work and persevering effort; and it would
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_104'>104</span>be vain to seek the origin of all the separate forces
-that, acting and re-acting on one another, have produced
-this result. Many were the workers, and the
-honours of the pioneers must be shared, but among
-those who led the way a chief place belongs to Miss
-Emily Davies. From the first she realised that the
-reform in girls’ education must begin at the top. To
-quote her own words: ‘The incompleteness of the
-education of schoolmistresses and governesses is a
-drawback which no amount of intelligence and goodwill
-can enable them entirely to overcome. It is
-obvious that for those who have to impart knowledge
-the primary requisite is to possess it; and it is one of
-the great difficulties of female teachers that they are
-called upon to instruct others while being inadequately
-instructed themselves. The more earnest and conscientious
-devote their leisure hours to continued
-study, and no doubt much may be done in this way;
-but it is at the cost of overwork, often involving the
-sacrifice of health, to say nothing of the disadvantages
-of working alone, without a teacher, often without
-good books, and without the wholesome stimulus of
-companionship.’<a id='r14' /><a href='#f14' class='c011'><sup>[14]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But, important as was the improvement in the
-education of the teachers, Miss Davies had a wider
-aim in view for the college she meant to found. It
-was to bring a really liberal education within
-reach of all women, apart from any special professional
-aim. Girls, as well as boys, should have opportunities
-given them to carry on their studies in
-congenial and stimulating surroundings, unhampered
-by the cares of earning and unhindered by conflicting
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_105'>105</span>duties. To them, too, the college life was to bring that
-joyous spring-time of youth, friendship, and unfettered
-delight of study and leisure which had hitherto been
-withheld from them. Such was the generous purpose
-in the minds of a few men and women who were
-trying to fire others with their own enthusiasm.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Even at the time of the Schools’ Inquiry Commission
-this question had been mooted, and a memorial
-had been sent up pointing out the want of a
-system of ‘instruction and discipline adapted to
-advanced students, combined with examinations
-testing and attesting the value of the education
-received.’ The report of the Commission and the
-discussion it aroused helped to give publicity to the
-proposal, and at last it was resolved to test the
-feasibility of the scheme by actual experiment. In
-1867 a committee had been formed to consider the
-possibility of founding a college ‘designed to hold in
-relation to girls’ schools and home teaching a position
-analogous to that occupied by the universities towards
-the public schools for boys.’ It was resolved to try
-an experiment on a small scale, and proceed further
-as funds became available. At Hitchin, near Cambridge,
-a small house was hired for the six students
-who presented themselves, and in October 1869 they
-began the work prescribed to candidates for degrees
-by the University of Cambridge. Insignificant as
-these beginnings may seem, they were of momentous
-importance in the history of women’s education. The
-founders of this, the first women’s college in England,
-had to choose once for all between a women’s university,
-with its exclusive studies and degrees, and admission
-to the great universities of the country. The
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_106'>106</span>question of a women’s university debated and vetoed
-in 1897 had really been finally settled in 1870, when
-the first lady students requested and received permission
-to be examined in the papers set for the
-Previous Examination.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The prospectus of the new college issued in the
-autumn of 1869 contained this clause: ‘The Council
-shall use such efforts as from time to time they may
-think most expedient and effectual to obtain for the
-students of the College admission to the examinations
-for the degrees of the University of Cambridge, and
-generally to place the College in connection with the
-University.’ This ambitious programme thus early
-laid down for the infant College must have provoked
-many smiles; and looking back now after the lapse
-of nearly thirty years, we hardly know whether to
-wonder most at the confidence placed by the founders
-in the hitherto untried abilities of girls or at
-the success which so abundantly justified their
-anticipations.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was thus made clear from the outset that the
-new college was to be no self-centred institution, but
-was to derive its teaching, inspiration, and standard
-from Cambridge, provided always that the University
-were willing to accept the new responsibilities thus
-proposed. For this end it seemed desirable to make
-an informal experiment, and through the kindness of
-the individual examiners five of the students were
-submitted to the test of the Previous Examination.
-All were successful; four attained the standard
-required for a First Class, and one that of a Second.
-Two years later three students entered for Tripos
-Examinations in the same informal manner, two
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_107'>107</span>passing in classics and one in mathematics. Thus
-three years after the opening of the College three
-of its students had fulfilled all the conditions required
-by the University of Cambridge for a degree
-in Honours. That was a sufficient answer to the
-doubters; the founders had justified their action.
-Henceforth the future of the College was fixed.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Meanwhile vigorous efforts were being made to
-raise money for the permanent building to be erected
-in or near Cambridge. This was no easy task. Generous
-donations for the needs of women were at that
-time unknown. The <cite>Quarterly Review</cite> recommended
-‘simplicity of living and the strictest economy’ as
-alone suitable for women who might have to earn
-their own living, and desired to combine with this
-‘training in housekeeping, regular needlework&nbsp;... such
-cultivation as will make a really good wife,
-sister, and daughter to educated men.’ Against such
-selfish and confused notions it was difficult to contend.
-As Miss Shirreff wrote at the time: ‘Never yet have a
-company of women been able to scrape together funds
-for an object specially their own, be it club, or reading-room,
-or hospital, or, as now, a college.’ It is pleasant
-to realise that this is no longer true, and that the
-writer of these despairing words lived to see the
-change she had helped to bring about.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The money came in, though slowly. Madame
-Bodichon generously gave the first thousand pounds,
-and among the earliest subscribers was George Eliot.
-Lady Stanley was another who gave liberal aid.
-The subscription list gradually grew longer; a piece
-of land was secured at Girton, near Cambridge, and
-building began. In 1873 it was ready for occupation,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_108'>108</span>and henceforth became the home of the Ladies’ College,
-now incorporated as Girton College, with Miss
-Davies installed as Mistress. As the numbers increased,
-fresh additions were made to the building,
-but the aim and work of the College remained unchanged.
-Students were prepared for the Ordinary
-and Honours Degree Examinations by means of
-lectures given at Girton, and, as these were gradually
-opened to women, by attendance at some of the professorial
-and intercollegiate lectures in Cambridge.
-They were informally examined with the same papers
-as were set to the men, and in every detail of preliminary
-test, length of residence, etc. they conformed
-to the rules laid down by the University for its
-members. In lieu of the degree, which could not
-be conferred upon them, they received from the
-College a ‘degree certificate,’ and year by year fresh
-proofs were given of the general efficiency of the
-College and its students. In this way informal connection
-with the University was combined with formal
-adherence to its regulations. Thus matters continued
-till 1881.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Side by side with the beginnings of Girton, another
-movement had been at work. This was largely due
-to the North of England Council, which by promoting
-examinations for women over eighteen, had been
-establishing a fresh link between the University of
-Cambridge and the education of girls. A Cambridge
-committee established courses of lectures in all the
-subjects of examination. These naturally attracted
-many students from a distance, and the same persons
-who had organised the lectures, soon had to face the
-problem of housing the audience. Mr. Henry Sidgwick,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_109'>109</span>to whose generous and unfailing assistance
-women owe so much, invited Miss Clough to come
-and take charge of a house of residence for women
-students. This house—No. 64 Regent Street—became
-the germ of Newnham. As the numbers increased,
-removal to larger premises became necessary, and
-Merton Hall was taken. When this too had to be
-abandoned it was resolved to build. Funds were
-raised by the Newnham Hall Company, and eventually
-this was amalgamated with the association which had
-charge of the lectures, and the two were incorporated
-as Newnham College. This development from small
-beginnings, under the Principal’s able management
-with the constant help and sympathy of Mr. and Mrs.
-Sidgwick, has now been fully made known through
-Miss A. B. Clough’s interesting biography of her aunt.
-Newnham has seen some changes of policy and
-programme since its first beginnings in 1870, but its
-true aim, to advance the education of women at
-Cambridge, has always remained the same.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Since Newnham originated in a house of residence
-for girls preparing for the Higher Local Examination,
-this was naturally the goal set before the first
-students; but very early in its history some few who
-were more ambitious or better prepared, found this
-aim insufficient, and began, like the Girton students,
-to study for the degree examinations. The Higher
-Local, at first the goal, gradually receded in importance,
-and became a preliminary instead of a final, but
-it was not made compulsory to follow the Cambridge
-curriculum exactly, and in those early days great
-latitude in choice of subjects, examinations, length of
-residence, etc. was allowed to Newnham students.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_110'>110</span>Thus matters continued till 1880, when special
-attention was called to Girton by the distinguished
-success of one of its students, who was declared by
-the examiners in the mathematical Tripos to be equal
-to the eighth wrangler. There was now a ten years’
-record of good work to show, and the time seemed
-opportune for bringing about a more formal connection
-with the University. A memorial was drawn up
-and presented, which called attention to the ‘repeated
-instances of success on the part of students of Girton
-and Newnham Colleges, in satisfying the examiners
-in various degree examinations at Cambridge,’ and
-praying the Senate to ‘grant to properly qualified
-women the right of admission to the examinations
-for University degrees, and to the degrees conferred
-according to the result of such examinations.’ This
-was signed by 8500 persons; other petitions to the
-same effect were received, and as a result a syndicate
-was appointed to consider the matter. Their report
-advocated the formal admission of women to the
-Honours examinations of the University, and the
-publication of a separate class-list, indicating the
-position of each in the general list. They did not,
-however, recommend conferring degrees on women,
-nor did they advise admitting them to the Ordinary
-Degree examinations. The recommendations were
-embodied in three Graces, passed by the Senate
-on February 24, 1881, a red-letter day in the
-annals of College women. These are the most
-important:—</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘1. That female students who have fulfilled the
-conditions respecting length of residence and standing
-which members of the University are required to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_111'>111</span>fulfil, be admitted to the Previous Examination and
-the Tripos Examinations.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘2. That such residence shall be kept—(<em>a</em>) at Girton
-College; or (<em>b</em>) at Newnham College; or (<em>c</em>) within the
-precincts of the University, under the regulations of
-one or other of these Colleges; or (<em>d</em>) in any similar
-institution within the precincts of the University which
-may be recognised hereafter by grace of the Senate.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘3. That certificates of residence shall be given by
-the authorities of Girton College or Newnham College
-or other similar institution hereafter recognised by
-the University, in the same form as that which is
-customary in the case of members of the University.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘4. That except as is provided in regulation 5,
-female students shall, before admission to a Tripos
-Examination, have passed the Previous Examination
-(including the Additional subjects), or one of
-the examinations which excuse members of the
-University from the Previous Examination.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘5. That female students who have obtained an
-Honour certificate in the Higher Local Examination,
-may be admitted to a Tripos Examination, though
-such certificate does not cover the special portions of
-the Higher Local Examination, which are accepted
-by the University in lieu of parts or the whole of the
-Previous Examination; provided that such students
-have passed in Group B, (Language): and Group C,
-(Mathematics).</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘6. That no female student shall be admitted to
-any part of any of the examinations of the University
-who is not recommended for admission by the
-authorities of the College, or other institution, under
-whose regulations she has resided.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_112'>112</span>‘7. That after each examination a class-list of the
-female students who have satisfied the examiners
-shall be published by the examiners at the same
-time with the class-list of members of the University,
-the standard for each class, and the method of
-arrangement in each class being the same in the
-two class lists.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘8. That in each class of female students in which
-the names are arranged in order of merit, the place
-which each of such students would have occupied in
-the corresponding class of members of the University
-shall be indicated.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘9. That the examiners for the Tripos shall be at
-liberty to state, if the case be so, that a female
-student who has failed to satisfy them, has in their
-opinion reached a standard equivalent to that required
-from members of the University for the ordinary B.A.
-degree.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘10. That to each female student who has satisfied
-the examiners in a Tripos Examination, a certificate
-shall be given by the University stating the conditions
-under which she was admitted to the examinations
-of the University, the examinations in which
-she has satisfied the examiners, and the class and
-place in the class to which she has attained in each
-of such examinations.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>This was followed in 1882 by permission to pass
-the examinations for degrees in Music.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The Colleges and their students thus received
-formal acknowledgment from the University, and the
-status then conferred remains unchanged to this day.
-Two attempts have since been made to induce the
-University to carry its concessions to their logical
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_113'>113</span>issue, and confer degrees on women. That of 1887
-came to an untimely end, as it was not even considered
-by a syndicate; the events of 1897 belong to
-recent history, and are too fresh to allow a proper
-estimate of their significance. The facts are these.
-In 1896 four memorials were presented to the Council,
-asking for the nomination of a syndicate ‘to consider
-on what conditions and with what restrictions, if any,
-women should be admitted to degrees in the University.’
-The syndicate was appointed, and reported in
-favour of conferring ‘the title of the degree of
-Bachelor of Arts’ by diploma upon women, ‘who, in
-accordance with the now existing ordinances, shall
-hereafter satisfy the examiners in a final Tripos
-Examination, and shall have kept by residence nine
-terms at least; provided that the title so conferred
-shall not involve membership of the University.’
-This seemed a very moderate proposal, since it only
-involved a formal acknowledgment of privileges
-already conferred, but somehow the University took
-fright. Perhaps it now for the first time realised
-what had already been done, and determined to allow
-no more concessions; perhaps an element of jealousy
-was beginning to play a part among the younger
-members who had appeared in the same class lists as
-the women, and not always in the highest places;
-certain it is that while the best weight and learning
-in Cambridge were in favour of the proposals, numbers
-were ranged on the other side; and the voting
-resulted in a majority of more than a thousand
-against the proposal. In estimating this result it is
-well to remember that the women’s colleges had met
-with far more rapid success than even their founders
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_114'>114</span>had anticipated. They had produced a Senior
-Wrangler and a Senior Classic, and a formidable list
-of first classes in these and other Triposes. It was no
-longer possible to put aside their achievements with
-the old contemptuous formula, ‘very good considering.’
-The movement had succeeded beyond all hope
-or fear, and while its true friends remained staunch,
-many of the indifferent now ranged themselves among
-the open enemies. Events had moved too fast for the
-rearguard of public opinion to keep up with them.
-At any rate the refusal was decisive, and matters
-settled down once more to the <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">status quo</span></i> of 1881.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Anomalous as is their position, the students of
-Girton and Newnham have many and great advantages.
-For a comparatively low fee they receive all
-the advantages of a University education; they enjoy
-the manifold privileges that belong to residence in
-Cambridge, they may attend nearly all professorial
-and very many college lectures, their own colleges
-also provide excellent lecturing and coaching; and
-they may enter for any of the Tripos Examinations,
-and for those that lead to the degrees of Doc. and
-Bac. Mus. They have the advantage of life in beautiful
-buildings, with plentiful opportunities for recreation,
-exercise, and social intercourse, while the very
-fact of belonging to Girton or Newnham confers a
-certain prestige which is an advantage professionally
-and socially. However much we may desire the
-degree, and regret its indefinite postponement, it may
-yet safely be said that nowhere else can women obtain
-such advantages as at Cambridge. No anxiety need
-be felt about the future of the colleges. The success
-of their students, the influence their ‘graduates’ have
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_115'>115</span>had on the teaching profession, and the good work
-done by them in other fields, have amply justified
-the new departure. If success has come too quickly,
-public opinion may lag behind a few years longer.
-Meantime the work goes on.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At this period of their history it is no longer
-necessary to describe the colleges. Everybody who
-knows Cambridge is familiar with them. Both have
-increased greatly since their first beginnings. Girton
-has added fresh wings and a tower; changed its
-entrance and built a library which is full to overflowing.
-The trees have grown up around it and
-offer pleasant shade to summer tea-parties and afternoon
-loungers, the ‘woodland walk’ that encircles
-the grounds is gay at almost all seasons with pretty
-blossoms and flowering shrubs. Newnham has enlarged
-its first (Old) hall and built two new ones,
-called by names that will ever be held in honour,
-Clough and Sidgwick Halls. One library has been
-outgrown, and another—a generous gift—has been
-lately added; a road has been diverted allowing an
-addition to the grounds, and a fresh approach made
-under a tower gateway with beautiful iron gates
-presented by old students in memory of their first
-Principal. Girton has once more outgrown its
-accommodation, and is appealing for building funds.
-The colleges are growing both outwardly and in their
-aims. Not the least hopeful feature is the number
-of ‘graduate’ students who continue their studies in
-Cambridge or at one of the foreign universities, or
-devote to research or social problems that leisure and
-freedom from responsibility which women possess in
-a greater share than men. The founders have been
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_116'>116</span>abundantly justified in their resolve to establish no
-mere training-school for governesses, but to offer a
-wide and liberal education to all.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There are some differences in the arrangements of
-the two colleges. At Girton each student has two
-rooms, at Newnham one. The Girton fees are £105
-per annum including coaching and examinations; at
-Newnham they are £75, but these items are not in
-all cases included. Girton supplies cabs for students
-who attend lectures in Cambridge; Newnham, being
-in the town, is within a walk. Both require every one
-who has not taken an equivalent, <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">e.g.</span></i> the higher
-certificate of the Joint Board, to pass an entrance
-examination. Both colleges award scholarships,
-though scarcely sufficient to meet the many demands
-from girls whose parents cannot afford the payment
-of full fees. Miss Welsh, one of the early Hitchin
-students, is now mistress of Girton; Newnham has a
-Vice-principal for each of the halls, and a Principal
-over the whole. In this post Mrs. H. Sidgwick
-succeeded Miss Clough, when the true foundress of
-Newnham died in 1892.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There is a good deal of resemblance between the
-Cambridge colleges and the Oxford halls, though
-these latter have a different history. As early as
-1865 a scheme for lectures and classes at Oxford
-had been organised by Miss Smith, and remained in
-operation for several years. In 1873 another similar
-scheme was set on foot by a committee of ladies,
-with Mrs. Max Müller as treasurer, and Mrs. H.
-Ward and Mrs. Creighton, followed by Mrs. T. H.
-Green, as secretaries. The outcome of this was the
-Association for the Education of Women, organised
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_117'>117</span>in 1878, its object being ‘to establish and maintain a
-system of instruction having general reference to the
-Oxford examinations.’ Here as at Cambridge the
-next step was to found halls of residence to accommodate
-students from a distance. Two of these, Somerville
-and Lady Margaret, were opened in the same
-year, 1879; since then two more, St. Hugh’s and
-St. Hilda’s, have been added. The great difference,
-however, between the arrangements at the two
-Universities is that the Oxford Association, instead
-of amalgamating with the halls, has continued an
-independent existence, taking the lead in all matters
-concerning women’s education. Most associations of
-this kind were temporary bodies, which dissolved
-when the college or school for which they were
-working was established, or when the particular
-institution with which they were connected had
-opened its doors to women. But the Oxford Association
-has increased in importance with the development
-of the colleges, and has become a Board of
-Studies for their students, and a means of communication
-between them and the University. One of its
-functions is to organise lectures, to which members
-of the University not infrequently request and obtain
-admission. It also undertakes the negotiations with
-the various professors and colleges that admit women
-to lectures, and it is thanks to its exertions that they
-may now attend under certain regulations lectures
-at almost every college in Oxford. Similarly their
-admission to university examinations is the work of
-the Association. In fact, it acts almost as a feminine
-department of the University, since it has to sanction
-the establishment of halls, make itself responsible
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_118'>118</span>for the studies and discipline of its students, and
-generally establish their connection with the University.
-This connection received its formal acknowledgment
-in 1893, when the Dean of Christchurch
-was appointed to represent the Hebdomadal Council
-on the Council of the Association, and a room in
-the Clarendon Building was lent it as an office.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There are some other technical differences between
-the position of women at Oxford and Cambridge.
-The latter directly acknowledges the women’s colleges,
-the former in theory knows nothing of its women
-students, but leaves the Delegacy for Local Examinations
-to arrange for their examination. The delegates
-are allowed for this purpose to use the papers set by
-the University examiners for men, and, of course,
-the examinations are conducted simultaneously and
-under exactly the same conditions. Women may
-enter for every examination—whether Pass or
-Honours—leading to the B.A. degree, and it is this
-Delegacy which lays down the special conditions.
-In all cases a Preliminary examination is compulsory
-and in some an Intermediate, but neither the
-Delegacy nor the University demands that they should
-conform to the regulations imposed on men in regard
-to duration of study, preliminary examinations and
-residence. This has led to greater freedom in work;
-but, as often happens, this greater liberty has proved
-somewhat detrimental. It was difficult to gauge the
-value of work done under such conditions, since
-some students would end a four years’ course with
-Moderations and others at once begin working for
-the Final Schools. Then there were some special
-examinations for women, which by that very restriction
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_119'>119</span>failed to win even the prestige they deserved,
-and an impression, not quite unfounded, spread
-abroad, of a certain vagueness in the Oxford work,
-which lessened its value in the eyes of the general
-public. There was no real gain in making a selection
-from a course that had been carefully planned out by
-the University for its members, and as this anomalous
-state of things had really been brought about by the
-gradual opening of the examinations, which made
-the regular course at first inaccessible to women
-students, there seemed no reason for continuing
-it when once this difficulty was removed. Oxford
-women got less credit often than was their due,
-simply because some little preliminary formality had
-been omitted.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In order to remedy this, and put the whole work
-on a firmer basis, the Association decided to institute
-a system of diplomas for those of its students who
-have taken the full course required of members of
-the University. This certificate is awarded only to
-students who have entered their names on the register
-qualifying for it, have kept their residence after
-date of entry, and passed the examinations of the
-B.A. course in the order and under the conditions as
-to standing prescribed for members of the University.
-Another diploma is also offered to those who have
-passed a course of three examinations approved by
-the council. Though equivalent to the B.A. diploma
-as regards difficulty of attainment, there appears to
-be little demand among recent students for this
-alternative course; and it will probably be regarded
-as a survival from the days when, the University
-examinations being only partially open to women,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_120'>120</span>substitutes had in some cases to be devised. Certificates
-are also awarded to those students who have
-resided not less than eight terms, and have obtained
-a class in an Honour Examination of the University or
-of the Delegates of Local Examinations. These diplomas
-and certificates offer a definite incentive to regular
-study, and serve at once to show the value of the work
-done in each case.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At Oxford, as at Cambridge, an attempt has been
-made to win complete acknowledgment for women
-students by the conferment of the degree. An appeal
-was made to the University in 1895. The question
-came to the vote in 1896, and here, as afterwards at
-Cambridge, the proposal was thrown out by a considerable
-majority. Oxford women, like their sisters
-at Cambridge, must therefore wait a while longer for
-complete recognition. The attempt here may have
-been a little premature, since, owing to the late
-opening of the examinations and the latitude allowed
-to students, there were at that time very few who
-had fulfilled all the necessary conditions. Still the
-reason of the refusal was probably identical in both
-cases, and indicated a deep-rooted prejudice that
-must be overcome before further steps can be taken.
-Meantime the institution of the degree-certificate is
-giving fresh impetus to the work, and attracting
-larger numbers to the colleges.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Of these Somerville and Lady Margaret were
-founded almost simultaneously, but with somewhat
-different aims, the former being undenominational,
-the latter distinctly Church of England. Both
-were intended as halls of residence for Association
-students, but in 1881 Somerville was incorporated as
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_121'>121</span>a college ‘to provide for the residence of women
-students’ as well as ‘for the instruction of women
-students and for the delivery of lectures to such
-students’; it was not, however, till 1894 that the
-term ‘college’ came into general use. Like the Cambridge
-colleges it has grown from small beginnings;
-it has been enlarged four times, not on one plan but
-by the addition of fresh buildings, so that it does not
-present the appearance of a connected whole. But
-standing in pleasant grounds among fine old trees,
-this very medley gives it a certain charm. It can
-now accommodate over seventy students, besides the
-Principal, secretary, and four resident tutors. Many
-of its old students have gained honourable positions
-for themselves; indeed the Principals of two leading
-women’s colleges, Holloway and Bedford, were chosen
-from the ranks of old Somerville students.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Lady Margaret was founded by the Bishop of
-Rochester and others, and has adhered to its original
-plan of supplying residence to Church members of
-the Association. It undertakes no part of the instruction,
-but makes use of the Association’s tutorial
-and lecturing staff. For some years the numbers
-continued small, but as they gradually increased it
-became necessary to construct an additional hall.
-Part of this, the Wordsworth building, was occupied
-in 1896, when the numbers went up to forty-nine,
-and the council are now appealing for additional funds
-with which to build a chapel and the central block,
-to contain the library and permanent dining-hall.
-A pretty thatched boat-house on the Cherwell is an
-attractive feature of the grounds, and Lady Margaret
-is proud of its rowing club. The Principal is Miss
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_122'>122</span>Wordsworth, daughter of the late Bishop of Lincoln
-and great-niece of the poet. The hall takes its name
-from Lady Margaret Beaufort, that renowned patroness
-of learning, and there is a cast from her effigy in the
-tiny college chapel.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In close connection with Lady Margaret is St.
-Hugh’s. It was founded in 1886 by Miss Wordsworth
-to provide a more economical residence for
-women students. By a system of sharing bedrooms
-and using common sitting-rooms, somewhat lower
-fees became practicable for those who could not
-afford the ordinary terms. The plan does not seem
-to have proved very successful, and St. Hugh’s has
-developed into a small independent hall for twenty-five
-students, on the same lines as Lady Margaret,
-but with a graduated system of fees according to
-the room occupied. Like Lady Margaret it is conducted
-according to the principles of the Church of
-England, with liberty for other denominations. It
-also uses the tutorial staff of the Association. All
-students are expected to read for some University
-examination unless specially exempted by the Council.
-The Principal is Miss Moberly, daughter of the late
-Bishop of Salisbury.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The youngest of the Oxford halls is St. Hilda’s.
-It was founded by Miss Beale in 1893, and meant in
-the first instance for students passing on from
-Cheltenham to Oxford. This exclusive character has,
-however, been abandoned, and it is now formally
-recognised under the rules of the Association for the
-Education of Women. It still receives the greater
-part of its students from Cheltenham, though there
-is nothing now to exclude others. As yet the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_123'>123</span>numbers are very small. The Principal is Mrs.
-Burrows.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Of these four institutions, Somerville, the largest
-and most distinguished, is the only undenominational
-one. All four have the combined bedroom-studies,
-with common dining-halls, libraries, etc. Out-door
-games, debating societies, college clubs, etc. are as
-popular as at Cambridge. All the colleges require an
-entrance examination or an alternative, and all give
-scholarships according to ability. The fees at Somerville
-(including board, lodging, tuition and lectures)
-range from £78 to £90 according to the room occupied.
-At Lady Margaret they are £75, exclusive of tuition,
-which involves another £20 or £25. At St. Hugh’s
-the inclusive terms range from £70 to £90; at St.
-Hilda’s as at Lady Margaret, there is a charge of £75,
-which does not include tuition.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Besides those who reside at the halls other women
-are frequently attracted to Oxford. For these, too,
-the Association makes provision. Those who avail
-themselves of the lectures and direction of the
-Association, but do not reside in a hall, are registered
-as home students, and are placed under the care of
-a Principal and a committee of the Council of the
-Association. They are required to reside, with the
-Principal’s approval, in a house sanctioned by the
-committee, and to conform to certain rules corresponding
-to those laid down for hall students. The
-Principal performs some of the functions of a tutor.
-Students call upon her at the beginning and end of
-each term, and submit to her their lists of lectures
-before sending them in to the office. The home
-students are doubtless able to pursue their studies
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_124'>124</span>more economically. The tuition fees seldom exceed
-£25, and board and lodging may be had for 25s. a
-week and upwards. As Oxford terms rarely exceed
-eight weeks it is possible by very careful management
-to keep expenses down to £50 to £60. As a matter of
-fact a large proportion of these students are daughters
-of Oxford residents. The arrangement is also a
-convenient one for foreigners who come to Oxford
-for a short time only. Many come in this way from
-America, after taking a degree in one of their own
-colleges. French, German, Russian, Roumanian,
-Danish, Swedish, and Norwegian students have at
-different times resided in Oxford, working at English
-language and literature, for the teaching diplomas of
-their own country. By helping these the Association
-can considerably increase its sphere of usefulness, and
-without disturbing the work of the halls it introduces
-a wider outlook into the lives of the students. At
-the same time it is open to home students to take
-the regular course, and several of them do so. The
-committee only registers those who take up a
-systematic course of study, extending over at least
-three terms, but even those who come for a
-shorter time can attend its lectures and profit by its
-help.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>By these varied means the Association is able to
-draw together all the agencies for women’s education
-at Oxford; in 1897 the number of students on its
-books was 202, and there is every reason to expect a
-considerable increase now that the institution of the
-degree-diploma has given a fresh impulse to the
-work. The steady flow from our girls’ schools to
-both Universities proves that the colleges have won
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_125'>125</span>appreciation through the whole of the country.
-Happily many of the founders are yet among us to
-enjoy the fruits of the labours. Girton and Newnham,
-Somerville and Lady Margaret, bear eloquent testimony
-to the truth that the dreamers of visions are
-often those who see furthest and best.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_126'>126</span>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER VII<br /> <span class='large'>ADMISSION TO UNIVERSITIES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>The position of women at Oxford and Cambridge is
-so anomalous as to require a good deal of explanation,
-and indeed it is sometimes said that the only real
-grievance these students have is the difficulty of
-making people understand what they may and what
-they may not do. There is no such difficulty when we
-come to the newer universities. Here the course has
-been one of steady progress, and one after another
-all the barriers have fallen.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>London was the pioneer in this reform, and its
-exceptional position made it an excellent field for
-experiment. A mere examining and degree-conferring
-body, the London University was not obliged to face
-those difficult questions of residence, teaching, and
-discipline which had to be considered elsewhere. It
-was natural that women who desired to obtain
-professional qualifications without being compelled to
-seek them outside their own country, should apply
-to London for help. As early as 1856 Miss J. M.
-White had addressed a letter to the Registrar,
-inquiring whether a woman could become a candidate
-for a diploma in medicine. Counsel’s opinion was
-taken in the matter and proved adverse. In 1872
-it was again raised by Miss Elizabeth Garrett (now
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_127'>127</span>Mrs. Garrett Anderson) who requested admission as
-a candidate for matriculation. She was refused on
-the same ground. Since it appeared that the University
-had not power to accede to these requests,
-a memorial was drawn up begging it to seek for such
-modifications in its charter as would enable it to
-admit women to examination. The motion was
-brought before the Senate, and lost by the casting
-vote of the Chancellor. With success so nearly
-attained the advocates of the change determined not
-to let the matter drop, and after a while a modified
-proposal was made. It was thought that a special
-examination for women might meet the case, or at
-any rate serve as an experiment in what was then a
-very new field. The first was held in May 1869, and
-followed the lines of Matriculation with some modifications.
-As an isolated examination of no special
-difficulty and leading nowhere, it did not attract
-large numbers, and it became more and more clear
-that what women needed was not so much a special
-course of study as—to quote the words of the
-Calendar—‘to have access to the ordinary degrees
-and honours, and to be subject to the same tests of
-qualification which were imposed on other students.’
-The result of this conviction was that in 1878 it was
-decided to accept from the Crown ‘a supplemental
-charter, making every degree, honour, and prize
-awarded by the University accessible to students of
-both sexes on perfectly equal terms.’ The charter,
-however, declared that no woman should be a
-member of Convocation until Convocation should
-itself pass a resolution admitting them. In 1882,
-almost as soon as there was any woman eligible, this
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_128'>128</span>resolution was passed, and henceforth both sexes
-were placed on an absolute equality in their treatment
-by London University.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There is no need to dwell on the success of this
-new departure. The London degrees have been
-eagerly sought by women, and they have won distinguished
-places in the class lists. Among its
-graduates London numbers over fifty female M.A.’s,
-six D.Sc.’s, one D.Lit., to say nothing of many hundred
-B.A. and B.Sc., as well as all the medical degrees.
-Class lists show no special division into masculine
-and feminine studies, since women have won high
-honours in classics, and men in modern languages.
-Even on Presentation-Day special allusions to the
-lady-graduates are seldom made in the speeches; it
-is no longer considered a matter of surprise that
-women should hold their own intellectually. The
-London class lists with their rigid equality have
-proved to demonstration the equality of the sexes
-as far as concerns the domain of examination. And
-at the particular moment when this was done, it was
-the greatest service that could be rendered to the
-cause of women’s education, since it settled once
-and for all the question of making special conditions
-for them.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>But throwing open the examinations and degrees
-of London was only an indirect assistance to their
-education, since the University examines all who
-come, but asks no questions as to how or where they
-gained their teaching. There was one institution
-already in existence which was only waiting for this
-new impulse to enlarge the scope of its work. Bedford
-College had been gradually developing from
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_129'>129</span>humble beginnings into an institution of first-class
-educational importance. In 1874 it had been removed
-from Bedford Square to its present premises
-in York Place, Baker Street, and here it has been
-gradually expanding, adding another house, building
-on at the back, supplying now one laboratory now
-another, until it has reached its present condition
-of efficiency, taking its place as the leading women’s
-college of London. Its success is probably due to
-the progressive action of its council, ever ready to
-realise new needs and meet each fresh demand as
-it arose. Recognising the transformation which the
-opening of the London degrees must effect in women’s
-education, they at once proceeded to open classes
-in the subjects of the examinations. At the first
-Matriculation Examination to which women were
-admitted, five Bedford College students presented
-themselves, and all took Honours. In due course
-classes for B.A. work were added, then B.Sc., then
-M.A., and in all these Bedford College students
-acquitted themselves well. The college had now
-won an honourable place among university colleges,
-and in 1894 it was included among the list of those
-entitled to a share of the annual grant of £15,000
-to university colleges in Great Britain. From this
-source it received £700, since increased to £1200,
-and it now receives also an annual grant of £500
-from the London Technical Education Board, for
-the further equipment of the laboratories and development
-of practical work in science. This is a speciality
-of Bedford College. Its laboratories for biology,
-botany, chemistry, geology, physiology, and physics
-meet every requirement.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_130'>130</span>The college is still open to girls who attend only
-single courses, but the majority enter as regular
-students, and work either for a London degree or
-the alternative college course. Bedford has also
-added other departments of study to the ordinary
-curriculum. It has an art school, a training department
-for teachers, and a special hygiene course, for
-which certificates are conferred. And finally it has
-developed, as far as its accommodation will permit,
-into a residential college. The old-fashioned dormitory
-boarding accommodation has been abolished in
-favour of students’ rooms in the bed-study fashion
-so familiar at Newnham and Oxford, and the general
-management has been placed in the hands of a
-Principal. Miss Emily Penrose, the first to fill this
-post, has now become Principal of Holloway, and
-her place is taken by Miss Ethel Hurlbatt, late
-Warden of Aberdare Hall.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Bedford College, true to its undenominational principles,
-has never introduced religious instruction into its
-curriculum. It is not unnatural that a wish has been
-expressed in some quarters for a residential college,
-which should prepare its students for London degrees
-and at the same time take cognisance of their religious
-training. It was for this end that Westfield College
-at Hampstead was founded in 1882. Its benefactor
-was Miss Dudin Brown, who made over to trustees
-the sum of £10,000 ‘for the establishment of a college
-for the higher education of women on Christian principles.’
-The Principal is Miss Maynard, one of the
-early students of Girton, who has introduced into
-Westfield many of the arrangements of the parent
-college. The two-room plan, which has found too
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_131'>131</span>few imitators, is the rule here. Inclusive fees, as
-at Girton, are £105 a year. The conditions for
-admission are similar. There are three entrance
-scholarships, open to girls who have passed the
-London Matriculation in Honours or in the first
-division.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The college began its work in hired houses at
-Hampstead, but building soon became necessary. It
-is pleasantly situated in that most attractive of the
-London suburbs, and combines some advantages of
-both town and country. Though it has no laboratories
-of its own, students can easily reach those of
-Bedford College to which they have access; and
-similarly it is easy to supply from London such
-teaching as cannot be undertaken by the resident
-staff. Westfield students take high places in the
-class lists, and it supplies an important addition to
-the London colleges.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In enumerating these we cannot omit Holloway,
-for though far beyond the borders of the metropolis,
-it is more and more assimilating its teaching to the
-London work. Such was not, however, its original
-purpose. Among those who attended the meeting
-in 1867 to consider the foundation of a women’s
-college, was Mr. Thomas Holloway, and at one time
-it was hoped he would prove a benefactor to it. But
-Mr. Holloway preferred the idea of an independent
-college unconnected with a university, like Vassar
-and others in the United States, and his wishes were
-thus expressed: ‘It is the founder’s desire that power
-by Act of Parliament, Royal Charter, or otherwise,
-should ultimately be sought, enabling the college to
-confer degrees on its students after proper examination
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_132'>132</span>in the various subjects of instruction.’ With
-this end in view he chose a beautiful site near Egham,
-and built upon it a most elaborate and fully equipped
-college, which should some day develop into a women’s
-university. Nothing was spared that could contribute
-to the comfort and well-being of the students. Each
-has two rooms; and the magnificent dining-hall,
-museum, picture-gallery, etc. prove that no pains
-were spared to make the new college attractive as
-well as efficient. For all that, it was viewed at first
-with some misgivings, for it seemed to lack a definite
-aim. It was formally opened by the Queen in 1886,
-and in the following year Miss Bishop was appointed
-Principal, but students came in slowly. A liberal
-provision of scholarships, and the beauty and healthy
-situation of the college did much to dispel the first
-misgivings, especially when it began to appear from
-results that the teaching too was of the best. The
-founder had himself directed that until the power
-to confer degrees should have been obtained ‘it is
-intended that the students shall qualify themselves
-to take the degrees at the University of London or
-any other university of the United Kingdom whose
-degrees may be obtained by them, or to pass any
-examination open to them at any such university,
-which may be equivalent to a degree examination.’
-In accordance with this permission the first students
-were prepared for the London degrees, and also for
-the examinations of the University of Oxford, which
-under present conditions are open to all comers, since
-the delegacy takes no cognisance of residence. Holloway
-students may therefore, if they please, present
-themselves for examination in Moderations and Final
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_133'>133</span>Schools just as if they were residing at the Oxford
-halls. They cannot, of course, obtain the Association’s
-diploma, and miss the advantage of the Oxford lectures.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>On these lines the college worked for ten years,
-when circumstances made it necessary to reconsider
-its position. At both Oxford and Cambridge the
-degree had been refused, and it seemed desirable
-for the friends of women’s education to come to
-some decision on their future policy. Once again
-the scheme of a women’s university was raised; and
-Holloway College took the lead in calling a meeting
-to discuss the question. Opinions were invited as
-to the future action of the college, and three propositions
-were made: (1) That Holloway College
-should, in accordance with the founder’s will, seek
-powers to confer its own degrees. (2) That a Federal
-University should be founded, to include in its jurisdiction
-all the women’s colleges. (3) That Holloway
-should associate itself more closely with London,
-and seek admission into its teaching University when
-this should be founded. The discussion showed a
-strong consensus in favour of this last proposal, and
-it is probable that henceforth the work of Holloway
-College will be chiefly directed towards the London
-courses. If so, it will be safe to predict for it a
-brilliant future. Its healthy situation, delightful
-grounds, beautiful buildings, and large endowment,
-with the prospect of receiving full recognition for
-work done, will attract large numbers; indeed with
-Holloway, Bedford, and Westfield for their own,
-London women have little left to desire. Whatever
-they may lack elsewhere fullest measure is dealt to
-them here.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_134'>134</span>Nor are they even restricted to their own special
-colleges. The classes at University College are open
-to all who care to attend; indeed this was one of the
-first, if not the very first, of our English colleges to
-try the co-education experiment. After experimenting
-by holding some classes for women separately, and
-admitting them temporarily to others, the professors
-decided in favour of joint classes, and the result was
-the opening of all except the departments of Medicine
-and Engineering. The results proved altogether
-satisfactory, and this end has been helped by the
-appointment of a lady-superintendent, who holds the
-same position towards the women students that a
-vice-dean does to the men. No woman is admitted
-as a student except upon her recommendation, and
-upon production of satisfactory references. In this
-way their special interests are safeguarded, and girls
-far from home may always secure friendly advice and
-guidance. Further, there is a special residence provided
-at College Hall, Byng Place, where students
-may have some of the advantages of college life while
-pursuing their studies at University College, or the
-Woman’s Medical School close by. With Miss Grove
-as Principal, and Miss Morison, superintendent of the
-women students, as Vice-Principal, it offers a bright
-and cultivated home to its inmates, and keeps up the
-collegiate idea by admitting only such as have already
-passed Matriculation or an equivalent examination,
-and are pursuing a regular course of study. The fees
-for board and residence vary, according to the room
-occupied and the length of the term, from £51 to £90
-the session.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>To give a complete list of the institutions that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_135'>135</span>prepare students for the London degrees, would be
-impossible, since it is open to any person in any place
-to hold such classes. A few work for them at the
-ladies’ department of King’s College, but on the whole
-the work of this branch is more on the lines of miscellaneous
-lectures and general culture. Some
-schools, <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">e.g.</span></i> the North London and the Bedford High
-School, also carry on their pupils beyond Matriculation
-to the Intermediate examinations, or even
-further. The Ladies’ College, Cheltenham, provides
-instruction for the full Arts course. Most of the provincial
-university colleges have London degree
-classes, and many candidates, who cannot get oral
-teaching, make use of the University Tutorial and
-other correspondence classes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A new development on fresh lines is supplied by
-the Polytechnics. In most of these, whether in
-London or other large towns, classes are held in all
-the subjects of the London examinations with particular
-assistance for Science. With fully equipped
-laboratories, a large staff of teachers, and considerable
-funds at their disposal, the Polytechnics may yet
-become formidable rivals to the other London colleges.
-Some regret this new departure, and believe that such
-institutions would be better employed in confining
-themselves to their original function, the encouragement
-of handicraft; on the other hand, a system of
-cheap local colleges is so valuable to large numbers
-that it is not likely to be abandoned. Some place
-must be found in the new organisation of the
-London University for these institutes, if they themselves
-desire it; but perhaps we shall see, instead
-of this, a federation of these great science and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_136'>136</span>handicraft schools into some fresh University of their
-own.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The example set by London in 1879 was soon to be
-imitated. Only a year afterwards a new University
-was founded, and the principle of including women
-was at once adopted. The charter of Victoria
-University distinctly stated that its degrees and distinctions
-might be conferred ‘on all persons, male or
-female, who shall have pursued a regular course of
-study in a College in the University, and shall submit
-themselves for examination.’ The degree is somewhat
-on the lines of the London, but attendance at
-certain prescribed courses of study is required.
-These courses must be continued for three years at
-least. Hence admission to the Victoria degrees
-really depends on the action of the individual colleges,
-which are quite unfettered by the University. These
-are—(1) Owens College, Manchester; (2) University
-College, Liverpool; (3) Yorkshire College, Leeds.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The first of these had been in existence as a men’s
-college some years before the establishment of the
-University, and it has not seemed anxious to make
-changes in its original constitution. It became
-necessary to organise a special department for women,
-in connection with which they still receive some of
-their instruction. But the teaching for the higher
-examinations, <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">i.e.</span></i> those beyond the Victoria Preliminary,
-is received in the ordinary college classes. As
-a matter of fact, men and women are taught together
-in nearly all the B.A. and B.Sc. classes; and the
-Preliminary, like the London Matriculation, belongs
-to school work, and has no proper place in a college
-curriculum at all. Owens still follows the old plan,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_137'>137</span>now almost everywhere discarded, of offering special
-certificates to women on easier terms; but for these
-there is little demand.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Since University College, Liverpool was not incorporated
-till 1881, <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">i.e.</span></i> after the constitution of the
-University, it was natural that it should follow its
-lead in the recognition of women, but this was not
-yet full and ungrudging. The charter says: ‘female
-students may be admitted to attend any of the
-courses of instruction established in the college, subject
-to such restrictions and regulations as statutes of
-the College may from time to time prescribe.’ At
-present the regulations stand thus: ‘Female students
-may be admitted to the classes of the College, except
-those of the Medical School, under regulations to be
-framed by the Senate and approved by the Council.’
-In theory, therefore, University is a men’s college
-that admits women. In fact, with the exception of
-the medical classes, the two are pretty much on an
-equality. Men and women are admitted on the same
-terms to the day and evening classes; throughout
-the regulations the words ‘his or her’ are used.
-Rules apply to both sexes alike. Hitherto the college
-has been of use chiefly to Liverpool residents, and for
-such it was doubtless intended, but it is just about to
-extend the sphere of its usefulness by opening a
-Hall of Residence for Women. The fees for residence
-are to be £40 to £55 per annum. College tuition fees
-are about £20 to £25. The total expenses would therefore
-be a little less than at Newnham. Liverpool can
-hardly offer the attractions of Cambridge, but the
-hall should prove useful for girls in the North who
-do not wish to go too far from home, or to whom the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_138'>138</span>right to use the degree letters is of some special
-value. And since Cambridge and Oxford can by no
-means attempt to accommodate the whole of the ever-increasing
-contingent of women students, it is well
-that there should be many and varied opportunities
-of study offered them elsewhere.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>At the Yorkshire College, Leeds, all the classes are
-open to women as to men, and all have been attended
-by them except the purely professional ones and the
-medical school. This college chiefly supplies local
-needs, as far, at any rate, as girls are concerned; for its
-specialities, such as coal-mining, dyeing, leather, and
-textile industries, etc. naturally do not appeal to
-women. It is to a great extent a technological
-college, receiving assistance from the Clothworkers’,
-Skinners’, and other city companies. But it has also
-an Arts department, where students can be prepared
-for Victoria or London examinations, and this is of
-great use to boys and girls who pass on from their
-respective schools.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The last of the English Universities to admit
-women was Durham. As compared with Oxford and
-Cambridge, it is a recent foundation, since it received
-its charter in 1837. Since one of its most important
-faculties is Divinity, it seemed a less suitable field
-than others for feminine study, but a change was
-effected by the foundation, in 1871, of the Newcastle
-College of Science, in connection with Durham, which
-admitted students of both sexes to scientific and
-medical classes. It then became important to win
-the University hall-mark for the women, and after a
-while Durham was induced to apply for the necessary
-powers. In 1895 it received a supplementary charter,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_139'>139</span>giving power to confer degrees on women in all
-faculties except divinity. With this exception,
-women are admitted as members of the University
-on the same terms as men. All lectures are open to
-them. Male students reside for the most part in
-college as at Oxford and Cambridge; the women
-studying at Durham are therefore at present unattached
-members. This state of things will be
-remedied as soon as a regular women’s college is
-opened at Durham; special scholarships for women
-are already offered, to attract larger numbers. At
-Newcastle, which at present receives the majority of
-the women students, a hostel has been opened for
-them. The number of lady graduates is as yet of
-necessity small.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It is significant of the steady advance of public
-opinion on the subject of women’s education, that the
-youngest of all our universities is the one to do them
-fullest justice. It is the proud boast of the University
-of Wales that its charter contains the following clause:
-‘Women shall be eligible equally with men for admittance
-to any degree, which the University is, by this
-our Charter, authorised to confer. Every office hereby
-created in the University, and the membership of
-every authority hereby constituted, shall be open to
-women equally with men.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The University of Wales is a federation of three
-constituent colleges, all much older than the University
-itself, and they in their turn represent aspirations
-which the fable-loving Cymry trace back to hoary days
-of antiquity. Caerleon-on-Usk, they tell us, was the
-precursor of the present <i><span lang="cy" xml:lang="cy">Prifysgol Cymru</span></i>; and when
-in the ninth century Alfred the Great determined to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_140'>140</span>found the comparatively modern University of Oxford,
-it was to Wales he sent for professors. When, in
-1893, the royal seal was set to the charter of the Welsh
-University, it symbolised the revival of ancient and
-departed glories.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>However little faith we may attach to some of these
-tales, one thing is certain. The aspirations which
-expressed themselves in the foundation of Aberystwyth
-College had dwelt among the people for many generations.
-At last, in the early fifties, it was resolved to
-found a University College for Wales, but the problem
-whence to obtain the funds was not easy to solve.
-Appeal was made for voluntary contributions, and
-they came, some large, some small, all giving according
-to their means. Still it was not till twenty years
-after the first suggestion that the college came into
-being. In 1872, when Aberystwyth was opened,
-Girton had already made its first start at Hitchin,
-and the house of residence, that was to develop into
-Newnham, had been opened at Cambridge; but these
-beginnings were too small to attract general attention,
-and the new college became, as a matter of course, an
-institution for male students only. There was nothing
-to forbid the admission of women, it was simply a
-thing no one had contemplated; and when, at last, in
-1883, a few women students did present themselves,
-no one thought of shutting the door on them. When
-the college charter was conferred in 1889, it simply
-recognised the fact of their presence by the clause:
-‘Female students shall be admitted to all the benefits
-and emoluments of the College, and women shall
-be eligible to sit on the Governing body, on the
-Council, and on the Senate.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_141'>141</span>Prosperity did not come all at once to Aberystwyth.
-It had at first to struggle against two great evils:
-lack of funds, and the insufficient preliminary training
-of its students. Appeal was made for Government
-help in both directions, and the result of frequent
-representations was the appointment, by the Lord
-President of the Council, of a departmental committee,
-to inquire into the whole state of Welsh education.
-In 1881 this committee reported that a case had been
-made out for Government aid to both secondary and
-higher education in Wales, and recommended the
-establishment of two colleges, one in North and
-one in South Wales, and the eventual foundation of
-a Welsh University. A grant of £2500, afterwards
-increased to £4000, was at once made to Aberystwyth;
-in 1883 the South Wales College was founded at
-Cardiff, and in the following year the Northern College
-was begun at Bangor, each receiving an annual grant
-of £4000. Both, from the first, opened their doors to
-women.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>For the first ten years the colleges directed their
-courses of study towards the degrees of the University
-of London. Their students did well, but the desire
-for their own University and their own degrees never
-faded from the minds of Welshmen. A few eager
-spirits met again and again in conference, then followed
-meetings of educationalists all over the principality,
-and in 1891 the main lines of a university were laid
-down by public conference, details were discussed by
-a representative committee, referred back to the conference,
-then to the colleges, and the sixteen Welsh
-county councils; lastly, the press and the general
-public were called upon for an opinion, and then the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_142'>142</span>scheme was laid before the President of the Council.
-If ever there was a national University, the Welsh
-may claim to have established one. In November
-1893 the royal seal was affixed to the charter, and in
-June 1895 the University held its first Matriculation
-Examination.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The degree course of the University of Wales is a
-complicated one, and is by no means planned so that
-he who runs may read. It has a twofold, or rather a
-threefold aim. The University not only takes cognisance
-of residence, but also lays down very careful
-directions as to the manner in which students shall obtain
-their knowledge. Not only does it demand a three
-years’ course in a constituent college of the University,
-but it also prescribes the nature of the courses, and
-the number of lectures to be attended. After Matriculation,
-which must be passed in five subjects, three
-compulsory, and two optional, and may be taken in
-one year or in two, the regulations require each
-student to pursue not less than ten courses, of which
-one must be in elementary Logic, and one, at least, a
-course of Latin or Greek. Apart from the Logic, the
-nine courses must be chosen in not less than three,
-or more than six departments. The possible courses
-are designated according to their degree of difficulty,
-as intermediate, ordinary, and special; four, at least,
-must be of higher grade than intermediate. In order
-to distribute them evenly over the whole term of
-residence, no candidate may take more than four in
-any one year, or more than seven in the first two
-years. A course is held to include not less than eighty
-lectures, and the corresponding examination; and
-since, in most subjects, the intermediate course must
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_143'>143</span>be pursued before the higher ones are attempted,
-every student has to attend some very elementary
-lectures before proceeding to anything at all like
-university work. As sixteen is the college age of
-admission, this arrangement is probably intentional;
-the colleges are meant to continue school work for
-one year at least, and gradually lead the student on
-to more arduous labours.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Since the colleges are independent institutions, they
-have a good deal of freedom in the organisation of
-their work, and may, if they please, submit new
-schemes for the consideration of the Senate, the other
-two colleges, and the University Court. Without the
-sanction of all these they cannot attempt any innovation.
-The superior stress laid on the actual instruction
-rather than on the ensuing examination is emphasised
-by appointing the three professors of each subject as
-examiners, with the help of one outside person, who
-must be some one of distinguished attainments and
-authority.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Thus the University of Wales proceeds on lines
-which, though new to us, bear considerable resemblance
-to the plan of many American colleges, where
-the number of hours to be spent weekly in the lecture-room
-counts as part qualification for the degree, and
-the examinations are spread out over the whole term
-of residence, and not concentrated into one or two
-supreme efforts. Of course this greatly relieves the
-strain, and it is too soon to say whether the degree
-will at all lose in prestige from the numerous efforts
-made to clear the student’s path of thorns. It is
-probably the best system for Wales, where the Intermediate
-schools only profess to keep their pupils till
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_144'>144</span>seventeen, and there is nothing to prevent able
-students from competing for scholarships, which
-shall enable them to continue at Oxford or Cambridge
-the studies begun in one of their own colleges.
-Eventually it is probable that facilities will be offered
-for doing advanced work without forsaking their own
-country.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Even before the establishment of the University,
-the colleges attracted many women students from
-England as well as Wales. All three are pleasantly
-situated in healthy spots, and the cheapness of both
-teaching and living helped to attract many girls. It
-thus soon became necessary to consider the question
-of a mixed university, which had no residential
-colleges to simplify the problem. Soon it became
-clear that, where young people of both sexes were very
-frequently thrown together, it was desirable in the
-interests of all concerned to exercise some sort of
-control. A hall of residence for the women seemed
-the best way out of the dilemma, and it had the
-advantage of drawing them away from lonely and often
-uncomfortable lodgings, and giving them some of that
-feeling of corporate life which is valued so highly at
-the older universities. Still it is noteworthy that, to
-make the plan a success, residence has had, under
-certain conditions, to be made compulsory. The first
-attempt at Aberystwyth was a failure, but in 1887
-another house was taken, and compulsory residence
-required. This arrangement seemed to attract
-students; in the following session their numbers
-increased, and continued to average about forty, till
-in 1891 it was resolved to build a large new hall.
-The numbers then again went up, and have already
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_145'>145</span>reached 175. Alexandra Hall was opened with much
-state by the Princess of Wales in June 1897. It can
-accommodate 200, a number which must soon be
-reached.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Neither Bangor nor Cardiff can boast such numbers,
-but in both the hostels are doing well. At Bangor,
-after a few years’ experiment, it was decided to make
-residence compulsory for all girls under twenty-one.
-The hall and college were brought into close connection
-by the appointment of a lady, who was also
-an officer of the college, to act as superintendent of
-all the women students. Permission is given to
-women to reside in any house which, in the judgment
-of the Principal and Lady-superintendent, provides
-hostel conditions of supervision. At Aberdare Hall,
-Cardiff, there is compulsory residence for women who
-do not live in their own homes. At all three halls
-the fees are very low, forty guineas being the usual
-annual payment for board and residence, and £10 for
-the composition tuition charge. At Bangor and Cardiff
-there are also a few cubicles, for which the charge
-is only thirty guineas. This plan hardly appears to
-answer, nor does it seem desirable to let the standard
-of comfort fall below a certain minimum. There is
-a talk of abandoning it.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In estimating the numbers at these colleges, we
-must remember that they do not represent only
-students in Arts and Science. All three have established
-day training-departments, and to these students,
-too, the halls are open, as well as to those who attend
-the Cardiff Cookery School. In attempting to put
-the training for domestic economy and elementary
-school teaching on the same footing as university
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_146'>146</span>work, Wales is acting in accordance with its democratic
-traditions, and trying also to induce a higher
-class of students to take up the elementary teaching.
-The experiment is certainly worth making, and it
-will be interesting to watch its success. English
-high school girls who wish to take up elementary
-teaching might here combine their training and their
-work for the Welsh degree in a three years’
-course.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With the help of the wardens of halls and the ladies’
-committees, the colleges are able to face the complications
-of joint clubs and societies for both sexes.
-All these involve some special regulations, in regard
-to the composition of committees, the return from
-evening meetings, etc. but the difficulties have not
-proved insuperable. It would hardly be going too
-far to say that the women’s halls of residence have
-saved the situation in Wales, and made this most
-complete example of co-education possible. It is not
-surprising that they are being adopted elsewhere.
-The advocates of educational equality for the sexes,
-even where the instruction is given to both together,
-have assuredly no desire to complicate or revolutionise
-social relations, nor yet to confer full liberty on those
-who are hardly emerged from the schoolgirl stage.
-For both sexes the residential arrangement seems on
-many grounds desirable, and while congratulating
-the women on their pleasant halls of residence, we
-can but hope that the male students may not be left
-out in the cold much longer, without the chance
-of learning for themselves the true meaning of
-collegiate life.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The opportunities for advanced study open to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_147'>147</span>women have indeed increased and multiplied at a
-rapid rate during the last few years. Beyond the
-northern boundary we find all the Scottish Universities
-have admitted them freely to membership,
-and if we cross St. George’s Channel, the Royal
-University of Ireland—like London, only an examining
-body—takes no note of sex, and even
-Trinity College, Dublin, is making some tentative
-essays in the teaching and examining of women.
-This represents what has been done in our own
-islands, but the same movement has been going on
-simultaneously all over the world. Thanks to Mr.
-M. E. Sadler,<a id='r15' /><a href='#f15' class='c011'><sup>[15]</sup></a> we are now in a position to compare
-the position of women at a hundred and thirty-nine
-different Universities. Questions were sent to the
-Universities of Great Britain and Ireland, the continent
-of Europe, the United States of America,
-Canada, India, and Australia. ‘It appears,’ says Mr.
-Sadler, ‘that at a hundred of these, the distinctions
-between men and women students are, if any, comparatively
-unimportant; at seven Universities women
-students are admitted, by courtesy or special permission,
-to some lectures and examinations; at
-twenty-one others women are, by like favour, admitted
-to some of the lectures; and at eleven
-Universities they are not admitted at all.’ Of the
-exceptions five are in Germany, three in Russia,
-one in Ireland, one in Belgium, one in the United
-States. France and Italy are specially remarkable
-for their generous recognition of women, and Germany,
-long obdurate, is making constant fresh concessions;
-but intending students should study the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_148'>148</span>special conditions of the one they wish to attend,
-since many of the regulations are most complicated.<a id='r16' /><a href='#f16' class='c011'><sup>[16]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'>This general advance all over the civilised world
-is the chief gain this half century has brought to
-women’s education. Though each country has proceeded
-on its own lines the movement has unconsciously
-been an international one. That gives it
-a strength which will make it permanent.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_149'>149</span>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER VIII<br /> <span class='large'>BOARDING AND PRIVATE SCHOOLS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>Once more our chronicle takes us back to 1867. A
-new era was then inaugurated, that of girls’ day
-schools. Not that these were anything new; small
-cheap day-schools for girls abounded, but the majority
-of them were bad. With fees ranging from £3 to
-£10 a year, and pupils of every variety of age, a
-little simple arithmetic will prove that the mistress
-had not sufficient funds at her disposal to pay for
-suitable premises and adequate teaching, to say
-nothing of winning a modest competence for herself.
-From all parts of the country came condemnation
-of these small, cheap schools. The opinions about
-boarding-schools were by no means so unanimous.
-They were censured for the excessive attention given
-to accomplishments, the insufficient education of the
-teachers, and their neglect of physical training; but
-these were faults common to nearly all the schools of
-that day, and not characteristic of boarding-schools
-as such. A careful perusal of the Commissioners’
-report leads to a far more favourable impression of
-boarding than day-schools, due, probably, to their
-being less hampered for funds. But the general
-public is influenced by impressions rather than facts;
-and certainly an impression did gain ground that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_150'>150</span>a day-school was in itself a good and a boarding-school
-an evil.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Unquestionably the reformers were right in first
-turning their attention to the former. Large schools
-of this kind were easier to organise, and really made
-for efficiency and economy, that much desired combination,
-which in this case is not, as so often, a mere
-contradiction in terms. The establishment of high
-and endowed schools has brought a good education
-within reach of thousands of girls who could by no
-other means have obtained it. The extinction of the
-small, cheap boarding-school which for the past century
-had been struggling to give the lower middle
-classes a poorer imitation of the poor education given
-elsewhere to their social ‘superiors,’ is a thing no
-one can seriously deplore. Painless extinction is,
-unhappily, impossible. The suffering which such
-changes bring in their train is to be deplored, but
-the article itself may be relegated to the class of
-those that ‘never will be missed.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The new day-schools met a real want, and success
-came to them at once. It was natural they should
-attract the first relays of the ‘graduates’ that
-the women’s colleges were beginning to send out.
-Thus they were the first to introduce improved
-teaching, and for a while they were supposed to
-have a monopoly of it. In the prevailing dearth
-of good mistresses they were able to get first choice;
-now, after the lapse of thirty years, the supply exceeds
-the demand, and a good teacher is attainable by any
-school of any grade that can satisfy the very moderate
-demands of university women.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The high schools started with a very definite principle—the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_151'>151</span>combination of school teaching with home
-influence—doubtless the ideal for all girls, supposing
-that each side duly fulfils its share of the obligation.
-But now, in 1898, it is curious to note how far the
-high school has travelled in twenty-five years. The
-original scheme of morning-school, from nine to one,
-and afternoon preparation for a few girls who had no
-quiet room at home, still prevails in theory, but
-<i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">quantum mutatus ab illo</span></i> can best be realised by
-tracing a day’s routine in school. First come the
-morning lessons, usually five in number, with the
-short break for play or drill, then the school dinner,
-to which over fifty girls sometimes sit down; again a
-short interval before the afternoon classes, music
-lessons and preparation, which usually go on till
-four, though girls who have no special duties at
-the time may be found at play in the playground.
-Still later, if it be summer, there may be an adjournment
-to the school field, often at a considerable
-distance. Not till darkness sets in can it be said
-that the day’s school life is over; and the elder girls
-still have some lessons to prepare before bed-time.
-A healthful, well-filled happy day is behind them,
-but where does the home influence come in? The
-girls might as well be weekly boarders for all the
-share they have in the real life of home. Saturday
-may see a cricket practice or a work party, or a school
-committee, or a sketching expedition, or a match with
-some distant school. Sunday alone belongs to the
-home. The numerous clubs, charities, old girls’
-meetings, etc. fill up all the time the girls can
-spare from their lessons. Girls who do not live
-quite near frequently become day-boarders, though
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_152'>152</span>the word is not used, and take dinner, and sometimes
-even tea, at school. In some few cases the school
-even undertakes to supply medical supervision and
-the general direction of the pupil’s health, thus
-relieving parents of one more responsibility. In fact
-the day-school is well on the road to become a
-boarding-school, and the establishment of boarding-houses
-more or less loosely connected with it is a
-further step in the same direction.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>How far these schools have travelled from their
-original intentions becomes evident if we refer back
-to a controversy on school hours that took place in
-1880 in consequence of some strictures passed by
-Mrs. Garrett Anderson on the arrangements in the
-High Schools. She considered the strain of the four
-hours’ morning excessive, and proposed reducing it,
-introducing afternoon school and a considerable interval
-for outdoor games between the two. This was
-met with general opposition by headmistresses. Day-schools,
-it was said, could not be expected to provide
-dinner, it was most undesirable for girls to return
-from school as late as four or five on cold winter
-afternoons, teachers could not be expected to undertake
-so much afternoon work, while the strongest
-opposition of all was made to the games. Miss Buss
-pointed out that the mixture of classes which was
-unobjectionable as long as girls only met at lessons
-where talking was forbidden, or in the short intervals
-which were largely devoted to lunch and drill, might
-cause serious difficulties if the whole day were spent
-in school. She also thought the games would be a
-difficulty; only rough girls would take part in them,
-and the rest simply lounge about.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_153'>153</span>How wrong these predictions have proved we all
-know. Girls’ athletics have made startling progress
-during the last ten years; cricket and hockey, seemingly
-rough games, have found favour with the most
-feminine of girls; the school dinner is a regular
-institution, and is accompanied by pleasant chat
-about practices, matches, election of club officers,
-etc. A new feature, never contemplated by the
-promoters, has entered these day-schools; and, oddly
-enough, is doing more than anything else to bring
-back to favour the once despised boarding-school.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Those that now originated were of a new kind, at
-least for girls; schools where the boarding-houses form
-part of the regular organisation, and the whole life
-and development of the girls is under the charge of
-the mistresses. Something of the sort had already
-been done at Cheltenham, and doubtless the College
-owed much of its success to its boarding-house
-system. Although a general English education,
-which is wanted by all alike, can be supplied in
-any town capable of supporting a large day-school,
-the very special teaching wanted by a few girls working
-for scholarships or specially advanced examinations
-causes a severe strain on the resources of a
-moderate-sized school, is impossible for financial
-reasons in a small one, and quite inaccessible to
-those girls with country homes from whom a considerable
-proportion of college students is drawn.
-Hence there arose a new type of school.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The first of this kind originated in Scotland, at St.
-Andrews. It was founded in 1877 by a local company
-with a view to educating their own daughters;
-but arrangements were at once made for taking
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_154'>154</span>boarders, and these were placed under the immediate
-charge of the head-mistress. As the numbers
-increased, other houses were taken and placed under
-charge of senior mistresses; and as more and more
-girls were attracted from a distance, the boarding
-element began to predominate. With Miss Lumsden,
-one of the ‘Girton pioneers,’ as first head-mistress,
-and Miss Dove, another student of Hitchin days, as
-her successor, the school very quickly settled down
-into lines very closely resembling those of a boys’
-public school. The boarding-houses became an integral
-part of the institution, the school-house being
-under the charge of the head-mistress, and the others
-under the senior assistants. In this way the staff of
-the school was strengthened by the encouragement
-thus offered to women of ability to remain in the
-school instead of seeking their promotion elsewhere.
-The boarding-houses are also valuable in ensuring
-regular attendance and proper home preparation,
-since the day-girls, being in a minority, cannot introduce
-those lax ideas of attendance which are in
-some places unfortunately the result of the much
-vaunted home influence.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The numbers in the school are limited to 200.
-The admission age is thirteen or fourteen, no girl
-can be admitted who has turned seventeen. All
-must pass an entrance examination, graduated according
-to age, but always including a certain amount
-of Arithmetic, English, Latin and French. A school
-of 200 girls, all between thirteen and nineteen, and
-all with a sufficient preparatory training, can genuinely
-concentrate its efforts on higher teaching. The classes
-become easier to group, and with a large staff which
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_155'>155</span>allows of careful subdividing, all the ordinary hindrances
-to progress are removed, and a school is
-enabled to work under the best possible conditions.
-It can, if it is desired, make a speciality of certain
-branches of study. At St. Andrews classics take an
-important place; of the present staff five have passed
-the Classical Tripos. Among the honours won by old
-pupils are first classes in Classical Moderations and
-Final Classical Schools at Oxford, and in the Classical
-Tripos at Cambridge. The school distinctly aims at
-a literary curriculum, with the higher certificate of
-the Joint Board to fix the standard, and Oxford or
-Cambridge as the goal for those girls whose education
-is to be continued.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>St. Leonard’s School, as it has been called since it
-acquired the old buildings and beautiful grounds of
-the ancient St. Leonard’s College, is organised with a
-school-house and seven boarding-houses, each under
-the charge of a mistress. With all the girls under
-the control of the head-mistress it is possible to carry
-out the prefect system, and, by giving a good deal of
-responsibility to the Sixth Form, remove that element
-of excessive supervision which was often a harmful
-element in the old-fashioned boarding-school. Each
-house constitutes a small community, with its separate
-dining-room and study, where each of the elder
-girls has a small writing-table and bookshelf. Some
-rules prevail in all, <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">e.g.</span></i> that no work shall be done
-before breakfast or after 8.30 <span class='fss'>P.M</span>. School hours are
-from 9 to 12.30 every day, with special subjects in
-the afternoon. After dinner about one and a half
-hours are given to games under charge of a special
-mistress. There is a playground of sixteen acres,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_156'>156</span>which comprises cricket-field, golf-course, lawn and
-gravel tennis-courts, large hockey-courts and fives-courts,
-etc. The St. Leonard’s girls are renowned for
-their skill in games.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With a school thus organised the life of the girls
-is made easier. There is no conflict of aims; in
-term-time the school claims its due, in holidays the
-home. Whether this is theoretically the best plan is
-an academic rather than a practical question, but it
-is undoubtedly beneficial to the studies and health
-of the girls. A mistress who is intimately acquainted
-with the work of every Form can check overwork more
-effectually than the most anxious mother, who is incapable
-of judging from that school point of view
-which looms so large in the young girl’s mind.
-Loyalty and public spirit, developed by this joint
-life of small communities within a large one, are
-important factors in forming character, and the
-general atmosphere of alternate work and play without
-the excessive excitement of home gaieties and
-the distraction of domestic interests unquestionably
-facilitates study. Whether the gains to character
-really outweigh the advantages of the family life
-depends so entirely on the arrangements and atmosphere
-of each particular home, that it is impossible
-to give any general opinion. At any rate results
-seem to show that this class of school is one of the
-chief needs for girls at the present time. A good
-deal of attention had been drawn to St. Leonard’s
-School in England, and in spite of the distance many
-girls were in the habit of journeying northwards three
-times a year for the sake of sharing in its advantages.
-At last a number of educationalists decided
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_157'>157</span>to establish a school of this kind in England, and
-induced Miss Dove, who had now placed the Northern
-school on a thoroughly satisfactory basis, to organise
-a similar one in the South. The Education Company,
-Limited, was formed, with a council of which the
-Master of Trinity became president. It was fortunate
-enough to secure for its first school the beautiful
-house and grounds of Wycombe Abbey. Situated in
-lovely country, with thirty-six acres of its own, and
-the rest of the park stretched all about it, the old
-trees, the historic memories and dignified surroundings
-help to shed over the school some of that feeling
-of tradition and veneration for the past, which all
-girls’ institutions must of themselves lack for some
-time to come.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The school resembles St. Leonard’s in its organisation,
-with some slight differences. There are no day
-pupils and, as the Abbey is itself capable of accommodating
-a hundred girls, it is divided for school
-purposes into four divisions, technically known as
-‘houses.’ Each house is in the special charge of its
-tutor, and has its own sitting-room and dormitories,
-and its table in the dining-room. The house-colour
-is carried out in the cubicles; cretonnes, bed-spreads,
-tiles, etc. being red, blue, green, or yellow, according
-to the special house in which the dormitory is
-situated. All this prettiness serves as an attractive
-background for hard work and healthy play. It is
-pleasant to find the modern school catering for all
-the sides of a girl’s nature.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It very soon became necessary to build, and with
-the help of the new houses two hundred can now be
-accommodated. Beyond this it is not proposed to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_158'>158</span>go; but should the system prove as popular in
-England as in Scotland, it is probable that the
-Education Company might open more schools. The
-conditions of admission, entrance examination, etc.
-are the same as at St. Andrews. Physical exercise
-plays an important part, and about two hours every
-day are given up to games or country walks, which
-groups of girls are allowed to take together. Each
-term has its own special game; lacrosse is the favourite
-in the autumn, hockey in winter, and cricket in
-summer. The heavy work of the day is thus broken
-up into two parts, and Wycombe, unlike the majority
-of girls’ schools, does not rigidly divide these into
-morning classes, afternoon preparation. Lessons
-and study hours alternate during the day. This is
-an attempt to relieve the strain of the long morning,
-against which many voices are again being raised.
-Physical and manual training come in for a share of
-attention, two hours a day in the upper, and three in
-the lower school. Under these headings come drawing
-and painting, part-singing, practising, dancing,
-gymnastics, carpentry, gardening, and needlework.
-All these are taught by expert teachers, and are
-treated as an integral part of the general education.
-In the upper forms six hours a day are given to
-actual study, in the lower only five. As this includes
-preparation, and the day is so fully occupied that
-there is not much chance of stealing odd half hours
-for work, it will be interesting to see whether this
-short allowance, with the help of careful arrangement
-and healthful surroundings, will prove sufficient to
-prepare girls adequately for college. It is too soon to
-ask for results, but if this plan succeeds, a problem
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_159'>159</span>which engages much attention at present will have
-been greatly helped towards solution.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Another school that is doing useful work, as what
-our American cousins would call an ‘experiment
-station,’ is the one at Brighton now known as
-Roedean. It was founded in 1885, by the Misses
-Lawrence, with three distinct aims: (1) to give a due
-importance to physical education and outdoor games
-in every girl’s life; (2) to regulate the school discipline
-in such a way as to develop trustworthiness
-and a sense of responsibility in the pupils; (3) to give
-girls a sound and careful intellectual training. The
-order in which these are stated indicates the growing
-importance attached to physical training and public
-spirit, and explains the lines on which what might be
-called the reformed boarding-school is proceeding.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>This Brighton school is just about to take a fresh
-departure. It has raised money by shares for a new
-building on a magnificent site between Brighton and
-Rottingdean. The new premises consist of a convenient
-school-house and four separate boarding-houses
-connected by covered passages with the
-central building. Something of college methods is
-to be brought into school by giving each girl a
-separate bedroom, while the eight seniors in each
-house are to have a study as well. Here they may
-give their Saturday tea-parties, entertain their friends,
-and learn to take the responsibility of their own little
-domain. The special characteristics of the school are
-the large amount of responsibility given to the girls
-and their success in games, of which they are not a
-little proud. The curriculum resembles that of a
-high school, with more scope for individual tuition,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_160'>160</span>and most of the teachers are graduates. Wimbledon
-House School, as it was called before the change in
-site necessitated a change in name, was one of the
-pioneers in bringing about the newer view of girls’
-education. These views are being widely adopted.
-The increased freedom, the more active life, the great
-stress laid on the <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">corpus sanum</span></i> as one means of
-developing the <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">mens sana</span></i>, are all part of the new
-order of things, and a recognition that the wider life
-led by the women of to-day needs its own special
-preparation.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A new school of a similar kind has been started
-at Aldeburgh, and is being carried on in temporary
-premises at Southwold on the East Coast. It is
-proposed to acquire a site here or in some other part
-of Suffolk, and raise money for building by means of
-a company. The plan is similar to the Brighton one:
-a school-house and boarding-houses under the charge
-of teachers, with plenty of freedom and individual
-responsibility for the girls. The daily hour and a
-half of outdoor exercise, the adoption of hand and
-eye training in the regular curriculum, and the
-medical inspection of the girls by a lady doctor,
-are among the more modern methods that distinguish
-it.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In their fundamental aims there is a close resemblance
-between these schools. They represent a fresh
-break with the past. The false ideal of showy
-accomplishment had already given way to the
-worthier aim of thoroughness and a more serious
-mental development. With the intellectual aims
-came a change too in the moral. The larger life of
-the day school of itself promoted more freedom and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_161'>161</span>a greater sense of responsibility in the girls, but their
-moral training was divided between the school and
-the home, and sometimes suffered from a lack of
-co-operation between the two. As Mrs. Sidgwick
-pointed out, when laying the foundation stone of the
-Roedean buildings:—‘Boarding-schools have a wider
-function, a more responsible task than day-schools.
-They have to care for pupils in play-hours as well as
-work-hours; they have, far more than day-schools,
-to superintend their development in matters moral
-and physical as well as intellectual.’ It is therefore
-largely in boarding-schools that the newest ideas can
-be worked out. The worst feature of the old boarding-school
-was the excessive supervision, and the deceit
-and silliness it engendered. <cite>Punch’s</cite> immortal
-direction, ‘Go and see what Baby’s doing, and tell
-her not to,’ might stand as the rule of conduct in
-many a seminary for young ladies. The atmosphere
-of suspicion engendered the very faults it was intended
-to obviate. The giggling boarding-school miss was a
-type it was not desirable to perpetuate. What was
-wanted was something that should prepare girls for
-life and its responsibilities, as boys were prepared at
-public schools. This term ‘a public school’ is
-curiously difficult to define, though we all know
-pretty well the meaning attached to it in England.
-It has perhaps been best described as ‘one where the
-government is administered in a greater or less
-degree by the pupils themselves.’ The true ‘public
-spirit’ could only develop as the schools became
-centres of something besides study. With the increase
-in their sphere of action the high schools
-have fostered its growth; to bring it to its full
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_162'>162</span>perfection must be the task of the modern boarding-school.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Another, and an essentially practical advantage of
-boarding-schools, is the facilities they offer for differentiation.
-We are coming to realise that all schools
-cannot teach all things, unless indeed like Cheltenham,
-they are really a number of different schools
-under one head. While many new subjects have
-been drawn within the sphere of a girl’s curriculum,
-the old still keep their place. The only escape from
-smatter and overstrain lies in a wise selection, and a
-girl’s general education may gain almost as much by
-the exclusion of some subjects as by the inclusion of
-others. With the constant increase of science schools,
-technical institutes, special endowments for science,
-etc., selection and differentiation are rapidly increasing
-in one direction, and it becomes essential to provide
-elsewhere against the complete neglect of the literary
-side. This the boarding-school may do without inflicting
-any injustice, since it does not profess to
-supply all the local needs. Up to the age of fourteen
-there can be no thought of specialising; by that time
-most parents have some general idea about their
-daughter’s probable future and special inclinations.
-If it is a question of a definite career, the choice
-becomes easier, because confined within narrower
-limits.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Yet after all, when we have reviewed in our minds
-all the careers open to women, and the great social
-changes due to their entering the lists with trained
-instead of unskilled labour, the fact still remains
-that, at any rate in the upper and upper-middle
-classes, the majority of women do not earn their own
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_163'>163</span>living. As Hannah More reminded us long ago,
-their profession is to be that of ‘wives, mothers, and
-mistresses of households,’ and to this we must now
-add the duties of a philanthropic and public character
-that social position brings with it. What is commonly
-called ‘a life of leisure’ may be an exceedingly
-busy life, and nowhere do the advantages of mental
-training, habits of accuracy, and a disciplined will
-tell to more advantage than in promoting the
-happiness of others. Most of these girls must
-receive any education, beyond the early part which
-a private governess can undertake, in boarding-schools,
-if only because the leisured classes to which
-they belong seldom live near enough to towns to
-make use of day-schools. To quote a very able and
-experienced schoolmistress:—‘The demand for private
-schools and for the individual attention which girls
-require has been increased by the habits of modern
-life among the upper and upper-middle classes.
-From my own personal knowledge there are many
-parents who spend nearly the whole year away from
-home or in entertaining a “house party” when they
-are at home. There is really no place at home for
-the poor girls who have not “come out.” What the
-parents seek for them is a school that can supply the
-place of a home, where they can receive individual
-attention, cultivation, training, and be prepared for
-society.’ She might have added that, even when
-there is a place at home for them, they may gain
-considerably by spending part of two or three years
-away from it, amid the more studious atmosphere
-and the numerous interests characteristic of these
-modern boarding-schools.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_164'>164</span>The reform in teaching unquestionably began in
-the public schools, but the best private schools
-have not been slow to bring themselves into line.
-Within the last few years several have been either
-founded or taken over by ladies who have studied
-at Oxford or Cambridge, or such as have occupied
-posts as heads or assistants in high schools, and have
-been drawn into the line of progress, while older
-institutions have held their own by the introduction
-of modern methods. Thus, while the old boarding-school
-was specially condemned for its stuffy rooms,
-inadequate dormitory accommodation, insufficient
-food and crocodile form of exercise, the new one,
-with a rather lower fee, devotes special care to
-buildings, bedrooms, diet, games, and gymnastics.
-Here are a few quotations from prospectuses:—‘There
-is a large playground at a short distance from
-the school, in which are five lawn-tennis courts and
-space for cricket, hockey, croquet, and other games.’
-This school has a certificated trained nurse and a
-sanatorium specially fitted up for illness. The Principal
-was for many years assistant mistress at a large
-high school.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘There are gardens with tennis-lawn, a gymnasium,
-a fives-court, an isolation ward and a playing field at
-a short distance from the house. Arrangements are
-made for riding and cycling.’ The Principal is a
-distinguished graduate of one of the women’s colleges.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘The buildings have been certified by a sanitary
-officer, and are fitted with every modern convenience.
-Arrangements have been made for cricket, tennis,
-and other healthful games, which are greatly encouraged.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_165'>165</span>‘The house stands in its own grounds of fourteen
-acres, which include garden, shrubbery, tennis-courts,
-and recreation field.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>These are samples taken at random.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Closely connected with regard for healthful conditions
-is the endeavour to avoid overstrain, and this
-has led to a not unnatural reaction against the
-excessive burden of outside examination. We find
-such sentences as ‘particular care is taken to prevent
-over-pressure.’ ‘For the younger or weaker of the
-party we provide extra half hours of rest or recreation
-in the garden.’ ‘There is no cramming for
-examinations, and the object set before each girl is
-to do her daily work as well as she possibly can from
-an honourable sense of duty,’ etc. It is often stated
-that pupils can be prepared for university or other
-examinations if desired, but although some few
-private schools of this type distinctly aim at the
-certificate of the Joint Board, the majority work on
-more general lines, while ensuring a high standard
-of efficiency by submitting the school annually to
-inspection by university examiners. The fees in
-schools of this grade vary from about £90 to £135
-per annum, with so-called ‘extras.’ These are reduced
-in the more modern institutions to such
-subjects as piano, violin, and dancing, which require
-individual instruction, while the more old-fashioned
-include languages, even French, under this heading.
-But both terms and curricula in private schools are
-adapted to special cases, and it is impossible to
-generalise on them. For girls, as for boys, the statement
-made by the Secondary Commission is probably
-correct, that ‘the large private schools, usually with
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_166'>166</span>boarders, are the private schools which do most for
-secondary education. They are often conducted on
-lines similar to those of public schools; but they are
-less bound by heredity, and the larger scope for
-experiment which they afford has, there is reason to
-believe, contributed to noteworthy improvements of
-methods.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Probably this class of school is in greater demand
-than ever before; but though there are not a few who
-can enjoy its benefits, it must always be a luxury
-for the rich, while there has been no corresponding
-improvement in the cheaper type of boarding-school.
-To provide board, lodging, and tuition, at fees ranging
-from £30 to £50, is a difficult problem, and can
-hardly be solved without the infliction of some
-suffering or injustice. Yet even these fees are beyond
-the reach of many whose homes are far away from
-towns. There is urgent need for some scheme of
-boarding-houses (not self-supporting) in connection
-with the cheaper endowed schools, and the application
-of some public money to the establishment of a
-few large boarding-schools in different parts of the
-country. Private effort cannot meet these cases.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Private day-schools involve a much smaller risk,
-and in these large numbers of well-educated women
-are now at work. In a place too small to support
-a high school, schools of this kind often supply all
-needs; but, oddly enough, they seem to flourish best
-where they exist side by side with good public schools.
-Bedford is an instance of a town well supplied with
-both. Sometimes the head-mistress takes a few
-boarders, and is thus enabled to provide better
-premises. The fees range from about £12 to £30
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_167'>167</span>per annum, and the curriculum is not unlike that of
-a high school, though the more expensive subjects,
-such as certain branches of science, are often
-omitted. The Junior and Senior Local Examinations
-and those of the College of Preceptors are a good
-deal used by these schools, and help to keep up a
-standard, where a regular external examination is not
-practicable. Small, cheap day-schools still abound,
-though happily in nothing like the old numbers.
-Even these have undergone some improvement,
-though rumour maintains that <cite>Mangnall’s Questions</cite>
-and <cite>Child’s Guide</cite> may still be found here, if we only
-dig deep enough. The lowest class of private school
-is attended by children who ought to be in the public
-elementary schools. The extinction of these, which
-is rapidly proceeding, can only be hailed with general
-satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Much has been said of late about the necessity of
-finding a place in any general system of education
-for private schools, but surely their proper function
-is so clearly defined that there is no fear of a day
-dawning when they are no longer needed. A further
-increase in cheap public day-schools may lessen the
-numbers, and it is hardly to be expected that in ten
-years’ time the present conditions, under which
-70 per cent. of our girls who are receiving secondary
-education are in private schools, shall still prevail.
-The true function of the private school is to offer
-an educational luxury to those who can pay for it,
-and on these lines, without coming into competition
-with public school work, it is likely to develop.
-The more public schools are established in a district,
-the greater becomes the field for first-grade private
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_168'>168</span>schools. This is well illustrated by the case of the
-United States, where the universal diffusion of
-the public schools seems to favour the growth of
-private ones. They can charge high fees, because
-the public schools are always available for those who
-cannot afford these. They can try experiments and
-adopt new methods, because they are not subject to
-the rigid direction and supervision to which public
-schools are liable. A great deal of the preparation
-for college falls to them, and they enjoy a very
-different reputation and position from the Prussian
-private schools, which are obliged to adopt the same
-‘code’ as the public. Cheap schools, to be efficient,
-must receive help with their finances; such help can
-hardly be given to private schools while they retain
-the freedom which is one source of their strength.
-It is probable, therefore, that they will more and
-more become schools for the well-to-do classes only.
-There must be some suffering involved in the
-changes which the near future is likely to bring, even
-if local educational authorities do all in their power
-to minimise this, and eventually the lower class of
-private school will probably go to the wall. But not
-till the Anglo-Saxon nature has undergone a complete
-transformation will there cease to be a place in
-England for private enterprise; and private schools,
-even though they may be deemed a luxury, will
-still rank among us as a necessity.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_169'>169</span>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER IX<br /> <span class='large'>THE TECHNICAL INSTRUCTION ACTS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>On June 24, 1890, a curious scene took place in the
-House of Commons. The Customs and Excise Bill
-had been dragging its weary way in committee, and
-making very small progress. The question under
-debate was the disposal of a residue of £350,000,
-available from the new duty on beer and spirits.
-This Mr. Goschen proposed to apply to compensating
-publicans whose licenses should be refused, but the
-Government did not care to press the point in face of
-opposition in the country and small majorities in the
-House. Mr. Goschen therefore proposed to shelve
-the matter till the next session, merely ‘ear-marking’
-the money for the purpose indicated. Thereupon
-Mr. Healy got up on a legal point, and reminded the
-House that the Budget Bill, which had already
-become law, expressly stated that the duties in
-question were to be dealt with in a particular way,
-and that the proceeds were to be appropriated ‘as
-Parliament may hereafter direct by any Act passed
-in the present session.’ Under these circumstances,
-he asked, had they power to postpone that appropriation?
-The Speaker thought they had not, and
-his ruling prevailed. The result was the acceptance,
-on August 1, of Mr. Acland’s proposal to apply the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_170'>170</span>money in England ‘for the purposes of agricultural,
-commercial, and technical instruction, as defined in
-Clause 8 of the Technical Instruction Act, 1889,’ and
-in Wales either for technical instruction or for purposes
-defined by the Welsh Intermediate Education
-Act.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>This sudden turn of affairs took the country by
-surprise. The county councils, to whom this money
-was assigned, were now expected to devote to educational
-purposes the money and energy which were to
-have gone to the extinction of licenses. From these
-events date the educational functions of the county
-councils. It was this ‘whisky-money’ which gave
-the impetus to technical education, a term which had
-been defined by the Act of 1889. Prolonged agitation
-throughout the country, due to the fear of foreign
-competition and the rumours of superior education
-given to the mechanics of other countries, had led to
-the appointment in 1884 of a Commission to consider
-the question, and to their report the Technical
-Instruction Act of 1889, and the amending Act of
-1891, were due.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Among the recommendations of the Commissioners
-were the following:—</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>1. That steps be taken to accelerate the application
-of ancient endowments, under amended schemes,
-to secondary and technical instruction.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>2. Provision by the Charity Commissioners for
-establishing in suitable localities, schools or departments
-of schools, in which the study of natural
-science, drawing, mathematics, and modern languages,
-should take the place of Latin and Greek.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>3. Giving power to local authorities to establish,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_171'>171</span>maintain, or contribute to the establishment of
-secondary and technical schools and colleges.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Following these lines, the Act defined technical
-instruction as ‘instruction in the principles of Science
-and Art, applicable to industries, and in the application
-of special branches of Science and Art to specific
-industries or employments.’ It was not to include
-teaching the practice of any trade or industry, but it
-might include any branch of instruction (including
-modern languages, and commercial and agricultural
-subjects), which were at any time sanctioned by the
-Science and Art department of South Kensington.
-The means of doing all this was a penny rate which
-local authorities were permitted to raise. Unaided this
-could not have done much, and very few places took
-advantage of this power, until the Local Taxation Act of
-the following year changed the whole aspect of affairs.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The movement in favour of technical education
-was one that had been slowly gathering force. At
-first, as so often happens, the blame for the unsatisfactory
-state of things was laid at the door of the
-elementary school. It was pointed out that the
-education given there was not sufficiently practical;
-drawing was little taught, and that little badly,
-while science fared even worse. Modelling was
-almost unknown, manual instruction had scarcely
-been heard of, ‘the pen was the only industrial
-weapon that boys intended for handicraftsmen were
-taught to use,’ and, except needlework, domestic subjects
-for girls were terribly neglected. This was true
-enough, but it was absurd to suppose that a remedy
-could be found in the schooling given to children
-under twelve. Such benefit as might be derived from
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_172'>172</span>a change in their curriculum was quite inadequate
-for the end in view. The real need was for a longer
-school life, with technical training based on a proper
-foundation of general knowledge. Hence the National
-Association for the Promotion of Technical Education
-adopted into its programme: ‘the development,
-organisation, and maintenance of a system of secondary
-education throughout the country, with a view to
-placing the higher technical and commercial education
-in our schools and colleges on a better footing.’
-It was doubtless for a similar reason that the Act
-excluded from its benefits scholars receiving instruction
-in elementary schools.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The money thus provided almost by accident,
-became a new and valuable source for endowing
-secondary education; and on all hands claims of the
-most varied kind were made on it. Administered by
-bodies of non-experts, who had to learn their business
-by doing it, much of it was misapplied; mistakes,
-often of a ludicrous character, were made, and there
-was some excuse for those producers and consumers
-of spirits who thought the money would have been
-better applied in relieving the tax. But in spite of
-repeated appeals by specially interested persons,
-Parliament kept firm in the matter; the money must
-be given to County Councils, and they must learn to
-use it. How well many of them have learnt can best
-be realised by a series of visits to the polytechnics of
-London and the large provincial towns, to the laboratories
-constructed in public schools, to the ambulatory
-dairy classes in village schoolrooms, to the beautifully
-equipped laundries, kitchens, and dressmaking schools
-all over the country.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_173'>173</span>Long before these Technical Instruction Acts were
-passed, isolated action had been taken. The Regent
-Street Polytechnic, long known as <em>the</em> Polytechnic,
-was already in full work. It originated in a Young
-Men’s Institute, privately founded by Mr. Quentin
-Hogg, with the large aim of providing a place where
-a young man could develop all the sides of his nature,
-and ‘find a reasonable outlet for any healthy desire,
-physical, spiritual, social, or intellectual, which he
-possesses.’ For some years the Institute flourished in
-Long Acre, and it happened that, just when increased
-accommodation became necessary, the old Polytechnic,
-long the home of Pepper’s Ghost, the diving-bell, and
-other joys and terrors of our young days, came into
-the market. It was at once secured, and the result
-was an unprecedented rush for membership. Mr.
-Hogg, who was the life and soul of the Institute,
-made a point of himself seeing every boy on joining,
-and on the first night in Regent Street, he began to
-interview new members at five o’clock. There he
-was kept at his desk, unable even to get a cup of tea,
-till a quarter to one in the morning, and by that time
-a thousand new members had been enrolled. With
-such encouragement, it was possible to try fresh
-experiments, and for the first time trade-classes and
-workshop practice were added to the programme.
-The Polytechnic thus became a pioneer in technical
-work. The London Trades Council in 1883 recommended
-its system of trade teaching to the London
-trades; members of the Technical Instruction Commission
-gave it their warm commendation.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Meantime other institutes were growing up. If
-Mr. Hogg claimed that the Polytechnic began its
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_174'>174</span>labours when he took two crossing-sweepers into the
-Adelphi arches, and made them the nucleus of a
-ragged school, the People’s Palace had an even more
-romantic origin. It was inspired by the picture, in
-<cite>All Sorts and Conditions of Men</cite>, of the Palace of
-Delight, of ‘the club of the working-people,’ where
-‘we shall all together continually be thinking how to
-bring more sunshine into our lives, more change,
-more variety, more happiness.’ Here, even more than
-at Regent Street, the recreative side was to the fore,
-and the main feature was the Queen’s Hall, in which
-public entertainments were organised. It had a
-chequered career, and finally was saved to the East
-End by the liberality of the Drapers’ Company.
-Since then the educational side has been more fully
-developed, but apart from the recreative, which is
-absolutely independent of the East London Technical
-College. This is an unusual condition, since, as a
-rule, the Polytechnics, mindful of their double origin,
-aim at being centres of both work and play. They
-have a tendency to fall into two classes: those that
-began as social clubs, and added the classes to their
-programme, and those that began with classes, and
-then encouraged the students to form clubs for
-literary, athletic and recreative purposes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The greater stress laid on the educational side by
-the more recent institutions was due to two causes.
-In 1883 the London Parochial Charities Act gave the
-Charity Commissioners powers to deal with certain
-sums, which had been left by benefactors long deceased,
-for purposes which had actually ceased to
-exist. It was lucky that this sum of money, which
-may be capitalised at over three millions, became
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_175'>175</span>available for public purposes at the very time when
-all this stir about technical education was taking
-place. The Regent Street Institute was chosen as
-a model. London was mapped out into twelve districts,
-and a Polytechnic was to be supplied for each,
-on condition of local aid supplementing certain sums
-which were offered conditionally. It was not long
-before this proposal brought munificent private
-donors into the field. The Marquis of Northampton
-and Lord Compton gave a site of the value of
-£30,000, Earl Cadogan gave ground of the value of
-£10,000; others gave less, according to their means.
-Eleven of these Polytechnics are already in existence;
-Paddington alone is waiting for the private benefactors
-who shall establish the claim to public help.
-The second impetus came from the Technical Education
-Board of the London County Council. The
-metropolis had been slow in following the lead of
-other counties, and it was not till 1892 that it resolved
-to apply its share of the whisky money to
-purposes of technical education. But when it did
-move it did so in good earnest. The Council conferred
-full executive power on a Board consisting
-of twenty of its own members, thirteen representatives
-of other bodies and two experts, one being a
-woman, co-opted by the Council itself. The bodies
-thus represented are: the London School Board, the
-City and Guilds of London Institute, the London
-Parochial Charities Foundation, the Headmasters’
-Association, the National Union of Teachers, and
-the London Trades Council. Mr. Sidney Webb was
-elected chairman, Dr. W. Garnett was appointed
-secretary and organiser, and the superintendence of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_176'>176</span>the domestic economy work was given to Miss Ella
-Pycroft. The Board has been most successful in its
-work, and a very complete scheme of technical instruction
-in London is being gradually evolved. Since
-the Board’s work is educational it is natural that this
-side has been specially emphasised in those Polytechnics
-which have been founded since its establishment,
-<i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">i.e.</span></i> those at Battersea, Chelsea, North London
-and the City.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The help given by the Board to Polytechnics may
-be thus stated:</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>1. Equipment grants made from time to time for
-specific purposes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>2. A fixed contribution of £1000 a year.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>3. Three-quarters—not exceeding £500 a year—of
-the principal’s salary.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>4. 10 per cent. on the fixed salaries of the teachers.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>5. 1d. for each hour’s attendance of each student.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>6. 15 per cent. on all voluntary subscriptions and
-donations from private sources.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Provided that the total payment to any Polytechnic
-under 2, 3, 4, and 5 does not exceed £3000, and under
-6 does not exceed £2000.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The Polytechnics are really subsidised from five
-different sources: private generosity, city companies,
-ancient and hitherto misapplied charities, part of the
-proceeds of the ‘beer and spirit tax,’ grants from the
-South Kensington Department.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Dreary as are such enumerations of names and
-figures, there is a special interest attaching to this
-particular set. The aggrieved ratepayer is apt at
-times to point to these splendid buildings as an
-example of the way in which his hard won money
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_177'>177</span>is being squandered, quite regardless of the fact that
-those papers he abhors have never contained any
-appeal for money for this purpose. London has
-never levied a technical education rate, thanks to
-these other sources of income which have given her
-citizens so much without any sacrifice on their part.
-The beer and spirit money has acted the part of a
-fairy godmother to London men and women.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It was made clear from the outset that both sexes
-were alike to benefit, and thus the Polytechnics have
-become what our American cousins call ‘co-educational.’
-But the needs of men and women are not
-always the same, and the special wants of women
-were considered in the establishment of a domestic
-economy side, though they are not limited to this.
-Practically the whole field of education beyond the
-elementary is open to county council action, provided
-no aid is given to institutions with a definite
-religious bias or conducted for private profit. The
-only subjects distinctly excluded by the Acts are
-classics and literature. The money is therefore available
-for purposes of—(1) definite Trade instruction;
-(2) day and evening classes in Science, both theoretical
-and applied, and Domestic Economy; (3) secondary
-education of a modern character.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Under these two last headings great things have
-been done for girls and women. In spite of the
-recent introduction into the elementary school code
-of such subjects as cooking and laundry, it is becoming
-more and more clear that the brief time
-allotted to the Standards is not too much for a
-grounding in general subjects, and that after this
-should come the preparation of a girl to be useful
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_178'>178</span>at home or to earn her living by domestic work.
-The elementary school girl is too young, the high
-school girl too busy, to gain much from the wedging
-of a little domestic teaching into the mass of the
-ordinary school work. Nor is a cookery or a laundry
-lesson once a week of much use in giving the necessary
-skill and practice. Domestic work wants continuous
-and consecutive practice, for the acquisition
-of that ‘touch’ and ‘knack’ on which so much
-depends; and the domestic economy schools come
-in here to supply what is really wanted.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>This type of school did not originate in London,
-though it has taken very firm root there. Some
-very interesting experiments had been made in other
-parts of the country, notably Yorkshire, before
-Battersea, the Borough, and Regent Street Polytechnics
-in 1894 opened their domestic economy
-schools, with fifty-four scholars nominated by the
-Technical Education Board, and the addition of a
-few paying pupils. This example was soon followed
-by the other Polytechnics, and the Board now elects
-386 scholars annually, who are distributed among
-nine schools. The course lasts five months, and
-during this time the scholars receive free tuition,
-two free meals daily, and the material required for
-making dresses or other garments. They attend from
-9.30 to 12.30 and 2 to 4.30 every day except Saturday.
-During that time they get a continuous and thorough
-training in cookery, needlework, dress cutting and
-making, laundry work and housewifery, with some
-gymnastics and singing. In addition to these scholarships
-second courses of five months’ instruction, with
-the opportunity of specialising in one particular
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_179'>179</span>branch, are now awarded to eighty-four scholars each
-half-year. The first course is not meant to train a
-cook or a dressmaker, but any girl who wishes to
-qualify herself for such a post gets a capital chance
-of testing her own abilities and inclination, and there
-are further opportunities of training open to her, if
-she desires them, in the second course or at the
-National Training School of Cookery. Last year four
-girls were apprenticed in good dressmaking firms on
-leaving the school.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Mrs. Pillow, lately employed by the Education
-Department to prepare a special report on the teaching
-of Domestic Economy, gives an account of the
-work of these schools. She says: ‘Housekeeping and
-cookery are treated as part of the everyday life of
-the girls, and not merely as school lessons. The girls
-cook the meals which they are to eat; they learn to
-measure and fit themselves for the dresses which they
-are taught to make, and they are instructed in laundry
-work in such a way that they can quite well apply
-their knowledge to the “family wash” in their own
-homes. The cookery syllabus contains dishes which
-are well within the reach of the working man earning
-an average wage; the using up of odds and ends,
-bones, crusts, and cold vegetables, scraps of meat, etc.
-receives attention, and the utensils and stoves provided
-for the girls are similar<a id='r17' /><a href='#f17' class='c011'><sup>[17]</sup></a> to those found in the
-majority of artisans’ homes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘The laundry work is taught on simple and common-sense
-principles, the only extra aid to speed and
-efficiency being a wringer and mangle, and, as these
-are now so frequently found in the homes of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_180'>180</span>more thrifty housewives, it is well that the girls should
-be taught to use them properly. The processes of
-steeping, washing, boiling, rinsing, blueing, wringing,
-drying, folding, mangling are all thoroughly taught.
-The washing of flannels and woollens, a part of
-laundry work which is frequently very badly done by
-laundry women, receives special attention, and starching
-and ironing are exceedingly well done by the
-girls at the conclusion of their course of training.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘The girls are taught the market value of foods.
-In some of the schools special arrangements are made
-for this. At Battersea they are taken out to purchase
-meat, greengrocery, etc. When the girls cannot be
-taken out to market, they are sometimes allowed to
-purchase from the teacher in charge of the stores.
-They are taught to compare prices, to judge of the
-freshness and quality of commodities, to expend a
-given sum to the best advantage in the cheapest
-market, and how to prepare and cook their meals in
-the shortest time possible.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The fee for the complete course is £1, 10s., or
-7s. 6d. per month, and this includes the cost of all
-books and materials. The greater part of the pupils
-come from the elementary schools, but surely they
-are not the only girls who need such teaching. Many
-pupils leave the high schools at fourteen or fifteen to
-live at home in somewhat straitened circumstances.
-To them such a training as this would indeed be a
-boon. It would even be worth the sacrifice of the
-last six months at school, since they must in any case
-leave without getting the best it can afford, the teaching
-in the fifth and sixth forms. Girls attending
-second grade schools, who naturally leave early, would
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_181'>181</span>find these domestic economy courses an admirable
-means of transition between school and home life;
-while those, whose bent lies in this direction, can go
-on to the training schools, and either become teachers
-of these subjects, or earn a living by their practical
-application. In fact, the domestic economy school is
-fast helping to raise the home arts into their proper
-educational place, as affording one among many suitable
-careers for women, no longer the Cinderella
-among occupations, who sits among the ashes, because
-the prince has not yet come to claim her. The neglect
-of the middle class to use these schools is another
-instance of their proverbial apathy; meantime, these
-good things are ready for them as soon as they will
-take the trouble to grasp them. Of course there is
-no reason why such teaching should be given free,
-except to a minority.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Even more widespread than these day-schools are
-the evening classes in the same subjects. These are
-found throughout the country, in towns at technical
-institutes, in villages in little classes taught by peripatetic
-teachers, who are sent from place to place by
-the county councils. In fact, ‘county council dressmaking’
-has become such a feature, that it might be
-taken for a special system of cutting and fitting. The
-persons for whose benefit this instruction is given
-are young women who have left school, wives, and
-mothers of families. If experience has taught them
-their own deficiencies, they have now the opportunity
-of making up lost ground. Cookery, dressmaking,
-and nursing often attract large numbers. The teaching
-has no professional purpose. It is simply ‘for
-home use,’ as the Germans say, and has its place in a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_182'>182</span>wide scheme of general education, which includes
-training the hand as well as the mind.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>This village work must, to some extent, be desultory,
-while, in the large town institutes, it can be made
-more systematic. Its value is considerably affected
-by the construction of the board which controls it.
-A council which places experts on its technical education
-committee generally does better than one that
-simply adds education to its other manifold functions.
-Women are able to sit on these committees, and it is
-of great importance, for the more feminine side of the
-work, that they should be appointed in larger numbers
-than has hitherto been the case.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The female element is represented at some of the
-institutes by the appointment of a lady-superintendent
-of the women’s department. This is the case in the
-London Polytechnics, where the women’s work is
-very fully equipped. At Battersea, which may be
-taken as typical, the subjects taught in this department
-are: cookery, needlework, dress cutting and
-making, millinery, fancy needlework and embroidery,
-laundry work. In most of these subjects pupils can
-be prepared for the examinations of the City and
-Guilds of London Institute. The fees are low, and
-the courses carefully graduated. There is an interesting
-class in ‘homekeeping,’ intended for students
-whose occupation prevents them from getting the
-necessary knowledge of housekeeping during the day.
-This includes such items as spring cleaning, ordinary
-household duties and daily routine, and is probably
-of special use to that large class of housekeepers who,
-having learnt their own deficiencies from bitter
-experience, can value this opportunity of remedying
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_183'>183</span>them. Another useful course is elementary political
-economy, which includes value and distribution of
-wealth, rent, wages, and other similar problems. This
-instruction, to which both mistress and maid might
-listen with profit, can be had by Polytechnic members
-for 1s., and for 1s. 6d. by outsiders. Members may
-also join a reading circle and a first-aid class; they
-can use the beautiful gymnasium, and refresh their
-cramped limbs with musical drill. All this, with the
-social advantages which are manifold, is within reach
-of those girls and women who are lucky enough to
-live in the neighbourhood of a Polytechnic, and have
-some free evenings to spend there.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Institutes of this kind are fast being brought within
-reach of all dwellers in towns. The municipal schools
-of Manchester and Brighton need hardly shrink from
-comparison with those of the metropolis. In fact,
-when we look at the sumptuous equipment of such
-schools, we are tempted to exclaim that Cinderella
-has indeed left the ashes, and ascended into her
-palace. But these glories are not hers by sole right.
-The men’s department (of mechanics, engineering,
-etc.) is far larger than the women’s, and besides these
-two, where the sexes are of necessity kept apart, there
-are numerous classes where they meet on common
-ground. At Battersea the art department is open
-three days and five evenings a week, and the general
-scheme includes a thoroughly practical knowledge of
-designing, drawing, painting, and modelling, especially
-in its various applications to trades and industries, as
-well as life classes, and the commoner features of such
-schools. In the commercial school, arithmetic, book-keeping,
-typewriting and shorthand are taught, as
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_184'>184</span>well as French. There are classes in pure and applied
-mathematics, and every branch of science is taught
-with such advantages in the way of laboratories and
-appliances, as no private or self-supporting institution
-could attempt to supply. Most Polytechnics are
-centres for University Extension, some have fine
-gymnasia, some have swimming-baths; nearly all
-have a long list of social, athletic, and recreative clubs.
-In fact, a well-equipped Polytechnic is a kind of
-popular University, which provides for all the needs
-of its members, though with some neglect of the
-literary side. This, too, might be supplied by the
-omission or insertion of a few words in an Act of
-Parliament. The Polytechnics and Technical Institutes
-would thus at once be transformed into the
-most completely equipped and endowed scheme of
-secondary and higher education in this country.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With such resources at their disposal, it is natural
-that Technical Instruction boards and Polytechnic
-governors should have gone a step further, and tried
-to utilise their spacious premises and admirable
-teaching staff for the ordinary purposes of a day-school.
-Experiments on these lines are being tried
-in several places. It is thought that by establishing
-such schools, the polytechnic both gives and receives;
-if it helps the schools by allowing them to use its
-premises and staff, it is helped in turn by the training
-given to a number of boys and girls, who will some
-day be properly equipped to profit by the more
-advanced instruction in the evening. The school is
-largely a feeder for the polytechnic, and will help in
-time to raise the standard of its work. As such it
-should be judged rather than as an independent
-experiment in secondary education.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_185'>185</span>A joint school for boys and girls need excite no
-surprise in an institution that started at once as
-‘co-educational.’ But unfortunately, in schemes of
-this kind there is always a tendency to let the girls
-come off second-best. This certainly applies to the
-arrangement of an ‘Organised Science School,’ which
-is the scheme usually adopted, both on account of its
-bias in favour of the scientific side and the power
-it confers to earn grants from South Kensington.
-Probably the admission of girls was to some extent
-an afterthought. The Battersea school had been
-open over a year before girls were admitted as an
-experiment. The present numbers are about one
-hundred and thirty, of whom two-thirds are boys.
-The average age of the junior division is fourteen,
-and of the senior fifteen. The fees are £1 a term,
-including books and stationery. The school hours
-are 9.30 to 12.30, and 2 to 4.30, five days in the week.
-The work of the three divisions is arranged thus:</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>1. Mechanical Division. Mathematics, five hours;
-Mechanics, three and a half hours; Physics, three
-and a half hours; Drawing, four hours; English
-subjects, four hours; French, two hours; Manual
-training, four and a half hours; Drill, one hour.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>2. Science Division. Mathematics, five hours;
-Mechanics, two and a half hours; Physics, three
-and a half hours; Chemistry, four and a half hours;
-Drawing, three hours; English subjects, four hours;
-French, two hours; Manual training, two hours;
-Drill, one hour.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>3. Elementary Division. Mathematics, five hours;
-Physics, three hours; Chemistry, two and a half
-hours; Drawing, three hours; English subjects, five
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_186'>186</span>hours; French, three hours; Art, two hours; Manual
-training or Domestic Economy, three hours; Drill,
-one hour.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Its aim is described as the imparting of ‘a
-thoroughly sound secondary education, with special
-provision for the study of pure and applied science,
-manual training, workshop practice and domestic
-economy.’ This school is interesting apart from its
-curriculum, owing to the efforts made by Mr. S. H.
-Wells, Principal of the Polytechnic, who acts as headmaster,
-to make it ‘secondary’ in the full sense, and
-introduce some of the <i><span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">esprit de corps</span></i> and out-of-school
-life which are such marked features in boys’
-‘public’ and girls’ high schools. The school is
-divided into forms with a form-master; ‘each form
-meets in its form-room for call-over before school
-opens for the day, after which they assemble for
-prayers, which are read by the Principal. These are
-confined to a few verses of Scripture and the Lord’s
-Prayer; and exemption from attendance is granted
-when requested by the parent, although only two
-such requests have been made. In matters of discipline
-the students have been taught to realise that
-having ceased to be children they should have given
-up childish things; they are present to work not to
-play, and their duty to their parents and themselves
-calls them to take every advantage of the opportunities
-afforded; in a word, they are not expected
-to commit acts against discipline—they are trusted.’
-Mr. Wells further tells us that ‘senior students are
-told off every day to ascertain the chief events recorded
-in the newspapers, and to record them on a
-blackboard, which all the school are expected to read,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_187'>187</span>to be afterwards questioned on the event in their
-English classes. In the same way a record is made
-of daily weather observations. All boys are required
-to wear the school cap, and the habit of “capping”
-the teachers outside the school is willingly adopted.
-Each term sees its “drill competitions” between the
-different forms for a shield presented by the Principal,
-its inter-form cricket or football matches for a
-challenge cup presented by the masters, and matches
-between the masters and school. The end of term
-sees its gymnastic displays or concerts with acting
-and recitals, to which parents and friends are invited.
-Three school captains are elected each term, the
-method being that they are proposed and seconded,
-and voted for by the whole school. The captains
-have authority outside the class-rooms, and their
-position is readily and loyally acknowledged.’ The
-girls have their games among themselves, though
-now and then they play a boys’ team at hockey.
-They have their own captain, and are assembled for
-call-over by a mistress, who has a general control over
-them, and is always ready to help them with advice
-and sympathy. Women, of course, give the lessons
-in cooking, etc., which are the feminine counterpart
-of manual training; else all the teaching is in the
-hands of men. The intellectual results appear to
-be satisfactory, and here, as in other co-educational
-institutions the girls are quite able to hold their own
-in class. Of the moral and hygienic results it is
-far more difficult to judge. Whether girls between
-fourteen and sixteen would not be better under the
-care of a woman, whether they do not miss some of
-that moral influence which can only be exercised by a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_188'>188</span>form-mistress who also takes part in the teaching,
-are questions that must come up in the near future,
-should there be any disposition towards co-education
-in this country. As yet it has generally been adopted
-rather from motives of economy than on grounds of
-principle. Institutions like those at Battersea, Chelsea,
-and Wandsworth are boys’ schools to which girls are
-admitted; although, as a matter of fact, at Chelsea
-the girls outnumber the boys. The amount of time
-given to science would never have been allotted had
-the real needs of girls been considered. It is an interesting
-experiment, but it will not do much towards
-solving the problem of Modern Schools for girls.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Even more one-sided in its aims is the type of
-school which the Surrey County Council is starting.
-This county is specially deficient in girls’ schools of a
-middle grade, though it contains several good proprietary
-high schools, and the technical committee
-is therefore applying some of its funds to the supply
-of this want. The Wimbledon school is the first
-attempt of the kind, and must be regarded as still in
-an experimental stage. Girls who enter are supposed
-to have attained to the requirements of the Sixth
-Standard, but in a district where there are no Board
-schools even this is not always attainable. Hence
-there are many gaps to fill up, before a proper foundation
-is laid for the new studies. It is supposed that
-girls will stay for four years, and should they do so,
-a most valuable experiment might be made in devising
-a ‘modern’ curriculum, essentially adapted for
-girls. Hitherto in this first year’s work the course
-of study is exceedingly meagre; neither science nor
-literature is taught; there is a little English history
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_189'>189</span>and geography, but the bulk of the time goes to
-shorthand, book-keeping, commercial arithmetic,
-cooking, laundry and dressmaking. All excellent
-things, but surely this is not sufficient intellectual
-fare for these twelve-year-old children. Another two
-years at general subjects would help to lay a really
-good foundation on which the special work could be
-built up; and it is probable that the shorthand and
-double entry, and even the puddings and clear-starching,
-will not suffer in the end for this little
-delay at the beginning. This kind of work is none
-the better for being spread out over so many years.
-It cannot, like the more intellectual subjects, be perpetually
-presenting fresh developments, which give
-it the charm of novelty. There seems some danger
-lest, in trying to elevate the status of the domestic
-and commercial arts, we should forget that they
-cannot satisfy all sides of our nature. Girls want
-something different from the science school, but it
-must not be a purely utilitarian training. In the
-true modern school they will learn subjects of daily
-utility; but just because so much time is given to
-these, there must be special prominence for all that
-makes for culture. To the Spencerian dictum that
-education must prepare for the business of life, we
-should add Aristotle’s wise admonition, that it should
-teach the right use of leisure. Keeping both these
-in view we may yet discover the ideal ‘Modern
-School.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It would not be fair to blame technical education
-boards because they have not yet solved this difficult
-problem. Their experience in education is still new,
-and as far as schools are concerned their best work
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_190'>190</span>has been done in subsidising those that already exist.
-On this large sums are now being spent. To be exact,
-we may state that during the year 1896–97, sixty-three
-councils, (forty-two county, and twenty-one
-county borough) gave direct or indirect assistance
-to three hundred and twenty-eight secondary schools
-to the amount of £144,871, 2s. 2d., this sum including
-the scholarships and exhibitions granted to pupils
-proceeding to or from secondary schools. How much
-of this goes to girls does not appear, certainly not
-half, but at any rate enough to make a very appreciable
-difference to their education.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Of course, this help is not given unconditionally.
-It usually implies the representation of the local
-authority on the governing body of the school, the
-application of the entire subsidy to purposes of
-technical education, and observance of the clauses
-abolishing religious tests. Some counties have
-special requirements, without which no subsidy can
-be given. <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">E.g.</span></i> Cheshire demands:</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>(1) That drawing shall be taught to every pupil
-except any whose exemption may be approved by
-the committee. (2) That at least two science subjects
-shall be taught to all pupils over ten. (3) That one
-modern language shall be taught, and regular instruction
-given in some commercial subjects. (4)
-That each student shall receive instruction for at
-least three hours a week in mathematics. (5) That
-the pupils shall be annually examined, and at least
-twenty-five per cent. of them sit for the examinations
-of the Science and Art Department, or such
-other examination as the Technical Instruction Committee
-may from time to time approve.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_191'>191</span>Other counties are less rigid in their demands. In
-London, where endowed schools for girls have been
-greatly helped with grants, some special condition
-often accompanies a subsidy. Thus the Owens girls’
-school at Islington received £300 ‘to be expended
-in fitting up the new laboratory and art-room,’ the
-Central Foundation school was charged to spend its
-grant on fitting up another room for work in practical
-physics and appointing an assistant science mistress.
-At the Camden school the board provided an Arts
-and Crafts room, where cookery and dressmaking
-are regularly taught; at the James Allen’s school,
-Dulwich, a laboratory has been built, and a subsidy
-given for an assistant science mistress. Such subsidies,
-even when given for a specific purpose, help
-the whole school indirectly, since they set free money
-from the general funds for the benefit of what cannot
-be included in that elastic term ‘technical education.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Perhaps the chief benefit yet conferred by county
-councils on secondary education is the gift of scholarships.
-It has been left to the technical instruction
-committees to frame that ‘ladder’ of which so much
-is heard on educational platforms. Thanks to a
-system of graduated scholarships, it is now possible
-for an intelligent boy or girl to pass from a primary
-to a secondary school, and thence even to the
-university. Of course this has been done before now,
-but never on such a large scale. Since each county is
-a law unto itself, a girl’s chances depend greatly on
-the place where she happens to live. A girl living in
-Bedfordshire has no county council scholarships
-open to her, but the Harpur Trust schools at Bedford
-receive girls with scholarships from other counties.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_192'>192</span>A Surrey girl has a good chance of winning a
-scholarship, but, owing to the dearth of girls’ public
-schools in that county, she may not be able to make
-the best use of it. Happily, there are many parts of
-England where both schools and scholarships are
-available, and there will soon be more, if one of the
-difficulties in the way of the girls’ ‘ladder’ is removed,
-by the recognition of proprietary high schools as
-public institutions at which scholarships can be held.
-This is now being done in some places, to the great
-advantage of the scholars.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Some counties, <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">e.g.</span></i> Derbyshire, Durham, and Yorkshire,
-have a very complete system of scholarships,
-accompanied by maintenance grants, without which
-they would in many cases be useless. There are few
-counties that do nothing in this way. The London
-Technical Education Board regards its scholarship
-scheme as the basis for nearly all its work. ‘The
-award of junior and intermediate county scholarships
-necessitates such grants to secondary schools
-as will enable them to make proper provision for
-the technical training of the scholars. Similarly,
-the award of intermediate and senior county scholarships
-compels the Board to see that the training
-afforded in institutions for higher education is suitable
-for scholars of seventeen years of age and
-upwards.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The Board gives three classes of scholarships:—(1)
-Junior county scholarships, intended chiefly for
-pupils of public elementary schools working in the
-fifth or higher Standards, tenable for two years and
-renewable. Of these six hundred are given annually,
-and fifty are open to candidates from other than
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_193'>193</span>elementary schools, whose parents have an income
-below £150. These scholarships give their holders
-free education at any approved secondary or upper
-standard school, with money payments of £8 for
-the first year, and £12 for the second.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>2. Intermediate county scholarships are open to
-boys and girls under sixteen who come from any
-school, secondary or upper standard. They give free
-education to the age of eighteen or nineteen, with
-money payments rising from £20 to £35 a year.
-The income limit is £400. They are tenable at public
-secondary schools and places of higher learning.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>3. Senior county scholarships. These are few in
-number, and intended to provide for specially promising
-students a training of university rank. They
-give free education at a college or technical institute,
-with money grants of £60 a year, and are tenable for
-three years. Here, too, the income limit is £400.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In 1896–97 London had a thousand junior scholars
-in fifty secondary, and two hundred and ninety-four in
-thirty-six upper standard schools. Of this total four
-hundred and eighty-five are girls. The intermediate
-scholars, of whom there were a hundred and eighty,
-were in the following institutions: three university
-colleges, five technical and science colleges, one
-training department of a polytechnic, fourteen first-grade
-public secondary schools, twenty-one second grade
-public secondary schools. Sixty-two of these
-scholars were girls. Of the senior scholars only two
-were women. They pursued their studies at Holloway
-and the Central Technical Colleges.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>All this is, of course, in addition to the special
-scholarships for Art, Science, Domestic Economy,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_194'>194</span>etc., which come more directly under the heading
-of ‘technical.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>If we turn away from these lists of names and
-figures to consider how wide a field has been covered
-by this work in London and the provinces, we cannot
-but be struck by the developments of these eight
-years. A system of universities for the people has
-been started, technical and commercial education
-have received an enormous impetus, secondary
-instruction has been brought within reach of large
-numbers by whom it was hitherto unattainable,
-numbers of already existing schools have been
-placed on a firm financial basis, and throughout
-the special needs of women have been considered.
-With better building and plumbing, better cooking
-and washing, we certainly may hope for more creature
-comforts in the good time coming. But this is
-a small thing compared with the brightening of
-homes by the gift of those higher pleasures, without
-which it has been truly said that life is not truly
-life at all.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Surely whisky-drinkers need not grudge the extra
-sixpence which has done all this!</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_195'>195</span>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER X<br /> <span class='large'>STATE AID FOR GIRLS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>While private effort in the form of companies,
-endowments, and individual enterprises was building
-up a complete, though unorganised, system of girls’
-education, another system totally unconnected was
-being gradually developed by aid of the State.
-For a long time the two were regarded as parallel,
-with no possible point of contact, except such as
-might be artificially established by means of scholarships.
-Now we are beginning to think that we may
-have mistaken the direction of the lines, and that
-there are some points of connection between the
-Board School and the High School pupil.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>This change is due to the growing conviction that
-the education of its citizens is a matter of which
-a State should take cognisance. Far behind Germany
-in its adoption of this principle, England did at last
-wake up to the necessity of educating all her citizens.
-Whether out of self-defence, to ‘educate our masters,’
-as Mr. Lowe bade us do, or, as Plato would have
-counselled, to make the men and women of the
-State as good as possible, the idea of universal
-education has at last gained a hold in this country.
-Very slowly, and with immense opposition on the
-part of the classes who regarded learning as their
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_196'>196</span>own peculiar privilege, and were jealous of any
-intrusion in what they considered their private
-domain. But they were powerless to hinder; when
-once the little flame was kindled, no force could
-avail to extinguish it. From the moment that one
-generation educated in the new schools took their
-place as voters, the system was secured. The democracy
-soon realised that education was a levelling
-agency, and that it was their interest both to
-maintain and improve it.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It is difficult for those who are familiar with our
-elementary education to realise how recent is its
-establishment in England, and how still more a
-matter of yesterday the full use of the opportunities
-offered. England was the last of the great European
-countries to accept the doctrine of the responsibility
-of the State for education. Schools for the poorer
-classes were for a long time either non-existent or a
-matter of local, largely denominational, effort. The
-first grant of public money to schools was made in
-1832, when, without any previous legislation on the
-subject, the sum of £20,000 for this purpose appeared
-in the Estimates. Seven years later this was increased
-to £30,000, and by an order in Council a special
-committee of the Privy Council was established, with
-its own staff of officers to supervise the work. This
-was the first beginning of the Education Department.
-Thus gradually, almost imperceptibly, the State was
-beginning to intervene in education. When in 1858
-the Duke of Newcastle’s Commission was appointed
-to inquire into the whole state of popular education,
-it found that much had already been done, but the
-great need was for some systematic control. The
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_197'>197</span>result of its findings was the celebrated Revised Code
-of 1861, whose main provisions were:—</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘1. That a school must be in approved premises.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘2. That each child must make a certain number
-of attendances.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>‘3. That children must pass individual examinations
-in reading, writing, and arithmetic.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Thus originated the much praised and much
-abused system of ‘payment by results,’ about which
-so many a contest has waged.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Up to 1870, the whole system had grown up out of
-administrative machinery, without direct intervention
-of the legislature. Voluntary effort originated the
-schools, Treasury grants assisted them. The Education
-Act of 1870 was intended, to quote the words of
-its author, Mr. Forster, ‘to complete the voluntary
-system, and to fill up gaps.’ Its object was not so
-much to create schools as School Boards. Where
-voluntary effort was, by inspection, proved insufficient,
-a district could be called upon to elect a School
-Board, with power to raise a rate. A subsequent Act,
-by establishing school attendance committees for
-non-School Board districts, completed the system of
-local control; and the 1880 Act made attendance
-compulsory on all children up to ten (since altered to
-eleven), and forbade the employment of any children
-between ten and thirteen who had not reached a
-standard to be fixed for each district by its own local
-authority. Those who could not reach this by fourteen
-might claim the dunce’s privilege.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The School Boards found plenty of work before
-them. For some years they were chiefly occupied in
-drawing into the schools the great masses of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_198'>198</span>entirely uneducated; and the three R’s, which was all
-they could aim at, came to be regarded in many
-quarters as the ultimate aim of elementary school
-instruction. But this was a temporary stage, which
-had to be gone through before the red-brick school-house
-had become a regular feature of town and
-village throughout the kingdom. Education was
-compulsory till the age of ten; children who passed
-through all the standards would remain at school till
-about twelve or thirteen. For the masses that might
-be sufficient; for a select few it was either too little or
-too much. It served to kindle in their minds a love
-of knowledge, and to reveal a special inclination for
-intellectual pursuits, without offering the means of
-satisfying it. Gradually the need of building a second
-story on this lower edifice became manifest. A
-subject much debated during the last few years is
-the question whether this should be planted on the
-top of the primary building, or provided by special
-avenues leading from the elementary schools to existing
-secondary institutions. But while educationalists
-were discussing matters in the abstract, the necessities
-of the case were compelling the existing schools to
-build their own top story. When the Secondary
-Education Commission of 1894 came to discuss the
-best methods of establishing continuation schools,
-they found that a considerable number were already
-at work in different parts of the country. The change
-had come about little by little. Clever children had
-passed through the standards at an age when it was
-impossible or inadvisable to set them to work; it was
-natural that the school should be unwilling to turn
-them away. Thus originated an ex-sixth standard, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_199'>199</span>gradually the pressure of the Boards upward brought
-about the extension of the parliamentary grant to a
-new standard—the seventh—in which more advanced
-subjects of study received recognition. Thus while
-the obligatory subjects still remain reading, writing,
-and arithmetic, with needlework for the girls and
-drawing for the boys, the optional and specific subjects—of
-which, however, no child may take more
-than a very limited number—now range over several
-sciences, languages, and mathematics, as well as what
-are popularly called technical subjects. The great
-mass of schools are still obliged to confine themselves
-to elementary work; but with the introduction of
-other subjects into the code, a new element has
-entered the schools, and has without doubt ‘come to
-stay.’ The next development after the seventh
-standard was a system of ex-standard classes, which
-in large schools could be worked without a great
-addition to the staff. In particular, the instruction
-of the pupil-teachers introduced some more advanced
-classes; and as time went on, parents who had themselves
-enjoyed the benefits of education showed
-themselves more and more willing to leave their
-children at school as long as the school was willing to
-keep them. In this way the ex-seventh standard
-developed into the Higher Grade Elementary school.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>This name belongs properly to two different types
-of school. The Higher Grade proper begins at the
-fifth standard, and gives an education for three or
-four years beyond the seventh. But the term is also
-applied to a school which includes all the standards,
-and gives more advanced instruction to a small
-number of pupils who remain after passing through
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_200'>200</span>these. The latter is the kind usually found in
-London; the former is popular in large manufacturing
-towns, especially in the north, and it is this which is
-stepping in to fill an important gap in the secondary
-system of the country.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>These schools mark the existence of a new and
-vigorous educational impulse arising from below.
-They are a natural, though apparently unexpected,
-development of the elementary school, which, according
-to the words of the Act, is one ‘at which elementary
-education is the principal part of the education
-there given.’ Since the great mass of children do
-not go beyond the fifth standard, it is convenient in
-large towns to draw into a single school all who propose
-to continue their education, and by a systematic
-course of further study to encourage them to stay on
-as long as possible. Thus a secondary school has
-grown up so naturally and quietly on the top of the
-elementary, that many persons are hardly aware of
-its existence.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>This sudden addition of a four years’ advanced
-course would obviously be impossible without funds,
-and the Education Department is officially unaware
-of the existence of any pupils beyond the seventh
-standard. The good fairy who steps in here is none
-other than that much abused South Kensington
-Department of Science and Art. This department,
-which, justly or unjustly, has come to be regarded as
-a red-tape-bound machine for examining and conferring
-grants by a sort of automatic process, has only
-of late years been brought into connection with day-schools.
-Though its grants began as early as 1837,
-their object was chiefly to encourage evening classes,
-and make cheap instruction possible for those men
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_201'>201</span>and women whose occupation or income shut them
-out from the ordinary means of education. An
-examination which could be used for the purpose of
-earning income naturally became popular; and in
-spite of protests from many quarters, in particular
-from some artists, who regarded the system of drawing-teaching
-as mechanical and cramping, there has
-been little diminution in its popularity as a money-producing
-agency. The establishment of technical
-institutes gave it a fresh impulse, since the adoption
-by these of the South Kensington examinations gave
-a welcome addition to the institute’s funds; and as
-the money for this purpose is supplied by annual
-votes in the Estimates, and not by a rate, it provokes
-none of that opposition which a local rate
-for any object, no matter how desirable, is sure to
-encounter.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The connection between South Kensington and the
-day-schools has grown little by little. The grants
-were originally meant for evening-schools, but there
-appeared no reason why day-schools should not also
-earn it, provided they were willing to send in their
-pupils for the evening examinations, which for some
-years were the only ones held. As early as 1872, the
-department had devised a regular scheme of instruction
-for schools that systematically followed its
-courses. Under certain conditions, schools under
-local management, approved by the department,
-might be registered as ‘Organised Science Schools.’
-A certain class stamp was given them by requiring
-that the pupils should as a whole belong to the
-‘industrial classes,’ the £400 income limit being used
-to define the term. Payments were made for
-success in examination: for Science, £2 for a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_202'>202</span>pass in an elementary subject; £2, 10s. and £5,
-respectively, for a second or first-class in an advanced
-stage; and £4 and £8 for a second and
-first in honours. Extra grants were made for certain
-subjects. No payment was made unless at least
-twenty-eight lessons had been given to the class,
-or unless at least twenty had been attended by the
-individual pupil. Payments on similar principles
-were made for Art. The Organised Science School
-could also claim an attendance grant, which made it
-a more profitable undertaking. In return, a school
-was bound to allot fifteen hours a week to subjects
-taken under the department. As a matter of fact
-most schools gave more. There was money in Science,
-Mathematics and Drawing. Geography, History,
-Languages and Literature were unremunerative.
-They must go to the wall.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Such was the course which, originally designed for
-evening students, was gradually gaining favour in
-day-schools. A child who passed beyond the standards
-must still earn money for his school, and this could
-only be done by means of these South Kensington
-grants. Hence the wide diffusion of the Organised
-Science School, in spite of its too early specialisation,
-and the undue stress laid on grant-earning.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>This arrangement marked the triumph of red-tape
-and apotheosis of the examination system. The
-narrowness of the curriculum made it unsuitable for
-many boys, and almost all girls. As attempts were
-made to adopt it more generally for the sake of the
-grant, condemnation became frequent. The obligatory
-fifteen hours’ Science were complained of; in 1895 new
-regulations reduced them to thirteen, and introduced
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_203'>203</span>a general <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">viva voce</span></i> inspection, which was to take
-cognisance of literary subjects as well. Grants are
-still given only for Science and Art, but the other
-side is not wholly neglected. Ten hours must
-nominally be given to literary subjects, though this
-is held to include manual instruction for boys and
-cookery or needlework for girls. Less stress is laid
-on examination. In the elementary course, payments
-are made wholly on the results of inspection, and in
-the advanced course partly on inspection and partly
-on examination. The arrangements are extremely
-complicated, but they amount to—(1) an attendance
-grant on all students who have attended a minimum
-number of times; (2) a variable grant on each
-student; (3) grants for practical work; (4) payments
-on examination results in the case of advanced
-students of Science and Art; (5) payments for
-manual instruction, cookery, needlework, etc. Such
-are the means of financing a Science School (the
-term now adopted), and schools of this description
-are often found serving the purpose of continuation
-departments to elementary schools. Since 1897
-examinations have also been held in the day-time.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>A higher grade school which systematically
-organises its upper department is divided into upper
-and lower school, the former under the cognisance
-of South Kensington, and the latter of the Education
-Department. A four years’ course in the upper
-school usually leads to matriculation. But although
-they are in a sense two distinct schools, they fit into
-each other as the primary and grammar schools do
-in America. The methods are the same in both, the
-organisation similar, and children pass from one to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_204'>204</span>the other without that breach of continuity which
-makes the transition from the elementary to the
-high school so sudden, and often so unprofitable. It
-is this continuity which conduces so largely to the
-success of the higher grade schools, and accounts
-for the extraordinary rapidity of their growth. As
-many as seven or eight hundred pupils have been
-known to enter one of these schools on the opening
-day; three hundred of these had free places, the rest
-paid small fees.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There are at present in England 169 Schools of
-Science, with an attendance of 20,879. What proportion
-of these are girls it is impossible to ascertain.
-A large proportion of these science departments are
-in higher grade schools. Although a higher grade
-school is not necessarily a science school, while
-science schools are sometimes found as departments
-of grammar schools or other institutions, the two
-are found in such frequent combination that the
-terms Higher Grade and Science School are not
-infrequently used as synonymous.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Of these schools the best known is probably the
-one at Leeds so ably directed by Dr. Forsyth. It is
-established in a huge block of buildings, and has two
-divisions—one for boys and one for girls—with a
-central double staircase opening into long corridors,
-separated from class-rooms by glass partitions. Its
-class-rooms are large and airy; it is admirably
-equipped with apparatus, etc., and has a good playground
-for the boys, though the girls are restricted
-to the use of the roof. With its chemical laboratory
-for 120 students, its physical laboratory, large lecture-room,
-workshop, gymnasium, etc., its large staff, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_205'>205</span>1800 pupils, of whom about half are in or over
-Standard VII., it testifies with all the eloquence
-of material fact to the vigorous development of this
-new educational force. The nature of the work done
-in these propitious surroundings is best described in
-the Principal’s own words:—‘On a basis of elementary
-education it is intended to superadd a system of
-higher education which, at a moderate charge, will
-train pupils for industrial, manufacturing, and professional
-pursuits. This system of instruction will
-have its beginnings in the elementary school, but
-will be practically carried out in a three years’ course
-beyond the standards. It will embrace such courses
-as:—</p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>1. The Classical (or Professional), in which Latin,
-Mathematics, Science, and Drawing form the chief
-subjects.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>2. The Modern (or Mercantile), in which French
-or German, Commercial Geography, Mathematics,
-Science, and Drawing will receive most attention.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>3. The Scientific (or Technical), in which Mathematics,
-Science, and Drawing form the leading
-subjects.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c007'>A school of this size can, of course, be broken up
-into a number of separate departments, since these
-numbers would, in any case, necessitate parallel
-classes, and the work of the upper school is greatly
-facilitated by carrying down such subjects as Latin,
-French, and Elementary Science as low as the fifth
-standard. This school takes pupils from the second
-standard. The fee throughout is 9d. a week. It
-contains a very important Organised Science department,
-but this only represents part of the work of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_206'>206</span>the school. The curriculum of the girls differs but
-slightly from that of the boys. They take cookery
-and similar subjects instead of manual instruction,
-and calisthenics instead of gymnastics. At one time
-they were allowed to substitute botany for some of
-the mathematics, apparently with excellent results.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Similar schools, though not quite so large, are in
-existence at Manchester, Cardiff, Gateshead, etc.—in
-fact, almost every large town in England now has, at
-least, one school of this kind. At Leeds boys and
-girls are separated in the standards, but work together
-in the upper school, where the proportion of girls
-is very small. At Cardiff the two schools are distinct
-and under different heads, but the highest (matriculation)
-class is mixed. The plan of putting boys and
-girls together under the headmaster in the upper
-school appears to be gaining ground. This seems a
-mistake, since in schools of this kind the needs of
-boys and girls are of necessity very different. As far
-as boys are concerned, the continuation school of the
-working classes is bound, in fulfilment of its twofold
-function, ‘to carry on education beyond the elementary
-stage without breach of continuity, and to fit children
-for their future occupation’; to lay the chief stress
-on science, mechanical drawing, and similar subjects,
-which may help the future artisan to take a higher
-place in his trade. For girls the position is different.
-In fact, science schools were never meant for them,
-but they gradually gained admittance for want of a
-corresponding school of their own. Some persons
-think it a good course for intending teachers; for the
-general run of girls it cannot be considered suitable.
-The most crying need for them just now seems complete
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_207'>207</span>separation from the boys’ department, and some
-other scheme than that of science examinations for
-purposes of financing. A girls’ continuation school
-can hardly be a place for specialising. With due
-allowance for all possible outlets for feminine energy,
-it still remains a fact that the great mass of women
-are likely to lead a more or less domestic life, and the
-special training for what has been called the trade of
-‘home-making’ does not necessitate a four years’
-course of arduous study. A girl’s future, too, is harder
-to anticipate. She may marry and keep house, or
-she may work for her living, or she may do both,
-either successively or simultaneously. What she
-needs is good all-round training; if along with this
-she can get some good practical and theoretical
-instruction in domestic economy so much the better.
-But cooking and washing must not absorb as much
-time as boys give to chemistry and physics, else we
-run the risk of disgusting our girls for ever with
-household work. It is absurd to confound a domestic
-art with a theoretical and practical science, for it can
-only to a very limited degree replace mental training.
-This a girl can get from a variety of studies. The
-more general her curriculum, the better will she be
-prepared for the very miscellaneous demands of her
-after life. A certain number will doubtless pass
-through the intermediate school to the university
-college, but this may be done without excessive
-specialisation, and the number who remain long
-enough to make use of such opportunities is likely to
-be much smaller in the case of girls than boys. If a
-fair proportion stay for two years after the seventh
-standard, we should be well satisfied. If the parents
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_208'>208</span>have made sacrifices in order to keep them at school
-till fifteen, it is time for the majority at any rate to
-be apprenticed for their future work, or make a place
-for themselves in their own homes. A girl’s preparation
-for life is not entirely to be sought at school;
-matriculation is not an end in itself, and a girl who
-has not sufficient ability to win a scholarship to a
-secondary school, or a special aptitude for teaching,
-will do better to turn her attention to more lucrative
-fields of manual or commercial work. The school
-that, failing to recognise this, endeavours to drive all
-its pupils through the same examination mill is
-neglecting part of its duty, and taking too narrow a
-view of education. A two years’ course is what the
-majority of girls need to fill the interval between the
-seventh standard and the age of apprenticeship. If
-we could give this to all, and something more to the
-few, the State would not be neglecting its daughters.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Since under present circumstances these schools
-cannot be worked without some help from South
-Kensington, various experiments are being tried in
-organisation, to enable a school to earn some grant
-and yet pay more regard to the needs of girls than
-is usually done in higher grade schools. Some adopt
-the plan of Science Classes instead of Science Schools,
-registering for examination purposes the classes in
-science, drawing, etc., without offering up the thirteen
-obligatory hours on the altar of money earning.
-Unfortunately this plan is less advantageous from
-the pecuniary standpoint, and many a schoolmistress
-will declare with a sigh that there is nothing for it
-but to resort to the Science School. It is not so good
-for the girls, but it pays better.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_209'>209</span>Some day, before too long, a Secondary Education
-Act may enable us to change all that. Meantime
-we must give to South Kensington the honour of
-stepping in when education was languishing for want
-of funds, and helping us to build the upper story for
-our board school boys and girls. This department,
-like the county councils which administer the
-Technical Instruction Acts, has no power to subsidise
-subjects outside its own lawful purlieus, nor can it,
-while we lack a recognised educational authority,
-award its money grants by other means than inspection
-and examination. Thus the intermediate school
-is being forced through the mill of ‘payment by
-results,’ from which the elementary school has at
-last escaped. Perhaps this was a necessary stage
-for both to pass through; and though some victims
-fell by the way and there was some injustice done,
-yet it served to establish the general standard of
-efficiency which has made the institution of more
-liberal methods in board schools possible. Similarly
-the stern South Kensington Department may help to
-establish a better system of science teaching through
-its careful inspection and insistence on practical
-work, and it may certainly claim to have ‘succeeded
-in doing what no other system could have done,
-carrying science instruction all over the country
-without ever raising any sectarian difficulty of any
-kind.’<a id='r18' /><a href='#f18' class='c011'><sup>[18]</sup></a> The county councils and the Science and
-Art Department have become our most important
-educational authorities, for the very simple
-reason that they alone have money at their disposal.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_210'>210</span>Both are limited in their operations in a manner
-that forces them to be unjust to some most important
-branches of study. Legislation can and must alter
-this in the immediate future. Meantime the result
-is to emphasise a class distinction between literary
-and scientific schools. In making science the distinctive
-mark of the lower-class school, the Department
-has brought about the somewhat anomalous
-result of degrading in the public estimation those
-very studies which it designed to elevate. An attempt
-is now being made to improve the prestige of the
-science school by raising the income limit to £500,
-in accordance with the new income-tax regulations,
-and including among schools acknowledged by the
-Department those ‘managed by a public company in
-the articles of association of which provision is made
-that no dividend shall be paid exceeding five per cent.’
-Under this heading come the greater part of our
-best girls’ schools, and this regulation would place it
-in the power of the governors of these to turn a part
-of their school into a Science School, or to register
-separate classes with a view to examination and
-grant-earning. It would be a convenient way of
-adding to their income, but whether it is desirable
-to complicate the harmonious working of a high
-school by a plan of dual control and a very exacting
-system of outside inspection and examination seems
-very doubtful. Should it ever be largely adopted
-the chief gainers would probably be the private
-schools, which would alone be left free to take a wide
-view of the present and future needs of their pupils.
-There would be a curious irony in such an outcome
-of all the efforts to improve girls’ education by making
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_211'>211</span>it a public concern; but as long as there is no
-compulsion beyond the elementary stage, we may
-always reckon on a healthy reaction and a revolt
-against excessive red-tape. Britons never will be
-slaves, not even to a Department which helps them
-to educate their children more cheaply.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>While the higher grade school is designed to give
-more advanced instruction to those children from the
-elementary schools who can afford to postpone their
-working life till fifteen or later, it has also become
-necessary to do something for those whose occupations
-will not allow of continued day-time instruction.
-The Evening Continuation schools are intended to
-supply this want. The original night-school of olden
-time was one where the unlettered rustic or mechanic
-came to spell out his primer and laboriously manufacture
-his pot-hooks. Though election statistics
-show that the absolutely illiterate voter is gradually
-vanishing from the scenes, his complete extinction
-cannot be far off, and in catering for after-instruction
-the amount of schooling represented by three standards
-may as a rule be assumed. But in early days
-the school boards had to cater for a very ignorant
-class of evening pupils, and the work of the continuation
-schools was to a great extent parallel with that
-of the day-schools. For many years the codes
-insisted that pupils in night-schools earning grants
-should undergo examinations in the three elementary
-subjects—reading, writing, arithmetic. As the numbers
-who passed through the day-schools increased
-there was a corresponding diminution in evening
-attendances, and it became clear that the proper use
-of the evening-school was as a place of more advanced
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_212'>212</span>instruction. Accordingly in the 1890 Code the clause,
-that elementary education should be the principal
-part of the education there given, was omitted. In
-1893 Evening Continuation schools received fresh
-stimulus and importance from an entirely new Code
-dealing with them separately. Its declared aim was
-to give ‘freedom to managers in the organisation of
-their schools’ by offering a wide choice of subjects
-with suggested syllabuses in some subjects. The
-aims of these schools were now declared to be
-twofold:—(1) to supply defects in early elementary
-instruction; (2) to prolong the general education of
-the scholar, and combine with it some form of
-interesting employment.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The effect of this new Code was remarkable. The
-total number of scholars on evening-school registers
-increased from 115,000 in 1892–1893 to 266,000 in
-1893–1894. No less important was the change in
-the character of the work. To a great extent it has
-become secondary, although primary instruction is
-still necessary for many pupils, who are removed
-early from the day-school and have spent the interval
-in purely mechanical occupations.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Evening-schools have to contend against several
-obstacles. Chief among them is the diminished
-fitness for receiving instruction after the fatigues of
-the day’s work. This seems to vary with different
-persons, and to be largely a matter of temperament,
-sometimes of habit. The majority of persons certainly
-work better in the day-time. Another difficulty
-is the irregular attendance due to the absence of
-compulsion and the lack of special inducements.
-Nothing but the intrinsic attractiveness of the class
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_213'>213</span>will induce most pupils to study any other subject
-than those practical ones, like shorthand, mathematics,
-etc., which may help them to earn a better living.
-The framers of the Code, recognising this, suggested
-the introduction of popular elements in the shape of
-‘lantern illustrations, music, manual work, discussion
-of some book which has been read by the class, field
-naturalist or sketching clubs, gymnastics or other
-employments of a more or less recreative character.’
-‘For many of these purposes grants cannot be given,
-but provided that the managers take care that at
-least one hour at each meeting is devoted to the
-teaching of the subjects mentioned in Article 2 of
-this Code, and that the instruction is systematic and
-thorough, every arrangement for making the school
-attractive should be carefully considered.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The subjects recognised by the Code range from
-the elementary ones, practically the three R’s, over
-languages and sciences, commercial and miscellaneous
-subjects, drawing, domestic economy, cookery, laundry work
-and dairy-work, and needlework. Indeed, it
-would be hard to find a subject not included, always
-excepting literature, that step-daughter of English
-schools. Even this is now being taught under the
-London Board.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The scientific and technical subjects bring the
-schools into competition with technical institutes,
-with the result that in some towns there is an undue
-rivalry between the various educational agencies.
-To obviate this, the Science and Art Department has
-drawn up a new regulation, recognising an organisation
-for the promotion of secondary education in any
-county or county borough in England as the local
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_214'>214</span>authority for administering the Science and Art
-grants in its own district. As many towns other
-than county boroughs have classes working for the
-grants of the Department, this arrangement is only
-partially helpful, and there is still much undue
-rivalry. Where this prevails it usually falls to the
-lot of the School Board to attract the younger and
-more casual students, a class that is not altogether
-welcome at the more serious Institute.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Hitherto the work of the evening-school has been
-of necessity more or less desultory; and of the two
-agencies for prolonging the education of our working-class
-children, the higher grade school seems as yet
-to answer best. That the other plan has possibilities
-is proved by the example of Germany and the success
-of our own Polytechnic classes. A definite place for
-the evening-school may yet be found in our system.
-Meantime the school boards hold out the opportunities
-and invite, though they cannot compel, the
-multitude to come in. The improvement in the
-day-school will give a fresh impetus to the evening-school. This much at least it is safe to prophesy.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_215'>215</span>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XI<br /> <span class='large'>THE INTERMEDIATE SCHOOLS OF WALES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>A land of mountains seems to be a land of ideals.
-Separated by the elementary forces of nature from
-many of the currents of life that flow beyond it,
-thrown on itself, its own resources and its past, it
-cherishes its individuality with a fervour unknown to
-the people of a plain. Even ruthless modernity, with
-its complex train systems and mountain-borings,
-serves but to invade its privacy, not to change its
-character. Patriotism is stronger, national feeling
-more tenacious, the practical side of life has man less
-firmly in its grip. The Welsh people, with their proud
-claim to represent the original inhabitants of the
-island, their long roll of story and legend, their
-‘estranging’ language, incomprehensible a few miles
-across the border, are still a race apart. Neither
-Saxon nor Norman, legislation nor intercourse, has
-ever been able to degrade them into a mere appanage
-of the English nation.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Among the ideals long cherished here in vain by
-all classes, was that of a national system of education.
-It would not be fair to describe the country which
-produced the sweetest and best-trained singers in the
-United Kingdom, and could organise and carry out
-such elaborate musical and artistic competitions as
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_216'>216</span>those of the Eisteddfodd, as wholly uneducated, and
-yet until very recently it was undoubtedly lacking
-in schools and colleges. Like England, it benefited by
-the Education Act of 1870, which brought instruction
-to the children of the wage-earners, but it was the
-class above these, the professional and commercial,
-whose means or whose patriotism forbade their sending
-their sons and daughters to England, that felt
-the deficiency most keenly. Drawn into the stir,
-which in England followed on 1870, Wales began to
-move on her own lines; numerous educational societies
-were started, conferences held, and every effort
-made to fan the feeble spark till it should have
-strength enough to kindle public opinion as well as
-private enthusiasm. The country was too poor to
-supply its own needs by voluntary effort. For that
-very reason it offered a useful field for experiment.
-Vested interests were not numerous; there were a
-few grammar schools for boys; but for girls only three
-endowed schools, and one proprietary, belonging to
-the Girls’ Public Day-School Company. Private
-schools, mostly inefficient, filled some of the gaps, the
-rest remained empty.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The last five years have wrought a transformation.
-Throughout the length and breadth of Wales, whether
-in large towns or small, there may be seen in a conspicuous
-spot, looking down on the place from some
-hill-top hard by, a grey stone building, which a large
-board informs us is the local County School. The
-pride with which the inhabitants point it out recalls
-American enthusiasm; to many it is the chief sight
-of the place. Here is the goal on which their hopes
-have been set for years; these school buildings testify
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_217'>217</span>to attainment. ‘<i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">O fortunati quorum jam mœnia
-surgunt</span></i>,’ we are tempted to exclaim.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>This transformation has been brought about by
-the Welsh Intermediate Education Act of 1889, itself
-the outcome of that same departmental committee
-which recommended the establishment of a Welsh
-university. Its financial contribution, a half-penny
-rate, and a Treasury grant of corresponding amount,
-would in itself have been too meagre to produce
-much result, but when in the following year the Local
-Customs and Excise Act was passed, it contained a
-clause permitting Wales to use its share of the money
-for purposes of Intermediate as well as Technical
-instruction. In this way the public resources, <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">i.e.</span></i> the
-rate, the Treasury grant, and the technical money,
-could be administered in one fund, and for the general
-purpose of education, with no express exclusion of
-literature or culture. The tiresome restrictions, the
-overlapping of authorities, from which we are still
-suffering in England, were never to be introduced
-into Wales; its very poverty proved its salvation;
-there was a <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">tabula rasa</span></i> on which no characters
-had been as yet inscribed. Both on account of its
-own needs, and as an untried field for operation,
-Wales was chosen as suitable ground for an experiment
-in secondary education, at the very moment
-when the institution of a fresh educational authority
-in England came to complicate existing conditions
-yet further.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It is an accusation often brought against English
-education, that we have no system which looks well
-on paper. This cannot be said of Wales. The system
-there is perfectly simple. It applies to the whole
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_218'>218</span>country, and to girls and boys alike. The money is
-raised from three sources:—</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>1. A half-penny rate—the County contribution.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>2. A Treasury grant, equal to the amount produced
-by the rate—the Treasury contribution.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>3. The local share of the money from the Customs
-and Excise Act—the Exchequer contribution.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The educational unit is the county, and the governing
-body consists partly of members of the county
-council, representing the separate school districts,
-partly of members chosen by school boards, university
-colleges, etc. A very few are co-opted. Each school
-also has its own body of managers, chosen in somewhat
-similar fashion from local bodies, while the
-county council appoints one of the members sent up to
-it from each district to be its own representative on that
-particular governing body. The duties of the managers
-are chiefly confined to carrying out the provisions of
-schemes, and promoting healthy local interest in the
-school, for they have little power of initiative, and not
-always even the choice of a headmaster. All matters
-of essential importance, <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">e.g.</span></i> whether the schools shall
-be separate for boys and girls, or mixed, the subjects
-of instruction, the salary of the headmaster, the limits
-within which fees may be charged, and the proportion
-of scholarships to be awarded, are laid down in
-advance in the county scheme, which can only be
-altered by appeal to the Charity Commissioners. The
-action of both county and district bodies is therefore
-confined within very narrow limits, too narrow, in
-fact, considering the experimental stage of the schools,
-and the unwisdom of crystallising initial mistakes
-into permanent form.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_219'>219</span>These schemes were drawn up, subject to the
-approval of the Charity Commissioners, by the Joint
-Education Committees, which received their authority
-directly from the Act. They consisted in each case
-of five persons, three nominees of the county council,
-and two persons ‘well acquainted with the condition
-of Wales and the wants of the people.’ Though the
-interests of girls as well as boys had to be considered,
-few if any women seem to have been on these
-committees, and it is difficult not to connect this
-omission with the injustice with which they have, in
-many cases, been treated. This was hardly intentional,
-but it should have been possible to negative at the
-outset every proposal for making a girls’ school a
-mere subordinate department of the boys.’ These
-committees were only temporary, to exist until the
-schemes could be floated, and the control handed
-over to the county governing bodies. But they led
-to the formation of a permanent board, not contemplated
-by the Act. Frequent meetings between
-groups of these committees, with a view to promoting
-uniformity of action, led to a series of general conferences
-at Shrewsbury, which, though not in Wales,
-is the most conveniently accessible point from north
-and south. At a series of meetings held here, it was
-decided to establish a central body, and call upon the
-Treasury to acknowledge it as the central authority
-for inspection and examination, and for the payment
-of the Government grant to the various counties.
-After the usual negotiations and delays, a scheme
-establishing the Board was approved by the Charity
-Commissioners, and became law in 1895. In this
-informal manner originated what has practically
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_220'>220</span>become the secondary education authority for
-Wales.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The Board consists of eighty members, representative
-of various local and educational bodies: the
-Principals of the three Welsh colleges, twenty-one
-representatives of county councils, twenty-six of
-county governing bodies, five of headmasters and
-mistresses of intermediate schools, five of certificated
-teachers in public elementary schools, three of councils
-of university colleges, three of the senates, two of
-Jesus College, Oxford, six of the court of the University
-of Wales, and six co-optative members, three of
-whom must be women. The bulk of the work
-devolves on the executive committee of fifteen.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The establishment of this Central Board marks the
-completion of the Welsh secondary system. It
-furnishes a link between all the counties and schools,
-and exercises over these that general supervision
-which, in the initial stages, had devolved on the
-Charity Commissioners. Since the subjects to be
-taught had been prescribed by the Act generally, and
-by the schemes specially, the duties of the Central
-Board were not so much to lay down a scheme of
-studies, as to see that the course already prescribed
-was duly followed, that each school was in a state of
-general and educational efficiency, and that the provisions
-of the schemes were observed. For these
-purposes they arranged a system of inspection and
-examination. The Act had defined intermediate
-education as ‘a course of education which does not
-consist chiefly of elementary instruction in reading,
-writing, and arithmetic, but which includes instruction
-in Latin, Greek, the Welsh and English language
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_221'>221</span>and literature, modern languages, mathematics,
-natural and applied science, or in some of such
-studies, and generally in the higher branches of
-knowledge,’ and the schemes fixed more precisely
-which of these were to be in each case compulsory.
-The Glamorgan scheme, which is in many respects
-typical, prescribes geography, history, English grammar,
-composition, and literature, drawing, mathematics,
-Latin, at least one modern language, natural
-science, vocal music, drill or other physical exercise,
-and such other scientific or technical subjects, including
-shorthand, as the school managers may determine.
-Scripture is not obligatory, but if included, it must
-be taught by a member of the staff. Some manual
-instruction must also be offered the boys, and a little
-cookery to the girls, but, as is inevitable, where the
-programme is already overloaded, this side of the
-work takes a very subordinate place. In all schools
-Welsh must be taught as an optional subject; in a
-stated few Greek may be introduced. But even
-without these additions, the compulsory curriculum
-is a very heavy one, when it is borne in mind that a
-large proportion of pupils come from the elementary
-schools, where the girls, at any rate, have been
-hitherto confined to reading, writing, arithmetic,
-and needlework, with possibly a little French
-and domestic economy. Even English history and
-geography are unfamiliar ground.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The aim of the Welsh Intermediate, as of the
-English High Schools, is to give a liberal education
-cheaply in day-schools; but there is one essential
-difference between them. While the high school is
-an organised whole, leading the pupils by gentle
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_222'>222</span>gradations from the primary department to the lower
-school, and thence on to the upper, the intermediate
-school receives no pupils below the age of ten. Since
-the majority are between twelve and sixteen, they
-break up naturally into two classes, according as they
-have received their preliminary training at a public
-elementary school or elsewhere. This division is by
-no means so sharply defined in Wales as in England.
-Wales is both poor and democratic, and inclines to
-the doctrine, familiar in the United States, that no
-stigma should attach to attendance at a school supported
-out of the rates, since the parents do in fact
-contribute towards the expenses, though indirectly.
-Hence we find a mixture of class in both elementary
-and intermediate schools, which in England would
-be neither possible nor desirable. The omission of
-the primary department in the new schools is in
-fact deliberate. There is already one kind of school
-assisted out of public funds and accessible to all, and
-it is therefore not thought necessary to subsidise
-primary instruction in another set of institutions.
-The intermediate school is so constituted as to fit
-straight on to the elementary, and in each school a
-certain proportion of scholarships must fall to elementary
-pupils. In accordance with the opinion of
-many authorities that the transplanting from an
-elementary to a secondary school, always a difficult
-process, should not take place too late, the admission
-age and requirements are put low, and the intermediate
-school is supposed to branch off from the
-elementary at about the fifth standard. In Wales,
-where poverty and dearth of educational opportunities
-have induced many persons of middle rank to make
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_223'>223</span>use of the free public schools, the difference between
-the two sets of pupils is by no means so strongly
-marked as it would be in England, but even here
-schools have two different characters, according as
-one or the other of these elements predominates. In
-a district where the population is largely industrial,
-the lowest possible tuition fee is chosen, and the
-largest possible amount of scholarships given to
-elementary pupils. Thus one scheme requires that
-not less than ten per cent. and not more than thirty
-per cent. of the pupils in each school, shall hold
-scholarships, and at least half of the number awarded
-shall go to pupils from public elementary schools,
-but there is nothing to prevent the whole number
-from being so given. In fact, several schools have
-more scholarships than candidates for them. According,
-therefore, to the interpretation of the clause
-adopted, the elementary scholars in a school of a
-hundred may vary from five—the minimum, to thirty—the
-maximum. In the latter class of school, the
-fees are usually low enough to attract paying pupils
-from the elementary schools; hence these furnish a
-majority of the pupils, and the school becomes a continuation,
-often a finishing-school for elementary
-pupils, many of whom stay one year, sometimes only
-a term or two, to get what prestige they can from
-attendance at a school of a higher grade than the
-one to which they have been accustomed. Those that
-remain for two years or longer usually do well, if their
-health is strong enough to bear the severe strain.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The other classification into separate and mixed
-schools is apt to coincide with this distinction. Of
-the eighty-four schools now in existence, there are
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_224'>224</span>twenty for boys and twenty for girls, while the remaining
-forty-four are mixed. This wholesale
-adoption of a principle popular in the United States,
-but regarded hitherto askance by England, in common
-with other European countries, is due, as in
-Scotland, to the force of necessity. It is not as a
-counsel of perfection, but as a means of economy,
-that the plan has been adopted in Wales. In a
-country intersected by mountains, and inadequately
-supplied with means of locomotion, where distances
-should, as in Switzerland, be counted by hours and
-not by miles, access to places that look near enough
-on the map is often exceedingly difficult; and it is
-useless to plant a large school-building in a central
-district in the hope of drawing in pupils from a
-radius of a few miles. The alternative lay between
-frequent small day-schools and a liberal sprinkling of
-boarding-schools. The former carried the day, on
-the ground that they were more equitable to ratepayers,
-and more democratic. In almost every
-county, the committee adopted the more expensive
-and troublesome plan of establishing and maintaining
-a large number of small schools, and most of the
-difficulties with which Welsh intermediate education
-has to contend are due to that decision. In some
-places there are schools of forty, or even less, difficult
-to finance and to organise. These might work for a
-year or two, but as pupils stayed on and began to
-range from the Fifth Standard scholar at one end to
-the Matriculation student at the other, with all the
-varying intermediate grades, failure became inevitable.
-One remedy in the case of those small schools
-which were not rich enough to provide a liberal staff
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_225'>225</span>for small classes, was to arrange from the first to mix
-the boys and girls, thus facilitating the grading by
-increasing the numbers in each class. In this way
-better results could be obtained with small means, at
-any rate as far as class lists and examination statistics
-were concerned.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Owing to the difficulties of grading, this system
-is being gradually introduced in many places where
-it was not originally contemplated; but the typical
-Welsh school, according to the first plan, was the
-dual. This was to consist of two distinct schools, one
-for boys and one for girls, built side by side, in such
-a way that they might have assembly hall, gymnasium,
-laboratory, etc., in common, and by the economy thus
-effected in site, buildings, apparatus, etc., it was hoped
-that the efficiency of small schools would be maintained.
-Unfortunately, the advocates of this system
-went a step further, and arranged to complete their
-economies by appointing a single head for both
-schools, to take the superintendence of both boys and
-girls. Obviously this head must be a man. Though
-some schemes contain the words ‘headmaster or
-head-mistress,’ it is at once explained to feminine
-applicants that the words are a mere matter of form.
-Indeed, it would be far better to omit them. The
-most ardent advocates of women’s equality would
-hardly propose to give a mistress full authority over
-boys of twelve to seventeen. However excellent
-feminine influence may be in a boys’ school, no one
-wants to see it supreme there. Though paramount
-masculine influence in a girls’ school is anything but
-desirable, it seemed the lesser of two evils; and both
-custom and convenience pointed to the selection of a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_226'>226</span>master. This initial injustice paved the way for
-many others. Though most schools appoint a senior
-mistress, who is supposed to have a general control
-over the girls, it is out of the managers’ power, when
-once they have made the headmaster supreme, to
-make her position one of any authority. Like all the
-rest, she is appointed by the headmaster; she has
-no place in the scheme, nor status in the school,
-except what may be given her by courtesy. She has
-no voice in choosing her assistants, nor in making the
-time-table; her position is often inferior to that of a
-second mistress in an English high school. This
-kind of dual school was a new experiment, and it
-cannot be pronounced a successful one. Where the
-two departments were kept distinct, except for an
-occasional interchange of teachers, the real difficulties
-of classification were not obviated; and one set of
-managers after another took the final step, availing
-themselves of the permission accorded in most
-schemes, to ‘make arrangements for boys and girls
-being taught together in all or any of the classes.’
-The forms are then mixed throughout, and assigned
-in turn to men and women teachers. Here the senior
-mistress loses even her semblance of authority, and
-the school is under the supreme and undisturbed
-sway of the headmaster. What number of schools
-have already taken this final step is nowhere definitely
-stated, but, as far as can be ascertained, it appears to
-be a majority. It is in fact the logical outcome of
-the dual plan, and since the tendency of the change
-is to diminish the proportion of girls, we may look
-upon these schools as organised for boys, but admitting
-girls as well.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_227'>227</span>The whole question of co-education is so exceedingly
-difficult that it is unfortunate that Welsh
-educationalists should have been compelled to add
-it to the number of complex problems with which
-they had already to deal. The small schools have
-necessitated this among other problems. Its warmest
-advocates do not deny that it makes discipline more
-difficult: constant supervision becomes necessary;
-boys and girls have to be kept apart out of class,
-and an attempt, usually doomed to failure, is made
-in some schools to control the walk home. The freer
-intercourse, the element of trust, and the bright out-of-school
-life, which in England have come to be
-considered as important a part of a secondary school
-as the Mathematics or Latin taught there, have little
-chance of development in the mixed school. That
-valuable moral impetus given by the direct and
-constant intercourse between the master and boys,
-mistress and girls, is missing. Thus they lose what
-is often the best effect of school life upon our boys
-and girls: the schools become places of mere instruction,
-not education; they are but elementary
-schools with advanced subjects in the curriculum;
-rivals, and not always successful ones, of the higher
-grade. Of course this is not solely due to the
-co-education scheme, but it has tended further to
-emphasise the social difference between the two
-classes of schools, and also to put women at a disadvantage
-in Welsh education, which could hardly
-have been contemplated by the original promoters.
-Yet now that this arrangement has been fixed by
-scheme and made fast by yards of red-tape, it must
-remain as it is, until some energetic band of reformers
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_228'>228</span>shall arise determined to end it. But that cannot
-be as yet.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The second class, the distinct schools for boys
-and girls, resemble our English high schools; in fact
-Swansea, one of the most successful, was actually
-founded by the Girls’ Public Day-School Company,
-and taken over by the Intermediate Board. The
-money supplied by the county grant makes up for
-the diminution of the fees, and the work proceeds
-with little change. Cardiff is also organised on the
-lines of a high school, with the chief intellectual
-work in the morning, considerable attention to games
-and physical training, and a liberal allowance of
-teachers. In these separate schools the fees range
-from about £5 to £9, being slightly lower than those
-of the corresponding schools in England. The allowance
-of mistresses to pupils is adequate, the elementary
-scholars are a small proportion, not enough to
-set the whole tone of the school. In the mixed or
-dual school the fees are usually low, sometimes even
-as little as £2 per annum, scholarships are more
-numerous, and the sprinkling of scholars from other
-than elementary schools is very small. Both kinds
-of schools doubtless have their use, though their aims
-are very different.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>With all these varieties of organisation and character,
-the schools have a unifying influence in the
-general control of the Central Board, since all are
-subject to its examination and inspection. The
-latter is undertaken by the Chief Inspector, who
-visits each school in the course of the year, and
-reports specially on the following heads—</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_229'>229</span>1. Character, suitability, and capacity of school
-premises.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>2. School furniture and apparatus.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>3. Facilities for recreation and physical training.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>4. The relation between the administration of
-schools and the schemes under which they are
-established.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>5. The organisation of classes.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>6. The school discipline.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>7. Courses of instruction.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>If a school prove deficient in any of these respects,
-the managers receive a warning from the Board that
-future negligence will entail a diminution of the
-grant. This is a useful check, and a form of payment
-by result which can only do good, for it
-counteracts that uneconomical form of economy,
-which declines to spend on proper building and
-apparatus and salaries. An element of control which
-requires more careful exercise is the threat of a
-diminished grant, should a school fail to do well
-in the annual examination. This, which is conducted
-by the Central Board, was in the first place inspectional,
-and was meant to give the schools the necessary
-outside impulse. In order to carry out the principle
-of letting the examination follow the teaching instead
-of the teaching the examination, each school was
-invited to send up its own syllabus of work done,
-but this led to so much needless expense, since
-there were as many as fifty-three Latin papers set
-in one year, that some kind of uniformity became
-indispensable. The present regulations prescribe that
-only pupils who have been a full year in a school
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_230'>230</span>shall be presented for the written examination, and in
-at least five subjects. Forms which do not take
-papers are examined orally in one or other of the
-subjects studied during the school year. The scheme
-bears some resemblance to the school examinations
-of the Joint Board, but a new feature is the test
-in languages of ‘ability to read fluently, intelligently,
-and correctly, passages chosen from prepared and
-unprepared texts.’ The papers set are of varying
-grades of difficulty, and the schools choose which
-they will take. Thus in Latin there were seven
-papers set in 1898, of which the fourth is supposed
-to be equivalent to the standard of the Welsh Matriculation.
-Not many pupils are likely to go beyond
-this, since the schools are distinctly preparatory to
-the university colleges, which a matriculated pupil
-can enter. If this standard should in a few years
-be reached by a fair proportion of pupils in each
-school, the intermediate system can claim to be
-successful, for it will be accomplishing its avowed
-purpose, to carry its pupils from the Fifth Standard
-to the Constituent College of the University of Wales.
-For pupils who aim at the Welsh Matriculation these
-annual tests should be sufficient, but experience shows
-that there is a tendency to aim at results earlier in
-the school career; and the chaos of external examinations,
-from which many English schools are not yet
-completely emancipated, should be a warning to
-Wales to be wise in time, and from the beginning
-concentrate efforts on the same lines. This seems
-to be best effected by following the example of the
-Joint Board, and combining school examinations with
-the awarding of certificates. A scheme on these
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_231'>231</span>lines is now in course of preparation, and will probably
-come into operation in 1899. The subjects of
-the general examination are to be arranged in groups:
-<em>A.</em> Scripture and English; <em>B.</em> Mathematics; <em>C.</em> Languages;
-<em>D.</em> Science; <em>E.</em> Practical subjects. Within
-certain limits a choice is allowed from these five
-groups. Junior and senior certificates are to be
-awarded on papers of different grades of difficulty.
-The senior standard is to be carefully approximated
-to that of Welsh Matriculation, in the hope that
-the University may be willing to accept it as an
-equivalent. There should not be much difficulty
-about this, since the University Court is represented
-on the Central Board, and the Board in its turn
-on the Court, so that very close and sympathetic
-relations are maintained between the two bodies
-that have charge of the educational interests of the
-country. The next step would be to win acknowledgment
-for it as a substitute for the Medical and
-other preliminaries, and a further stage would be
-an Honours grade that might replace the higher
-certificate of the Joint Board as an admission
-examination to English colleges, and a substitute
-for the Previous and Responsions. Even this might
-in time be attained, and the Welsh Board would
-then have fulfilled its mission of making one school
-stage lead harmoniously and naturally to the next.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Such is the scheme as it presents itself to the
-minds of the promoters, who look far away beyond
-the present troubles of small schools, irregular attendance,
-and inadequate funds, and see in the distant
-future the glorious fabric of their dreams: one
-system of schools for both boys and girls, leading them
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_232'>232</span>on step by step till they are ready to enter their
-own colleges, and thence, if more adventurously
-inclined, cross the border and ask the hospitality
-of the ancient English universities. The ladder in
-its widest acceptation is to be set up in Wales, so
-close to the home of every boy and girl that none
-may plead inaccessibility as an excuse for the failure
-to mount. And this system is to be worked by
-popular bodies, touching at one end the local schoolboard,
-at the other the university colleges, so that
-its foundations may be firm and lasting, ‘broad-based
-upon the people’s will.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Such is the ideal; how far is it reflected by the
-reality? Of actual results it is too soon to speak,
-since the oldest school is not yet five years old,
-and the numbers in them are so small that the
-whole eighty-four now in existence, including boys
-and girls, have not together as many pupils as the
-thirty-four schools of the Girls’ Public Day-School
-Company. There were many difficulties to be met.
-The ground was new and unbroken, the meaning
-of secondary education, except in so far as it was
-expressed by a higher grade school, was hardly
-understood by the mass of the people. Some schools
-won a too hasty popularity, owing to the impression
-that they were ‘finishing’ institutions for elementary
-scholars, hence the one-year or one-term pupils of
-whom so much has been heard. This mistaken
-notion will be but slowly dispelled, and it is not
-impossible that in a few years’ time, should the
-Central Board prove successful in its attempts to
-‘level up,’ the number of schools may prove too
-large for the demand. Many boys and girls who
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_233'>233</span>must begin to prepare for their life work at fourteen
-or fifteen would be better off in a higher grade
-school than struggling to find their depth in these
-new waters. The elimination of these would prove
-no serious loss, and it would clear the ground for a
-fairer treatment of those pupils, whether from elementary
-or other schools, who are really able to
-profit by secondary education. The Welsh system
-cannot be considered complete while so many of the
-well-to-do and educated classes hold aloof, helping,
-it is true, with money and sympathy, but sending
-their children to be educated across the border. Who
-shall blame them for not offering up their own boys
-and girls as <i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">corpora vilia</span></i>? Yet, until the schools
-can offer something to such pupils as well, they must
-remain one-sided.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Still, with all its flaws, and they are not a few,
-the system has something to teach England. The
-love of knowledge, noted even in the days of darkness,
-the willingness to make sacrifices, evinced by
-gifts of land and money to new schools, the keen
-interest in their welfare felt by all grades of the
-community, and the absence of that class jealousy
-which tends to check the spread of popular education
-in England—all these we should do well to
-note, and copy if we can. Then we may be prepared
-to thank Wales for teaching us both what
-to do and what to avoid.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_234'>234</span>
- <h2 class='c005'>CHAPTER XII<br /> <span class='large'>1898</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>Such is in brief the story of the last half-century,
-1848 to 1898. Looking back on what is in the main
-a line of progress, there seems now and then a check,
-here and there a retrograde movement under the
-guise of a new discovery. All this is inevitable,
-since we are but human. But taking the period as
-a whole, none can doubt that it marks a very real
-advance; and this end of a century seems a fitting
-time to pause and rest on our oars, while we survey
-the breakers through which we have passed; then
-once more set forth on our onward path, assured that
-there can be nothing worse before us than what is
-already behind.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>It is not only for girls’ education that the revival
-has come. A general awakening has passed over the
-country: men and women, boys and girls, rich and
-poor, the lady of leisure and the hard-working
-mechanic, all have had something brought within
-their reach that formerly belonged only to the few.
-Three years ago these gains were summarised in
-convenient form by the Royal Commission on
-Secondary Education, appointed ‘to consider what
-are the best methods of establishing a well-organised
-system of secondary education in England, taking
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_235'>235</span>into account existing deficiencies, and having regard
-to such local sources of revenue from endowments or
-otherwise as are available, or may be made available,
-for this purpose.’ Even now the country is waiting
-for legislation on the findings of that Commission.
-When we remember that we have really been waiting
-ever since 1867, we do not feel over-sanguine of results;
-but happily events have since then moved in many
-directions, and the Commission, before proceeding to
-recommendations for the future, was able to draw up
-a long list of reforms that had already come about
-and changed the whole face of education in England
-in less than thirty years.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>First in order of time stands the Endowed Schools
-Act, which did so much for boys, and rescued something
-from the spoils for the benefit of girls. Next
-came the Elementary Education Act, which brought
-primary instruction within the reach of every boy
-and girl in the land, and set a new machinery in
-motion destined to change the whole face of the
-country. In 1888 the institution of county councils
-provided that local authority which was to make a
-system of decentralisation in education possible, while
-the Technical Instruction Acts of 1889 and 1891 and
-the Local Customs and Taxation Act of 1890 at once
-brought these new powers into play, and originated
-a fresh set of educational institutions in the Polytechnics
-and other similar colleges. Lastly, the
-Welsh Intermediate schools, established by the Act
-of 1889, were providing an object-lesson in the
-organisation of secondary education.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Besides this public work, the Commission had to
-take cognisance of the enormous changes in the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_236'>236</span>education of girls, due to the wide diffusion of High
-Schools and the admission of women to the Universities.
-‘There has probably been more change in the
-condition of the secondary education of girls than in
-any other department of education,’<a id='r19' /><a href='#f19' class='c011'><sup>[19]</sup></a> say the Commissioners,
-and they also note that ‘the idea that a
-girl, like a boy, may be fitted by education to earn
-a livelihood, or, at any rate, to be a more useful
-member of society, has become more widely diffused.’
-Various other changes came under their cognisance:
-the gradual rise of Higher Grade schools, evolving
-themselves through inherent necessity with no impulse
-and little encouragement from without; the
-many attempts at what has been called Continuative
-education by means of evening classes; the help
-afforded to large numbers by University Extension; the
-improved status of the teachers; the various colleges
-established for their training, and the many educational
-societies which have grown into powerful forces
-during the last twenty years. After taking due note
-of all this, they declare that the time has come to weld
-these various organisms into one consistent whole.
-They anticipate no easy task. ‘The ground of secondary
-education is already almost covered with buildings
-so substantial that the loss to be incurred in clearing
-it for the erection of a new and symmetrical pile
-cannot be contemplated. Yet these existing buildings
-are so ill-arranged, so ill-connected, and so
-inconvenient, that some scheme of reconstruction
-seems unavoidable.’<a id='r20' /><a href='#f20' class='c011'><sup>[20]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'>This touches the key of the situation. The reconstruction
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_237'>237</span>must at any rate begin with adaptation, then
-the gaps may be filled with new and convenient
-edifices. However much such a plan offends our
-notions of order and logic, we do well to remember
-that every one of these structures, jerry-built though
-they may be, has grown up out of some real need;
-and before we propose to fit all their tenants into neat
-little model dwellings, it behoves us to be quite sure
-that such a plan would be as satisfactory in the working
-as it looks on paper. The mere fact that of the
-girls receiving secondary education in England seventy
-per cent., and of the boys thirty-eight per cent., are
-in private schools, often in towns where there are
-grammar and high schools with plenty of empty
-places, should make the advocates of ruthless innovation
-pause and stay their hand. The public must in
-the last resort determine what it wants, and though
-demand sometimes follows supply, the opposite process
-is a constant one. However much theorists may
-inveigh, according to their special prejudices, against
-higher grade or ‘private adventure’ or any other
-kind of school, the fact of their successful existence,
-even in the face of rivals, shows that they do supply
-a want; and the only prudent course is to find them a
-place in our system.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>This has been fully recognised by the Commissioners,
-who wisely suggest proceeding on lines
-similar to those on which elementary education
-was at first organised. The local authority proposed
-in 1867 can now be easily constituted, since
-we have the county councils to supply a nucleus
-to which educational experts can be added, as is
-already done on some technical instruction committees
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_238'>238</span>and in the Welsh county governing bodies.
-The local authority would proceed ‘to inquire how far
-the schools within its area provide secondary instruction
-adequate in quantity and quality to the needs of
-each part of that area.’ In doing this, regard is to be
-had to proprietary and private as well as endowed
-and other public schools, and the report adds the
-following significant comment: ‘We are far from
-desiring to see secondary education pass wholly
-under public control, and into the hands of those
-who are practically public servants, as elementary
-education has done, and we believe that where proprietary
-or private schools are found to be doing
-good work, it would be foolish as well as unfair to
-try to drive them out of the field.’<a id='r21' /><a href='#f21' class='c011'><sup>[21]</sup></a> Where the
-supply of secondary education is deficient in any
-part of the area, the local authority should have
-power to establish new schools.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The functions of these authorities are therefore to
-fall under four heads—</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>1. The securing a due provision of secondary
-instruction.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>2. The remodelling, where necessary, and supervision
-of the working of endowed (other than non-local)
-schools and other educational endowments.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>3. A watchful survey of the field of secondary
-education, with the object of bringing proprietary
-and private schools into the general educational
-system, and of endeavouring to encourage and
-facilitate, so far as this can be done by stimulus, by
-persuasion, and by the offer of privileges and advice,
-any improvements they may be inclined to introduce.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_239'>239</span>4. The administration of such sums, either arising
-from rates levied within the area, or paid over from
-the National Exchequer, as may be at its disposal for
-the promotion of education.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>In this way these local authorities would receive
-large powers of supervision, but comparatively little
-coercive control, since ‘it is not so much by superseding
-as by aiding and focussing voluntary effort
-that real progress may be made.’</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>The general guidance and direction of secondary
-education should be committed to a central authority,
-to include the various departments of Government
-now concerned with it.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Further recommendations are: the consolidation
-of existing sources of revenue into one fund; and
-a generous scheme of scholarships for the poor, in
-preference to a general lowering of school fees.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>These main recommendations, as well as other
-subordinate ones, seem wise and moderate, fair to
-all classes, and consistent with their professed aim,
-‘to draw the outlines of a system which shall combine
-the maximum of simplicity with the minimum
-disturbance of existing arrangements.’ A bill drawn
-up on these lines would probably meet with very
-general acceptation from all classes, except those
-persons, probably few, who are ready to subordinate
-the general good to their own private fads. Unfortunately
-Parliament has hitherto proved unwilling to
-give time for such a bill. The ill-fated Education
-Bill of 1896 dealt with secondary education as a sort
-of accessory to primary; and as, unlike the latter,
-it has not yet become a subject for party divisions
-and acrimonious controversy, it is not at present
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_240'>240</span>sufficiently interesting to the general run of politicians
-to call forth any special exertions on their part. The
-private bill brought in last session by Colonel Lockwood
-expressed the wishes of a large section of the
-teaching profession. It proposed to form one central
-educational authority under the Committee of the
-Privy Council on Education, by consolidating powers
-relating to secondary education possessed by the
-Charity Commissioners, the Science and Art Department,
-and the present Education Department, and
-to establish local secondary education authorities,
-to consist partly of members of the county council
-and partly of other persons with special educational
-experience. It also proposes registers of efficient
-schools and of persons qualified to teach in them.
-The ministerial bill introduced by the Duke of
-Devonshire into the House of Lords at the fag-end
-of the session merely proposed to bring together in
-one office the two departments of Science and Art
-and Education, under the control of one permanent
-secretary, and to create a Board of Education on the
-model of the Board of Trade. To this new department
-the supervision of endowed schools, under
-schemes framed by the Charity Commissioners, was
-to be transferred. The thorny questions of constitution
-of local authorities, raising of rates, etc., were
-left untouched. It was not proposed to carry the
-measure, merely to show the country before the
-vacation the lines on which the Ministry were inclined
-to proceed. Thorny as are many of the points
-under discussion, such as central and local authority,
-amalgamation of existing departments, etc., they are
-as nothing to the real difficulties that must follow
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_241'>241</span>when these matters of administrative machinery are
-settled. The inspection and grading of schools, the
-due consideration that must be shown to secondary
-education proper and to that part commonly known
-as technical, the proper respect for existing schools
-that are good and the ruthless elimination of
-such as are bad—in these lies the true crux of the
-situation, and under all circumstances some part
-of this work will probably fall to the local authorities.
-An enormous amount of responsibility must
-devolve on those who first take up the arduous
-task.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>One burning question, which ought to be settled
-for the whole country alike, is the relation between
-the grammar and high schools on the one hand, and the
-elementary schools on the other. Are we to have
-one upper department for both, or two? Some time
-ago the consensus of opinion seemed to be in favour
-of one; that was on the assumption that the proportion
-of children passing beyond the standards
-would be a small one. Some such idea seems to
-have been in the mind of the Duke of Devonshire
-when he spoke of ‘a sound system of secondary
-schools which will be open alike to the most
-promising children of the elementary schools and
-to the middle classes generally.’ But this view rests
-on the assumption that the primary departments of
-both sets of schools are very similar in their curriculum
-and methods. This is very far from being the case.
-‘The elementary schools are not, under the present
-conditions in England, the common basis of secondary
-education, nor, though an increasing number of pupils
-proceed from them to secondary schools, are the public
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_242'>242</span>elementary schools the sole, nor, indeed, the chief
-channels through which pupils proceed in this country
-to day or boarding-schools of the secondary grades.’<a id='r22' /><a href='#f22' class='c011'><sup>[22]</sup></a>
-The changes that would be necessary in the elementary
-schools would be so numerous and far-reaching, and
-the expense so enormous before they would be able
-to attract the great mass of the middle classes, that
-no one could seriously propose to abolish the primary
-departments in secondary schools, as long as parents
-are able and willing to pay the school fees. They
-are a necessity, and would have to be supplied by
-private adventure, as is done at Cardiff and other
-large Welsh towns, if a public system declined to
-acknowledge them. In the interest of what we
-might call the ‘secondary party,’ the primary department
-of the secondary school must be maintained.
-On the other hand, the teachers in Government schools
-seem equally unanimous in the view that their own
-special continuation schools are better suited to the
-mass of elementary pupils than the grammar or
-high school. Neither party seems anxious for the
-fusion, and so long as a liberal scheme of scholarships
-is maintained, it is possible to do full justice to those
-elementary scholars who can look forward to a school
-life sufficiently long to enable them to reach the
-highest classes of their new school. To allow pupils
-to enter upon an extensive and liberal curriculum,
-who are likely to be removed before its real meaning
-and unity has dawned upon them, is a thing we should
-never even contemplate, were our notions of curricula
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_243'>243</span>and grades of schools a little less hazy than they are
-at present in England. The board school child,
-who is sent at the age of thirteen by her proud
-parents to have a year’s finishing at a high school,
-is typical of the present confusion. There is really
-no more urgent problem before us than a scientific
-differentiation of schools.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Still, whatever course legislation may take on this
-and other problems, whether funds are raised by
-fresh rate or merely by adding together existing
-sources of income, no matter what are the constitution
-and functions of the local authority, this,
-at least, we may rely on—the interests of girls will
-not be forgotten. For that we have to thank that
-little band of men and women who have laboured
-during this last half century in the face of prejudice,
-opposition, and indifference to remove the neglect
-with which England treated one half of her children.
-This much, at least, is established: no future
-educational legislation will omit to provide for
-women and girls. For this we have a pledge in
-the appointment of women on this last Commission,
-in their mention in every scheme for a new educational
-institution that now passes through Parliament,
-and their recognition on every new elective body
-constituted.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>We have gained, gained immensely. Still, we
-cannot blind our eyes to some evils the good has
-brought with it. The very acknowledgment of the
-right of girls to as good an education as their brothers
-has in some cases, happily rare, led, under the pretence
-of equality, to a subordination of the girls’ interests.
-Thus, some of the recent attempts to establish joint
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_244'>244</span>schools for both sexes, whether on the grounds of
-economy or the fanciful plea of imitating the family
-life in a large school of over a hundred children, does
-indirectly involve a fresh injustice. What the reformers
-asked for was a share in educational funds
-for girls and a better education for the teachers, that
-they might be qualified to undertake the very highest
-teaching in girls’ schools. The attempts recently
-made in some schools aided by public money to
-economise by teaching boys and girls together,
-abolishing the head-mistress and putting a headmaster
-over boys and girls alike, while arranging
-the curriculum and time-table to meet the needs
-of the boys and letting the girls do the best they
-can with it, is only a revival, under a new guise,
-of the old idea, that girls are not entitled to the same
-consideration as boys. Our modern reformers will
-not find their occupation gone while they have this
-old prejudice to combat. It is unjust to the teachers
-as well as to the taught. Hitherto it has been almost
-universally acknowledged that teaching was an occupation
-for which women were by nature specially
-suited. Is it really proposed to oust them from all
-but the lowest ranks, and reserve the prizes, the
-chief inducement to work, for men only? This is
-what must happen, should there be any wide spread
-of the mixed schools. With the disappearance of
-the head-mistress we should lose much of that moral
-training which has hitherto been regarded in England
-as no less important than the intellectual and
-physical. We have hitherto prided ourselves on
-being in advance of Germany in employing women
-to teach the highest classes in our girls’ schools.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_245'>245</span>Germany is now beginning to follow suit, and by
-means of special courses at some of the universities
-and at the Victoria-Lyceum, Berlin, some of the best
-mistresses are being trained to take these posts.
-Surely we in England do not intend, without a struggle,
-to take the retrograde path!</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>There seems to be another danger imminent, due,
-perhaps, to the great speed with which events have
-moved. At any rate, we have landed ourselves in a
-dilemma. The educational movement has been
-parallel with many social changes. The fluctuations
-of business, the lowering of interest, and other complex
-causes which make saving difficult to men engaged
-in business or professions, have added greatly to the
-number of women who must now earn their living.
-Thirty years ago it was the custom to wait till the
-father’s death closed the parental home, when the
-daughters, untrained to work, unaccustomed to privation,
-were sent out into the world, to seek their bread
-as best they could. So general was this practice even
-among the more enlightened, that the committee who
-helped to found Queen’s College expressed their
-belief and hope that ‘the ranks of that profession
-(<i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">i.e.</span></i> of a governess) will still be supplied from those
-whose minds and tempers have been disciplined in
-the school of adversity, and who are thus best able
-to form the minds and tempers of others.’ We are
-no longer such stern believers in adversity; we now
-realise that training and earning cannot begin simultaneously,
-and, further, we have learnt that neither
-for Adam nor for Eve should work be accounted a
-curse. All this has led to a great revolution in
-thought. Work has been made honourable in the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_246'>246</span>eyes of girls. Already at school they are encouraged
-to choose a profession and to take the steps that lead
-to it much as their brothers do. If they marry, the
-years of regular disciplined work prove a helpful
-training for their new duties; if they remain single,
-they keep a purpose and an aim in life. This existence
-of regular duty, of appointed periods of work
-and holiday, is the easier life; and now that remunerative
-employment has come to be regarded as
-a privilege and not a stigma, the ranks of women
-workers are fast being overfilled. We have heard
-much talk of late about <em>new</em> careers for women;
-but the very abundance of the talk serves to betray
-the poverty of the land. Of new careers there are
-few. In some cases it only means that the work
-is transferred from a man to a woman at a lower
-wage. This is no economic gain to either sex. The
-field should be open to both alike, but for equal
-payment. There are also a considerable number
-of occupations which, if not performed by women,
-would remain undone, or be done less well. Such
-are nursing, certain branches of medical work and
-of factory and sanitary inspection, some kinds of
-journalism, the teaching of almost all girls and of
-little boys, to say nothing of the wide field of manual
-and domestic occupations which fall specially to the
-woman’s share. Large fields of philanthropic and
-social work are their own special domain, but these
-are usually unpaid. There is plenty in truth for
-women to do, but not enough remunerative work
-‘to go round,’ as the saying is. Happily, the working
-life of many women is short, since marriage or the
-claims of relations often bring it to a premature
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_247'>247</span>close, so that the terrible over-supply has not yet
-made itself too keenly felt. As yet the sufferers
-have been chiefly those of the old school who entered
-the arena unarmed for the fray, and have retired to
-swell the ranks of the ‘necessitous gentlewoman.’
-But signs are not wanting that even the trained and
-the capable will soon have to suffer. Worst of all is
-the pressure in the teaching profession. The delight
-of the enthusiast and the child-lover, it is also, unfortunately,
-the refuge of the destitute and the one
-resource of the unimaginative. The girl who has
-diligently and successfully pursued her own studies
-without ever learning to take an initiative or to turn
-out of an appointed groove can contemplate no other
-way of spending her life than in passing on to others
-the knowledge she has herself acquired. If hers is a
-rich home, salary is no particular object. So she
-ruthlessly spoils the market for her poorer sisters,
-and takes the bread from another woman whose very
-existence depends on her earnings. Meantime the
-work in the home, among acquaintances, the poor,
-the friendless, the native town, those endless and
-varied fields of woman’s labour, remains undone. In
-preaching to our girls the nobility of work, some of
-us have forgotten to speak of its very highest branches.
-All honour to those noble women like Miss Clough
-who never did forget it!</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>This rush of all women in the same direction, this
-excessive individualism which has given rise to the
-cant phrase, ‘living one’s own life,’ is surely a stage
-through which we have to pass, but which need not
-remain permanently with us. Much may be done by
-mistresses at school to revive the dignity of home
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_248'>248</span>life, to check the untrue notion in the girls’ mind
-that no work is worthy of the name unless it is paid
-for in coin of the realm. Unpaid service is the pride
-of Englishmen; why should it not be honoured by
-Englishwomen? Still, for most service money is the
-fitting reward, and some measure of independence
-belongs by right to every adult, whether man or
-woman. Why do not more parents try to make life at
-home a worthy substitute for a professional career?
-Why not pay the daughter a fair salary for services
-rendered, that shall make her as independent in the
-matter of pocket-money and holidays as her college
-friend who is teaching or writing? Just as important
-is a certain liberty of action and a little room, no
-matter how small, where she can see her friends
-undisturbed and have things her own way. Those
-persons who are rich enough to leave their daughter
-a fair income at their death can surely afford to allow
-her these little indulgences in their lifetime. If she
-is some day to be thrown on the world penniless or
-with a mere pittance, then the sooner she sets to
-work the better. Whenever it is possible, parents
-should make up their minds, before a girl leaves
-school, what sum of money can be laid aside for
-her, either for immediate professional training or
-with a view to an income in the future. It is
-reasonable and right that a girl, like a boy, should
-choose her profession, provided the occupations of
-home are included among those that are paid and
-respected. If the growing independence of girls
-helps to bring about this change, the family too
-will benefit by this quiet revolution that has
-taken place in our midst. The <em>Sturm und Drang</em>
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_249'>249</span>period will pass away, and the time for the quiet
-harvest must succeed it. Enough, then, has been
-said by the devil’s advocate; it only remains to
-enter into the fruits of our Nineteenth Century
-Renaissance.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_251'>251</span>
- <h2 class='c005'>INDEX</h2>
-</div>
-
-<ul class='index c003'>
- <li class='c012'><span class='pageno' id='Page_253'>253</span>Aberystwyth College, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a>, <a href='#Page_9'>9</a>, <a href='#Page_10'>10</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Addison’s Essays, <a href='#Page_10'>10</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Aldeburgh Girls’ School, <a href='#Page_160'>160</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Allen, James, Girls’ School, <a href='#Page_96'>96</a>, <a href='#Page_191'>191</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Aske’s School, Hatcham, <a href='#Page_101'>101</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Astell, Mary, <a href='#Page_8'>8</a>, <a href='#Page_9'>9</a>, <a href='#Page_10'>10</a>.</li>
- <li class='c003'>Bangor College, <a href='#Page_141'>141</a>, <a href='#Page_145'>145</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Beale, Miss, at Queen’s College, <a href='#Page_30'>30</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>at Cheltenham, <a href='#Page_30'>30</a>;</li>
- <li>gives evidence before Schools’ Inquiry Commission, <a href='#Page_33'>33</a>, <a href='#Page_42'>42</a>, <a href='#Page_85'>85</a>;</li>
- <li>an educational pioneer, <a href='#Page_38'>38</a>;</li>
- <li>her abstract of the Royal Commission’s Report, <a href='#Page_48'>48</a>;</li>
- <li>her views on private teaching, <a href='#Page_53'>53</a>;</li>
- <li>founds St. Hilda’s, Oxford, <a href='#Page_122'>122</a>.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c012'>Bedford College, <a href='#Page_27'>27</a>, <a href='#Page_28'>28</a>, <a href='#Page_29'>29</a>, <a href='#Page_121'>121</a>, <a href='#Page_128'>128</a>, <a href='#Page_129'>129</a>, <a href='#Page_130'>130</a>, <a href='#Page_131'>131</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— endowment, <a href='#Page_81'>81</a>, <a href='#Page_90'>90</a>, <a href='#Page_92'>92</a>, <a href='#Page_93'>93</a>, <a href='#Page_95'>95</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— High School, <a href='#Page_93'>93</a>, <a href='#Page_94'>94</a>, <a href='#Page_95'>95</a>, <a href='#Page_135'>135</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— Modern School, <a href='#Page_93'>93</a>, <a href='#Page_94'>94</a>, <a href='#Page_95'>95</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Birmingham endowments, <a href='#Page_80'>80</a>, <a href='#Page_90'>90</a>, <a href='#Page_91'>91</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Blue-stocking Club, <a href='#Page_11'>11</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Board of Education Bill, <a href='#Page_240'>240</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Boarding-houses, <a href='#Page_152'>152</a>, <a href='#Page_153'>153</a>, <a href='#Page_166'>166</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Boarding-schools, <a href='#Page_149'>149</a>, <a href='#Page_150'>150</a>, <a href='#Page_161'>161</a>, <a href='#Page_162'>162</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Bodichon, Madame, <a href='#Page_39'>39</a>, <a href='#Page_40'>40</a>, <a href='#Page_84'>84</a>, <a href='#Page_107'>107</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Bostock, Miss, <a href='#Page_28'>28</a>, <a href='#Page_84'>84</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Bryce, Mr., <a href='#Page_47'>47</a>, <a href='#Page_84'>84</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Buss, Miss, at Queen’s College, <a href='#Page_30'>30</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>gives evidence before Schools’ Inquiry Commission, <a href='#Page_33'>33</a>, <a href='#Page_42'>42</a>, <a href='#Page_85'>85</a>;</li>
- <li><span class='pageno' id='Page_254'>254</span>an educational pioneer, <a href='#Page_38'>38</a>;</li>
- <li>President of Schoolmistresses’ Association, <a href='#Page_48'>48</a>;</li>
- <li>transforms the North London Collegiate into a public school, <a href='#Page_85'>85</a>;</li>
- <li>procures endowment for it, <a href='#Page_86'>86</a>, <a href='#Page_87'>87</a>.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c012'>Buss, Frances Mary, Schools, <a href='#Page_87'>87</a>, <a href='#Page_88'>88</a>.</li>
- <li class='c003'>Cambridge Examinations, Junior and Senior, <a href='#Page_33'>33</a>, <a href='#Page_34'>34</a>, <a href='#Page_40'>40</a>, <a href='#Page_41'>41</a>, <a href='#Page_51'>51</a>, <a href='#Page_109'>109</a>, <a href='#Page_167'>167</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— —— Higher Local, <a href='#Page_34'>34</a>, <a href='#Page_51'>51</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— position of women at, <a href='#Page_113'>113</a>, <a href='#Page_114'>114</a>, <a href='#Page_126'>126</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— Triposes opened to women, <a href='#Page_110'>110</a>, <a href='#Page_111'>111</a>, <a href='#Page_112'>112</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Camden School, <a href='#Page_87'>87</a>, <a href='#Page_191'>191</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Cardiff College, <a href='#Page_141'>141</a>, <a href='#Page_145'>145</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Careers open to women, <a href='#Page_162'>162</a>, <a href='#Page_163'>163</a>, <a href='#Page_246'>246</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Chapone, Mrs., <a href='#Page_11'>11</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Charitable Trusts Acts, <a href='#Page_83'>83</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Charity Commission, <a href='#Page_83'>83</a>, <a href='#Page_100'>100</a>, <a href='#Page_102'>102</a>, <a href='#Page_174'>174</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Cheltenham Ladies’ College, <a href='#Page_30'>30</a>, <a href='#Page_31'>31</a>, <a href='#Page_32'>32</a>, <a href='#Page_33'>33</a>, <a href='#Page_34'>34</a>, <a href='#Page_35'>35</a>, <a href='#Page_36'>36</a>, <a href='#Page_37'>37</a>, <a href='#Page_53'>53</a>, <a href='#Page_94'>94</a>, <a href='#Page_135'>135</a>, <a href='#Page_153'>153</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Christ’s Hospital Girls’ School, <a href='#Page_80'>80</a>, <a href='#Page_97'>97</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Church Schools’ Company, <a href='#Page_58'>58</a>, <a href='#Page_59'>59</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>City of London Girls’ School, <a href='#Page_102'>102</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Clergy Daughters’ Schools, <a href='#Page_17'>17</a>, <a href='#Page_18'>18</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Clough, Miss, <a href='#Page_38'>38</a>, <a href='#Page_49'>49</a>, <a href='#Page_81'>81</a>, <a href='#Page_109'>109</a>, <a href='#Page_116'>116</a>, <a href='#Page_247'>247</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'><span class='pageno' id='Page_255'>255</span>Cobbe, Miss, her reminiscences of school, <a href='#Page_15'>15</a>, <a href='#Page_16'>16</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Co-education at University of Wales, <a href='#Page_176'>176</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>at Polytechnics, <a href='#Page_177'>177</a>;</li>
- <li>in Organised Science Schools, <a href='#Page_187'>187</a>;</li>
- <li>in Higher Grade Schools, <a href='#Page_206'>206</a>;</li>
- <li>in Welsh Intermediate Schools, <a href='#Page_224'>224</a>, <a href='#Page_227'>227</a>.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c012'>College Hall, London, <a href='#Page_134'>134</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>County Councils, educational work of, <a href='#Page_172'>172</a>, <a href='#Page_177'>177</a>, <a href='#Page_237'>237</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Curriculum of Girls’ Schools, <a href='#Page_67'>67</a>, <a href='#Page_71'>71</a>, <a href='#Page_72'>72</a>, <a href='#Page_75'>75</a>, <a href='#Page_162'>162</a>.</li>
- <li class='c003'>Davies, Miss Emily, an educational pioneer, <a href='#Page_38'>38</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>Secretary to Local Examination Committee, <a href='#Page_40'>40</a>;</li>
- <li>gives evidence before Schools’ Inquiry Commission, <a href='#Page_42'>42</a>;</li>
- <li>works to obtain endowments for girls, <a href='#Page_84'>84</a>;</li>
- <li>foundress of Girton, <a href='#Page_104'>104</a>;</li>
- <li>Mistress of Girton, <a href='#Page_108'>108</a>.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c012'>Day Schools, <a href='#Page_149'>149</a>, <a href='#Page_150'>150</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— —— at Polytechnics, <a href='#Page_184'>184</a>, <a href='#Page_185'>185</a>, <a href='#Page_186'>186</a>, <a href='#Page_187'>187</a>, <a href='#Page_188'>188</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Defoe on Women’s Education, <a href='#Page_9'>9</a>, <a href='#Page_10'>10</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Degrees for Women, attempts to obtain, at Cambridge, <a href='#Page_110'>110</a>, <a href='#Page_113'>113</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>at Oxford, <a href='#Page_120'>120</a>.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c012'>Domestic Economy Schools, <a href='#Page_178'>178</a>, <a href='#Page_179'>179</a>, <a href='#Page_180'>180</a>, <a href='#Page_181'>181</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— —— evening classes, <a href='#Page_181'>181</a>, <a href='#Page_182'>182</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Dual Schools. <em>See</em> Wales.</li>
- <li class='c003'>Edgeworth, Maria, <a href='#Page_13'>13</a>, <a href='#Page_14'>14</a>, <a href='#Page_15'>15</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Education Bill of 1896, <a href='#Page_239'>239</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>Colonel Lockwood’s, <a href='#Page_240'>240</a>.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c012'>—— Company, <a href='#Page_157'>157</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— Department, <a href='#Page_196'>196</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Elementary Education Act, <a href='#Page_100'>100</a>, <a href='#Page_225'>225</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Elizabeth. <em>See</em> Queen Elizabeth.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Elizabethan England, <a href='#Page_7'>7</a>, <a href='#Page_8'>8</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Endowed Schools before the Conquest, <a href='#Page_78'>78</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'><span class='pageno' id='Page_256'>256</span>Endowed Schools for girls, <a href='#Page_85'>85</a>, <a href='#Page_91'>91</a>, <a href='#Page_97'>97</a>, <a href='#Page_100'>100</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>three grades of, <a href='#Page_99'>99</a>.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c012'>—— —— assisted by grants of Technical Education money, <a href='#Page_191'>191</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Endowments, of Convents, <a href='#Page_5'>5</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>Association to promote their application to the Education of Women, <a href='#Page_84'>84</a>;</li>
- <li>their distribution, <a href='#Page_98'>98</a>;</li>
- <li>share of girls in, <a href='#Page_79'>79</a>, <a href='#Page_80'>80</a>, <a href='#Page_84'>84</a>, <a href='#Page_91'>91</a>, <a href='#Page_97'>97</a>, <a href='#Page_102'>102</a>.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c012'>Euphues, <a href='#Page_7'>7</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Evening Continuation Schools, <a href='#Page_211'>211</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— —— —— Code, <a href='#Page_212'>212</a>, <a href='#Page_213'>213</a>, <a href='#Page_214'>214</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Ex-standard classes, <a href='#Page_199'>199</a>.</li>
- <li class='c003'>Fitch, Mr., <a href='#Page_44'>44</a>, <a href='#Page_46'>46</a>, <a href='#Page_84'>84</a>.</li>
- <li class='c003'>Games for girls, <a href='#Page_152'>152</a>, <a href='#Page_153'>153</a>, <a href='#Page_155'>155</a>, <a href='#Page_156'>156</a>, <a href='#Page_164'>164</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Girls’ Public Day School Company, <a href='#Page_56'>56</a>, <a href='#Page_57'>57</a>, <a href='#Page_66'>66</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Girton College, <a href='#Page_106'>106</a>, <a href='#Page_107'>107</a>, <a href='#Page_108'>108</a>, <a href='#Page_110'>110</a>, <a href='#Page_114'>114</a>, <a href='#Page_115'>115</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Governesses’ Benevolent Institution, <a href='#Page_21'>21</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Grammar Schools, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a>, <a href='#Page_8'>8</a>, <a href='#Page_80'>80</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Grey, Mrs. William, <a href='#Page_54'>54</a>, <a href='#Page_56'>56</a>.</li>
- <li class='c003'>High Schools, <a href='#Page_59'>59</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>difference between English and American, <a href='#Page_60'>60</a>;</li>
- <li>general features of, <a href='#Page_61'>61</a>;</li>
- <li>organisation, <a href='#Page_62'>62</a>;</li>
- <li>buildings, <a href='#Page_63'>63</a>;</li>
- <li>curriculum, <a href='#Page_72'>72</a>;</li>
- <li>methods of teaching in, <a href='#Page_73'>73</a>;</li>
- <li>results on the pupils, <a href='#Page_73'>73</a>, <a href='#Page_76'>76</a>, <a href='#Page_77'>77</a>;</li>
- <li>training of the teachers, <a href='#Page_73'>73</a>;</li>
- <li>after careers of the girls, <a href='#Page_77'>77</a>;</li>
- <li>hours of work in, <a href='#Page_152'>152</a>;</li>
- <li>their relation to elementary schools, <a href='#Page_241'>241</a>.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c012'>Higher Grade Schools, <a href='#Page_199'>199</a>, <a href='#Page_200'>200</a>, <a href='#Page_201'>201</a>, <a href='#Page_203'>203</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>at Leeds, <a href='#Page_204'>204</a>, <a href='#Page_205'>205</a>;</li>
- <li>at Cardiff, <a href='#Page_206'>206</a>;</li>
- <li>needs of girls at, <a href='#Page_207'>207</a>, <a href='#Page_208'>208</a>.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c012'>Hilda, abbess of Whitby, <a href='#Page_3'>3</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Hitchin Ladies’ College, <a href='#Page_105'>105</a>, <a href='#Page_106'>106</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Holloway College, <a href='#Page_102'>102</a>, <a href='#Page_121'>121</a>, <a href='#Page_131'>131</a>, <a href='#Page_132'>132</a>, <a href='#Page_133'>133</a>.</li>
- <li class='c003'><span class='pageno' id='Page_257'>257</span>Intermediate Schools. <em>See</em> Welsh Intermediate Schools.</li>
- <li class='c003'>King Edward’s Schools. <em>See</em> Birmingham endowments.</li>
- <li class='c012'>King’s College, Ladies’ Department, <a href='#Page_135'>135</a>.</li>
- <li class='c003'>Lady Margaret Hall, <a href='#Page_117'>117</a>, <a href='#Page_120'>120</a>, <a href='#Page_121'>121</a>, <a href='#Page_123'>123</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Lecture-system, <a href='#Page_25'>25</a>, <a href='#Page_72'>72</a>, <a href='#Page_73'>73</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Local Customs and Taxation Act, <a href='#Page_169'>169</a>, <a href='#Page_217'>217</a>, <a href='#Page_235'>235</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Lockwood, Colonel. <em>See</em> Education Bill.</li>
- <li class='c003'>Makins, Mrs., <a href='#Page_9'>9</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Manchester High School, <a href='#Page_89'>89</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Manual training, <a href='#Page_74'>74</a>, <a href='#Page_158'>158</a>, <a href='#Page_171'>171</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Mary Datchelor School, <a href='#Page_101'>101</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Maurice, F. D., <a href='#Page_22'>22</a>, <a href='#Page_23'>23</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Modern Schools for girls, <a href='#Page_189'>189</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Montagu, Mrs., <a href='#Page_11'>11</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Montagu, Lady Mary Wortley, <a href='#Page_11'>11</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>More, Hannah, <a href='#Page_11'>11</a>, <a href='#Page_12'>12</a>, <a href='#Page_13'>13</a>, <a href='#Page_163'>163</a>.</li>
- <li class='c003'>National Union for the improvement of Women’s Education, <a href='#Page_54'>54</a>, <a href='#Page_55'>55</a>, <a href='#Page_56'>56</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Newnham College, <a href='#Page_108'>108</a>, <a href='#Page_109'>109</a>, <a href='#Page_110'>110</a>, <a href='#Page_114'>114</a>, <a href='#Page_115'>115</a>, <a href='#Page_116'>116</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Norman Conquest, effect on Education, <a href='#Page_3'>3</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>North London Collegiate School, <a href='#Page_33'>33</a>, <a href='#Page_53'>53</a>, <a href='#Page_64'>64</a>, <a href='#Page_68'>68</a>, <a href='#Page_87'>87</a>, <a href='#Page_135'>135</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>North of England Council, <a href='#Page_48'>48</a>, <a href='#Page_49'>49</a>, <a href='#Page_50'>50</a>, <a href='#Page_108'>108</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Nunneries, education given in, <a href='#Page_3'>3</a>, <a href='#Page_5'>5</a>.</li>
- <li class='c003'>Organised Science Schools, <a href='#Page_187'>187</a>, <a href='#Page_201'>201</a>, <a href='#Page_202'>202</a>, <a href='#Page_204'>204</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Owens College, Manchester, <a href='#Page_136'>136</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Oxford Association for the Education of Women, <a href='#Page_116'>116</a>, <a href='#Page_117'>117</a>, <a href='#Page_118'>118</a>, <a href='#Page_119'>119</a>, <a href='#Page_120'>120</a>, <a href='#Page_123'>123</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Oxford Halls for Women, <a href='#Page_116'>116</a>, <a href='#Page_117'>117</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'><span class='pageno' id='Page_258'>258</span>Oxford Home Students, <a href='#Page_123'>123</a>, <a href='#Page_124'>124</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— Local Examinations, <a href='#Page_40'>40</a>, <a href='#Page_50'>50</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— Position of Women at, <a href='#Page_118'>118</a>, <a href='#Page_119'>119</a>, <a href='#Page_120'>120</a>, <a href='#Page_124'>124</a>, <a href='#Page_126'>126</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— University Examinations, <a href='#Page_132'>132</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— and Cambridge Joint Board, <a href='#Page_51'>51</a>, <a href='#Page_68'>68</a>, <a href='#Page_69'>69</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>Higher Certificate of, <a href='#Page_69'>69</a>, <a href='#Page_70'>70</a>, <a href='#Page_116'>116</a>;</li>
- <li>Lower Certificate, <a href='#Page_70'>70</a>, <a href='#Page_71'>71</a>.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c003'>People’s Palace, <a href='#Page_174'>174</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Pfeiffer Charity, <a href='#Page_102'>102</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Physical training, <a href='#Page_75'>75</a>, <a href='#Page_76'>76</a>, <a href='#Page_158'>158</a>, <a href='#Page_159'>159</a>, <a href='#Page_160'>160</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Polytechnics, <a href='#Page_176'>176</a>, <a href='#Page_183'>183</a>, <a href='#Page_184'>184</a>, <a href='#Page_194'>194</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— Battersea, <a href='#Page_178'>178</a>, <a href='#Page_182'>182</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>Borough, <a href='#Page_178'>178</a>;</li>
- <li>Regent Street, <a href='#Page_173'>173</a>, <a href='#Page_175'>175</a>, <a href='#Page_177'>177</a>, <a href='#Page_178'>178</a>.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c012'>Private Schools, <a href='#Page_163'>163</a>, <a href='#Page_164'>164</a>, <a href='#Page_166'>166</a>, <a href='#Page_167'>167</a>, <a href='#Page_168'>168</a>, <a href='#Page_242'>242</a>.</li>
- <li class='c003'>Queen Anne, <a href='#Page_10'>10</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— Elizabeth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— Victoria, <a href='#Page_18'>18</a>, <a href='#Page_19'>19</a>, <a href='#Page_21'>21</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Queen’s College, <a href='#Page_20'>20</a>, <a href='#Page_22'>22</a>, <a href='#Page_23'>23</a>, <a href='#Page_24'>24</a>, <a href='#Page_25'>25</a>, <a href='#Page_26'>26</a>, <a href='#Page_245'>245</a>.</li>
- <li class='c003'>Reading School, <a href='#Page_79'>79</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Reformation, its effect on Women, <a href='#Page_5'>5</a>, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Reid, Mrs., <a href='#Page_27'>27</a>, <a href='#Page_28'>28</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Renaissance, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Revised Code, <a href='#Page_197'>197</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Revival of Girls’ Education, <a href='#Page_1'>1</a>, <a href='#Page_19'>19</a>, <a href='#Page_248'>248</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Roedean School, <a href='#Page_197'>197</a>.</li>
- <li class='c003'>Scholarships at Cambridge, <a href='#Page_116'>116</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>at Oxford, <a href='#Page_123'>123</a>.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c012'>—— of Technical Education Boards, <a href='#Page_178'>178</a>, <a href='#Page_191'>191</a>, <a href='#Page_192'>192</a>, <a href='#Page_193'>193</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— in Welsh Schools, <a href='#Page_223'>223</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>School Boards, <a href='#Page_197'>197</a>, <a href='#Page_198'>198</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Schoolmistresses’ Associations, <a href='#Page_48'>48</a>, <a href='#Page_49'>49</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'><span class='pageno' id='Page_259'>259</span>Schools’ Inquiry Commission, <a href='#Page_42'>42</a>, <a href='#Page_43'>43</a>, <a href='#Page_44'>44</a>, <a href='#Page_45'>45</a>, <a href='#Page_46'>46</a>, <a href='#Page_47'>47</a>, <a href='#Page_52'>52</a>, <a href='#Page_82'>82</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Secondary Education Commission, <a href='#Page_101'>101</a>, <a href='#Page_198'>198</a>, <a href='#Page_209'>209</a>, <a href='#Page_226'>226</a>, <a href='#Page_234'>234</a>, <a href='#Page_235'>235</a>, <a href='#Page_237'>237</a>, <a href='#Page_239'>239</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Sidgwick, Henry, <a href='#Page_108'>108</a>, <a href='#Page_109'>109</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— Mrs., <a href='#Page_109'>109</a>, <a href='#Page_116'>116</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Sinclair, Catherine, <a href='#Page_16'>16</a>, <a href='#Page_17'>17</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Skinners’ School at Stamford Hill, <a href='#Page_96'>96</a>, <a href='#Page_101'>101</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Social Science Congress, at Glasgow, <a href='#Page_40'>40</a>, <a href='#Page_84'>84</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>at Leeds, <a href='#Page_54'>54</a>.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c012'>Somerville College, <a href='#Page_117'>117</a>, <a href='#Page_120'>120</a>, <a href='#Page_121'>121</a>, <a href='#Page_123'>123</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>South Kensington Department of Science and Art, <a href='#Page_200'>200</a>, <a href='#Page_201'>201</a>, <a href='#Page_202'>202</a>, <a href='#Page_203'>203</a>, <a href='#Page_208'>208</a>, <a href='#Page_209'>209</a>, <a href='#Page_210'>210</a>, <a href='#Page_213'>213</a>, <a href='#Page_214'>214</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>St. Hilda’s, Cheltenham, <a href='#Page_36'>36</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— Oxford, <a href='#Page_117'>117</a>, <a href='#Page_122'>122</a>, <a href='#Page_123'>123</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>St. Hugh’s Hall, <a href='#Page_117'>117</a>, <a href='#Page_122'>122</a>, <a href='#Page_123'>123</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>St. Leonard’s School, St. Andrews, <a href='#Page_94'>94</a>, <a href='#Page_153'>153</a>, <a href='#Page_154'>154</a>, <a href='#Page_155'>155</a>, <a href='#Page_156'>156</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>St. Paul’s School, <a href='#Page_79'>79</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>State the, its relation to Education, <a href='#Page_195'>195</a>, <a href='#Page_196'>196</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Stuart Court, its influence, <a href='#Page_8'>8</a>.</li>
- <li class='c003'>Technical Education Acts, <a href='#Page_170'>170</a>, <a href='#Page_171'>171</a>, <a href='#Page_235'>235</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— —— Boards, <a href='#Page_190'>190</a>, <a href='#Page_237'>237</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>Cheshire, <a href='#Page_190'>190</a>;</li>
- <li>London, <a href='#Page_129'>129</a>, <a href='#Page_175'>175</a>, <a href='#Page_176'>176</a>, <a href='#Page_178'>178</a>, <a href='#Page_192'>192</a>, <a href='#Page_193'>193</a>;</li>
- <li>Surrey, <a href='#Page_188'>188</a>.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c003'>Universities, rise of, <a href='#Page_4'>4</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>admission of Women to, <a href='#Page_103'>103</a>, <a href='#Page_148'>148</a>;</li>
- <li>at London, <a href='#Page_127'>127</a>;</li>
- <li>Victoria, <a href='#Page_136'>136</a>;</li>
- <li>Durham, <a href='#Page_139'>139</a>;</li>
- <li>Wales, <a href='#Page_139'>139</a>;</li>
- <li>Scotland 147;</li>
- <li>Ireland, <a href='#Page_147'>147</a>;</li>
- <li>foreign countries, <a href='#Page_147'>147</a>.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c012'>University College, Liverpool, <a href='#Page_136'>136</a>, <a href='#Page_137'>137</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'><span class='pageno' id='Page_260'>260</span>University College, London, <a href='#Page_26'>26</a>, <a href='#Page_134'>134</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— Colleges, provincial, <a href='#Page_135'>135</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— —— of Wales, <a href='#Page_140'>140</a>, <a href='#Page_141'>141</a>, <a href='#Page_143'>143</a>, <a href='#Page_144'>144</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— Extension, beginnings of, <a href='#Page_49'>49</a>, <a href='#Page_50'>50</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— for Women, <a href='#Page_106'>106</a>, <a href='#Page_133'>133</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— of London, examinations for Women, <a href='#Page_35'>35</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>degrees, <a href='#Page_35'>35</a>, <a href='#Page_126'>126</a>, <a href='#Page_127'>127</a>, <a href='#Page_128'>128</a>, <a href='#Page_129'>129</a>, <a href='#Page_132'>132</a>;</li>
- <li>reorganisation, <a href='#Page_135'>135</a>.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c003'>Victoria. <em>See</em> Queen Victoria.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— University, <a href='#Page_136'>136</a>.</li>
- <li class='c003'>Wales, University of, <a href='#Page_139'>139</a>, <a href='#Page_140'>140</a>, <a href='#Page_141'>141</a>, <a href='#Page_142'>142</a>, <a href='#Page_143'>143</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Welsh Intermediate Education Act, <a href='#Page_170'>170</a>, <a href='#Page_217'>217</a>, <a href='#Page_235'>235</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— —— Schools, two kinds of, <a href='#Page_223'>223</a>;
- <ul>
- <li>dual, <a href='#Page_225'>225</a>, <a href='#Page_226'>226</a>, <a href='#Page_227'>227</a>;</li>
- <li>curriculum of, <a href='#Page_220'>220</a>, <a href='#Page_221'>221</a>;</li>
- <li>compared with High Schools, <a href='#Page_221'>221</a>, <a href='#Page_222'>222</a>;</li>
- <li>fees, <a href='#Page_228'>228</a>;</li>
- <li>present condition of, <a href='#Page_232'>232</a>, <a href='#Page_233'>233</a>;</li>
- <li>County Governing Bodies 218, <a href='#Page_238'>238</a>;</li>
- <li>Joint Education Committees, <a href='#Page_219'>219</a>;</li>
- <li>Central Board, <a href='#Page_220'>220</a>, <a href='#Page_228'>228</a>, <a href='#Page_229'>229</a>;</li>
- <li>its examinations, <a href='#Page_230'>230</a> 231.</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c012'>Welsh, Miss, <a href='#Page_116'>116</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Westfield College, <a href='#Page_102'>102</a>, <a href='#Page_130'>130</a>, <a href='#Page_131'>131</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Whisky-money, <a href='#Page_170'>170</a>, <a href='#Page_217'>217</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Winchester College, <a href='#Page_78'>78</a>, <a href='#Page_79'>79</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Women teachers, <a href='#Page_244'>244</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Wotton, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>Wycombe Abbey School, <a href='#Page_157'>157</a>, <a href='#Page_158'>158</a>.</li>
- <li class='c003'>Yorkshire Board of Education, Ladies’ Honorary Council of, <a href='#Page_48'>48</a>, <a href='#Page_88'>88</a>.</li>
- <li class='c012'>—— College, Leeds, <a href='#Page_136'>136</a>, <a href='#Page_138'>138</a>.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c003'>
- <div><span class='pageno' id='Page_261'>261</span><span class='small'>Printed by <span class='fss'>T.</span> and <span class='sc'>A. Constable</span>, Printers to Her Majesty at the Edinburgh University Press</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c013' />
-<div class='footnote' id='f1'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r1'>1</a>. G. Hill, <cite>Women in English Life</cite>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f2'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r2'>2</a>. L. Eckenstein, <cite>Women under Monasticism</cite>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f3'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r3'>3</a>. Sir Th. Overbury.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f4'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r4'>4</a>. Mary Astell. <cite>An Essay in Defence of the Female Sex.</cite></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f5'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r5'>5</a>. Defoe. <cite>Essay on Projects.</cite></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f6'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r6'>6</a>. Mrs. Makins. <cite>An Essay to Revive the Ancient Education of
-Gentlewomen</cite>, 1673.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f7'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r7'>7</a>. Mary Astell. <cite>A Serious Proposal.</cite></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f8'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r8'>8</a>. Hannah More. <cite>Strictures on Female Education.</cite></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f9'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r9'>9</a>. <cite>The Complete Governess.</cite> A Course of Mental Instruction for
-Ladies.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f10'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r10'>10</a>. <cite>Autobiography of Frances Power Cobbe.</cite></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f11'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r11'>11</a>. <cite>Examiner.</cite></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f12'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r12'>12</a>. Mr. Hammond’s Report.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f13'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r13'>13</a>. A. F. Leach.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f14'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r14'>14</a>. Emily Davies, <cite>Higher Education of Women</cite>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f15'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r15'>15</a>. <cite>Special Reports on Educational Subjects, 1896–97.</cite></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f16'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r16'>16</a>. See <cite>Handbook to Courses Open to Women in British, Continental,
-and Canadian Universities</cite>, by Isabel Maddison, B.Sc., Ph.D.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f17'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r17'>17</a>. In character, not of course in size</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f18'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r18'>18</a>. <cite>Report of Royal Commission on Secondary Education</cite>, vol. i.
-p. 98.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f19'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r19'>19</a>. <cite>Report</cite>, vol. i. p. 75.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f20'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r20'>20</a>. <cite>Report</cite>, vol. i. p. 1.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f21'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r21'>21</a>. <cite>Report</cite>, vol. i. p. 274.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f22'>
-<p class='c007'><a href='#r22'>22</a>. Preface to <cite>Return of the Pupils in Public and Private Schools in
-England, and of the Teaching Staff in such Schools on June 1, 1897</cite>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c004' />
-</div>
-
-<div><span class='pageno' id='Page_262'>262</span></div>
-<div class='section ph2'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c001'>
- <div>New One=Volume Novels.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c003'>
- <div><em>Crown 8vo, cloth, 6s. each.</em></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Eden Phillpotts</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Children of the Mist.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Constance Smith</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Prisoners of Hope.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Marguerite Bryant</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>A Woman’s Privilege.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Roma White</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>The Island of Seven Shadows.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Esther Miller</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>The St. Cadix Case.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Francis Gribble</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Sunlight and Limelight.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Basil Thomson</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>The Indiscretions of Lady Asenath.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>A. E. W. Mason</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Lawrence Clavering.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Fred T. Jane</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>The Lordship, the Passen, and We.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Lady Helen Craven</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Katharine Cromer.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>C. M. Campbell</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Deilie Jock.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div><span class='pageno' id='Page_263'>263</span></div>
-<div class='section ph2'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c001'>
- <div>The Isthmian Library.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c003'>
- <div><cite>Illustrated, post 8vo, cloth</cite>, 5s. <em>a Volume</em>.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>VOL. I.</p>
-
-<p class='c015'>By <span class='sc'>B. Fletcher Robinson</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Rugby Football.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>With Chapters by <span class='sc'>Frank Mitchell</span>, <span class='sc'>R. H. Cattell</span>, <span class='sc'>C. J. N.
-Fleming</span>, <span class='sc'>Gregor MacGregor</span>, <span class='sc'>C. B. Nicholl</span>, and <span class='sc'>H. B.
-Tristram</span>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>VOL. II.</p>
-
-<p class='c015'>By <span class='sc'>A. C. Pemberton</span>, Mrs. <span class='sc'>Harcourt Williamson</span>, <span class='sc'>C. P.
-Sisley</span>, and <span class='sc'>Gilbert Floyd</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>The Complete Cyclist.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>VOL. III.</p>
-
-<p class='c015'>By <span class='sc'>Garden Smith</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>The World of Golf.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>With Chapters by <span class='sc'>Van Tassel Sutphen</span>, Miss <span class='sc'>Pascoe</span>, &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>VOL. IV.</p>
-
-<p class='c015'>By <span class='sc'>R. C. Lehmann</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Rowing.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>With Chapters by <span class='sc'>Guy Nickalls</span> and <span class='sc'>C. M. Pitman</span>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>VOL. V.</p>
-
-<p class='c015'>By <span class='sc'>R. Allanson Winn</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Boxing.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>VOL. VI.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Ice Sports.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>VOL. VII.</p>
-
-<p class='c015'>By <span class='sc'>Montagu S. Monier Williams</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Figure Skating.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c006'>VOL. VIII.</p>
-
-<p class='c015'>By <span class='sc'>W. B. Thomas</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Athletics.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>With Chapters by <span class='sc'>R. R. Conway</span>, <span class='sc'>A. C. M. Croome</span>, <span class='sc'>G. S.
-Robertson</span>, <span class='sc'>C. N. Jackson</span>, and <span class='sc'>W. M. Fletcher</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><em>Other Volumes are in preparation and will be duly announced.</em></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div><span class='pageno' id='Page_264'>264</span></div>
-<div class='section ph2'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c001'>
- <div>Works on History, Travel, &amp;c.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Harold Spender</span> and <span class='sc'>H. Llewellyn Smith</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Through the High Pyrenees.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>With Maps and numerous Illustrations from Sketches and
-Photographs. Demy 8vo, cloth, 16s.</p>
-
-<p class='c014'>By Judge <span class='sc'>O’Connor Morris</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Ireland—‘98 to ‘98.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>A History of Irish Politics and Irish Movements during the
-Last Hundred Years. Demy 8vo, cloth, price 10s. 6d.</p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“This work can be unreservedly recommended. Judge O’Connor Morris has a
-thorough mastery of his subject; and his deductions are as a rule candid, impartial,
-and convincing.”—<cite>Literature.</cite></p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No one who has given attention to Irish affairs, will read his book without
-interest, nor, we think, without profit.”—<cite>Glasgow Herald.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Ella C. Sykes</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Through Persia on a Side Saddle.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>With a Map and numerous Illustrations from Photographs.
-Demy 8vo, cloth, 16s.</p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“A very bright, picturesque, and entertaining narrative of travel in comparatively
-untrodden ways.”—<cite>Daily News.</cite></p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Written with shrewdness and humour and a touch of pleasant fancy.”—<cite>Standard.</cite></p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“One of the most delightful books of modern travel in Iran.”—<cite>Scotsman.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>F. H. S. Merewether</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Through the Famine Districts of India.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Being an Account by Reuter’s Special Correspondent of his
-Experiences in Travelling through the Famine Districts of
-India. Profusely Illustrated. Demy 8vo, cloth, 16s.</p>
-
-<p class='c014'>By Professor <span class='sc'>W. S. Lawton</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>The Successors of Homer.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Being an Account of the Greek Poets who followed from
-Homer down to the time of Aeschylus. Crown 8vo, cloth,
-gilt top, price 5s.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Eighteenth Century Letters.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Edited by <span class='sc'>R. Brimley Johnson</span>, with Introductions by eminent
-scholars. Illustrated with Photogravure Portraits of the
-writers. Crown 8vo, half-parchment, gilt top, price 6s. each
-volume.</p>
-
-<p class='c015'>SWIFT, ADDISON, STEELE. With an Introduction by
-<span class='sc'>Stanley Lane Poole</span>.</p>
-
-<p class='c015'>JOHNSON AND CHESTERFIELD. With an Introduction
-by <span class='sc'>George Birkbeck Hill</span>, D.C.L.</p>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><em>Other Volumes are in preparation, and will be duly announced.</em></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div><span class='pageno' id='Page_265'>265</span></div>
-<div class='section ph2'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c001'>
- <div>RECENT POPULAR 6s. NOVELS.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>J. C. Snaith</span>, Author of “Mistress Dorothy Marvin.”</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Fierceheart the Soldier.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Mr. Snaith has given us a romance that for terse, pregnant phrasing, exceptional
-character, and recurring and vivid depiction of dramatic situation, is the best thing
-of its kind we remember to have seen for a long time.”—<cite>Observer.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Max Pemberton</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Christine of the Hills.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Assuredly he has never written anything more fresh, more simple, more alluring
-or more artistically perfect.”—<cite>Daily Mail.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Eden Phillpotts</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Lying Prophets.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'><em>Third Edition.</em> Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“An excellent novel.... A piece of serious and admirable work.... Not unworthy
-of a place with George Eliot’s ‘Adam Bede’ and ‘Mill on the Floss.’”—<cite>Pall
-Mall Gazette.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Isabel Clarke</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>The Episode of Alethea.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“The author deals with admirable taste and tact with the situation.... The
-story is one of high merit from beginning to end.”—<cite>Scotsman.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Esther Miller</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>The Sport of the Gods.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“It is very well told.... The novel is exciting, and preserves its interest to the
-end.... Excellent story.”—<cite>Athenæum.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'><span class='pageno' id='Page_266'>266</span>By the late Mrs. <span class='sc'>J. K. Spender</span>, Author of “Thirteen Doctors,” etc.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>The Wooing of Doris.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Has much to commend it to novel-readers. A clever plot; well-drawn characters—such
-are the leading features of a novel by which the reputation of its much-regretted
-writer is fully sustained to the last.”—<cite>World.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>J. C. Snaith</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Mistress Dorothy Marvin.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>A Romance of the Glorious Revolution.</p>
-
-<p class='c015'>Illustrated by <span class='sc'>S. Cowell</span>. Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“The author has succeeded in making his story intensely interesting....
-One of the very best adventure stories we have had for a long time past.”—<cite>Speaker.</cite></p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“‘Mistress Dorothy Marvin,’ most delightful and winsome of women, and one of
-the freshest and most unhackneyed heroines whose acquaintance we have had the
-pleasure of making for a very considerable period.... Mr. Snaith has a great gift
-of observation, and his book is a remarkable picture of the age it is intended to
-depict.”—<cite>World.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Stanley Weyman</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>My Lady Rotha.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>A Romance of the Thirty Tears’ War.</p>
-
-<p class='c015'>Illustrated by <span class='sc'>John Williamson</span>. Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“No one who begins it will lay it down before the end, it is so extremely well
-carried on from adventure to adventure.”—<cite>Saturday Review.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Frank Barrett</span>, Author of “The Admirable Lady Biddy Fane.”</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>A Set of Rogues.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>A Romance of the Seventeenth Century.</p>
-
-<p class='c015'>Illustrated by <span class='sc'>S. Cowell</span>. Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“He has related the adventures of a set of rogues&nbsp;... with so pleasant a tongue
-and in such attractive fashion that it is impossible for mere flesh and blood to resist
-them. His set of rogues have won our entire sympathy, and his narrative our
-hearty approval.”—<cite>Pall Mall Gazette.</cite></p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Another capital story.... Strongly recommended. Stirring tale this, without
-a dull chapter in it, and just enough human sentiment in it to soften down the
-roguery.... Let the honest reader procure the book.”—<cite>Punch.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'><span class='pageno' id='Page_267'>267</span>By <span class='sc'>E. F. Benson</span>, Author of “Dodo.”</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Limitations.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Mr. Benson has written an interesting and truly human book. His range is
-much wider than it was; his character-drawing has gained in depth, delicacy, and
-precision; while the sparkling dialogue which we enjoyed in ‘Dodo’ has lost none
-of its old brilliancy.”—<cite>Daily Telegraph.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Francis Gribble</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>The Lower Life.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“A very remarkable novel, well thought out, well sustained, and inspired from first
-to last.”—<cite>National Observer.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>G. B. Burgin</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Tomalyn’s Quest.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Mr. Burgin has just scored a second shining success with ‘Tomalyn’s Quest,’ a
-tale of the keenest interest.”—<cite>Daily Telegraph.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>W. L. Alden</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>The Mystery of Elias G. Roebuck.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Mr. Alden has the true gift of humour.... It is impossible to read the collection
-of short stories without genuine enjoyment.”—<cite>Times.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>C. R. Coleridge</span> and <span class='sc'>Helen Shipton</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Ravenstone.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“The love interest of ‘Ravenstone’ is twofold, and is admirably sustained
-throughout this bright, vigorous, and refreshing story.”—<cite>Daily Telegraph.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By X. L., Author of “<span lang="la" xml:lang="la">Aut Diabolus aut Nihil</span>.”</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>The Limb.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Mr. Gladstone</span> writes: “Pray accept my thanks.... I was so imprudent as to
-open it at once, and since that act have found great difficulty in laying it down.”</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“‘The Limb’ is unquestionably one of the most fascinating books of the season.”—<cite>Birmingham
-Daily Gazette.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'><span class='pageno' id='Page_268'>268</span>By <span class='sc'>Roma White</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>A Stolen Mask.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“A capital story, and Mrs. Roma White tells it with a delicate humour and a
-spontaneous brilliancy as rare as they are delightful. ‘A Stolen Mask’ is a novel
-that stands high above the average, and can be strongly recommended. It is a long
-time since we have come across anything so thoroughly fresh and bright.”—<cite>Pall
-Mall Gazette.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Francis Gribble</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>The Things that Matter.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Is an extremely psychological study.”—<cite>Times.</cite></p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“It is a very amusing novel, full of bright satire directed against the new woman
-and similar objects.”—<cite>Speaker.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>G. B. Burgin</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>The Judge of the Four Corners.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“A delightfully humorous sketch, full of the purest fun, and irresistibly laughable.”—<cite>Saturday
-Review.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Eden Phillpotts</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>My Laughing Philosopher.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Illustrated by <span class='sc'>George Hutchinson</span>. Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“We commend to the notice of any one wanting a good laugh ‘My Laughing
-Philosopher,’ whose varied character-sketches amply prove Mr. Eden Phillpotts to
-be endowed with those two excellent gifts of humour and imagination.”—<cite>Spectator.</cite></p>
-
-<p class='c007'>“The book will be welcome to every one who likes a book from which a man can
-get a good laugh.”—<cite>Scotsman.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Leslie Keith</span>, Author of “The Chilcotes,” “‘Lisbeth,” etc.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>For Love of Prue.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Plot and Incident in this present story are alike remarkable&nbsp;... altogether we
-heartily commend ‘For Love of Prue’ as a sensible, humorous, and thoroughly
-wholesome book.”—<cite>Speaker.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Dorothea Gerard</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Lot 13.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c015'>Crown 8vo, cloth, <a href='#Page_6'>6</a><i><span lang="la" xml:lang="la">s.</span></i></p>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“A bright, buoyant, and bustling story, with plenty of local colour derived
-from the scenery and the society, black and white, of a West Indian plantation.”—<cite>Times.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div><span class='pageno' id='Page_269'>269</span></div>
-<div class='section ph2'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c001'>
- <div>SCARLET NOVELS.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c003'>
- <div>A SERIES OF POPULAR NOVELS BY WELL-KNOWN AUTHORS.</div>
- <div class='c004'><em>Crown 8vo, uniform scarlet cloth, 3s. 6d. each Volume.</em></div>
- <div class='c003'>ANTHONY HOPE’S SOCIETY NOVELS.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Comedies of Courtship.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“He is undeniably gay in the best sense of the word, now and then almost
-rollicking. An admirable example of what we mean by gaiety in fictional literature.”—<cite>Daily
-Telegraph.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Half a Hero.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“The book is delightful to read, and an excellent piece of work.”—<cite>Standard.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Mr. Witt’s Widow.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“A brilliant little tale.... Exhibits unborrowed ingenuity, plausibility, and
-fertility in surprises.”—<cite>Times.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Max Pemberton</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>A Gentleman’s Gentleman.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“This is very much the best book that Mr. Max Pemberton has so far given us.”—<cite>Daily
-Chronicle.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Richard Pryce</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>The Burden of a Woman.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“The conception and execution of this interesting story are excellent. A book
-to read and remember with pleasure.”—<cite>Lady’s Pictorial.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>C. R. Coleridge</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Amethyst.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Extremely amusing, interesting, and brightly written.”—<cite>Guardian.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>F. Frankfort Moore</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Two in the Bush and Others Elsewhere.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“Carry the reader on from page to page till criticism is forgotten in enjoyment.”—<cite>Daily
-Graphic.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>By <span class='sc'>Roma White</span>.</p>
-
-<div class='ph3'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Punchinello’s Romance.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div>
-
-<p class='c007'>“We give Roma White the warmest of welcomes into the world of fiction....
-Admirably and irresistibly comic, without anything in the nature of force or even of
-apparent exaggeration, ready at the least moment to run into equally true pathos.”—<cite>Graphic.</cite></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c004' />
-</div>
-<div class='tnotes'>
-
-<div class='section ph2'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c001'>
- <div>TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
- <ol class='ol_1 c003'>
- <li>Silently corrected typographical errors and variations in spelling.
-
- </li>
- <li>Archaic, non-standard, and uncertain spellings retained as printed.
- </li>
- </ol>
-
-</div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Renaissance of Girls' Education in
-England, by Alice Zimmern
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK GIRLS' EDUCATION IN ENGLAND ***
-
-***** This file should be named 62774-h.htm or 62774-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/2/7/7/62774/
-
-Produced by Richard Tonsing, MFR, and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
- </body>
- <!-- created with ppgen.py 3.57c on 2020-07-06 05:51:16 GMT -->
-</html>
diff --git a/old/62774-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/62774-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 66d9c4b..0000000
--- a/old/62774-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ